summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/52214-0.txt7948
-rw-r--r--old/52214-0.zipbin143251 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h.zipbin917193 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/52214-h.htm11599
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/cover.jpgbin79687 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-a.jpgbin4884 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-i.jpgbin4935 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-m.jpgbin4659 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-o.jpgbin4722 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-r.jpgbin4738 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-t.jpgbin4801 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-w.jpgbin4661 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/dropcap-y.jpgbin4672 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch1.jpgbin5349 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch14.jpgbin10226 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch15.jpgbin10311 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch2-and-9.jpgbin16769 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch3-and-11.jpgbin13818 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch4-and-12.jpgbin14586 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch6-and-10.jpgbin5252 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/footer-ch8.jpgbin17261 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch1-and-9.jpgbin20196 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch10.jpgbin19912 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch14.jpgbin21596 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch2.jpgbin16800 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch3-and-11.jpgbin20675 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch4-and-12.jpgbin17847 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch5.jpgbin19714 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch6.jpgbin19817 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch7-and-13.jpgbin18953 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/header-ch8-and-15.jpgbin21590 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/illus1.jpgbin90649 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/illus2.jpgbin81551 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/illus3.jpgbin90695 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/52214-h/images/illus4.jpgbin88478 -> 0 bytes
38 files changed, 17 insertions, 19547 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..70d6008
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #52214 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/52214)
diff --git a/old/52214-0.txt b/old/52214-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index e355f5f..0000000
--- a/old/52214-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7948 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Bessie on Her Travels, by Joanna H. Mathews
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Bessie on Her Travels
-
-Author: Joanna H. Mathews
-
-Release Date: June 1, 2016 [EBook #52214]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS.
-
-
-
-
-_BOOKS BY JOANNA H. MATHEWS._
-
-I. THE BESSIE BOOKS.
-
- 6 vols. In a box. $7.50.
-
- SEASIDE $1.25
- CITY 1.25
- FRIENDS 1.25
- MOUNTAINS 1.25
- SCHOOL 1.25
- TRAVELS 1.25
-
-II. THE FLOWERETS. A SERIES OF STORIES ON THE COMMANDMENTS.
-
- 6 vols. In a box. $3.60.
-
- VIOLET’S IDOL.
- DAISY’S WORK.
- ROSE’S TEMPTATION.
- LILY’S LESSON.
- HYACINTHE AND HER BROTHERS.
- PINKIE AND THE RABBITS.
-
-III. LITTLE SUNBEAMS.
-
- 6 vols. In a box. $6.00.
-
- BELLE POWERS’ LOCKET.
- DORA’S MOTTO. 16mo.
- LILY NORRIS’ ENEMY.
- JESSIE’S PARROT.
- MAMIE’S WATCHWORD.
- NELLIE’S HOUSEKEEPING.
-
-IV. KITTY AND LULU BOOKS.
-
- 6 vols. In a box. $6.00.
-
- TOUTOU AND PUSSY.
- KITTY’S ROBINS.
- THE WHITE RABBIT.
- RUDIE’S GOAT.
- KITTY’S VISIT.
- KITTY’S SCRAP-BOOK.
-
-V. MISS ASHTON’S GIRLS.
-
- 1. FANNY’S BIRTHDAY $1.25
- 2. THE NEW SCHOLARS 1.25
- 3. ROSALIE’S PET 1.25
- 4. ELEANOR’S VISIT 1.25
- 5. MABEL WALTON 1.25
-
-VI. HAPS AND MISHAPS.
-
- 6 vols. In a box. $7.50.
-
- 1. LITTLE FRIENDS $1.25
- 2. THE BROKEN MALLET 1.25
- 3. BLACKBERRY JAM 1.25
- 4. MILLY’S WHIMS 1.25
- 5. LILIES AND THISTLEDOWN 1.25
- 6. UNCLE JOE’S THANKSGIVING 1.25
-
-ROBERT CARTER AND BROTHERS, _New York_.
-
-
-
-
-[Illustration: FRONTISPIECE. Bessie’s Travels.]
-
-
-
-
- BESSIE
- ON
- HER TRAVELS.
-
- BY
- JOANNA H. MATHEWS.
-
- “Glad hearts, without reproach or blot,
- Which do thy work, and know it not.”
-
- NEW YORK.
- ROBERT CARTER AND BROTHERS,
- 530, BROADWAY.
-
- Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1870, by
-
- ROBERT CARTER AND BROTHERS,
-
- In the Clerk’s Office of the District Court of the United
- States for the Southern District of New York.
-
- CAMBRIDGE:
- PRESS OF JOHN WILSON AND SON
-
- DEDICATED
- TO
- LITTLE FLORENCE GUERNSEY,
-
- AS
-
- A SMALL TOKEN OF APPRECIATION OF HER FATHER’S LONG AND
- FAITHFUL FRIENDSHIP; AND WITH THE HOPE THAT
- THIS LAST MAY NOT PROVE TO HER THE
- LEAST OF THE “BESSIE BOOKS.”
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- I. PACKING UP 9
-
- II. AT SEA 33
-
- III. LUCY 54
-
- IV. AN OLD ENEMY, BUT NEW FRIEND 80
-
- V. BELLE’S HOME 101
-
- VI. LETTERS 127
-
- VII. A “REAL, REAL ADVENTURE” 157
-
- VIII. OLD JOE 184
-
- IX. KATE 211
-
- X. MAGGIE’S POEM 232
-
- XI. GOOD SEED 256
-
- XII. “HAPPY DELIGHTS” 275
-
- XIII. LITTLE ACTS OF KINDNESS 301
-
- XIV. WATER-LILIES 330
-
- XV. “OF SUCH IS THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN” 351
-
-
-
-
-BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS.
-
-
-
-
-I.
-
-_PACKING UP._
-
-
-What a twitter and flutter and chirping there was in the pretty nest
-which Maggie and Bessie Bradford called their own room; for there were
-four little girls, who were to start together the next day on their
-travels, and there was so much to be talked over. All the new places
-they were to visit, all the wonderful things they were to see and do;
-and, more than all, that sea voyage of three or four days. For none of
-them but Belle had ever been to sea, and it would be quite a new thing
-to all the rest.
-
-Then there was the packing, about which both Maggie and Bessie,
-especially the former, had been greatly concerned for the last week;
-for it seemed impossible to them that nurse and Jane could make all the
-necessary preparations for this important journey on the day before
-that on which they were to start.
-
-That morning Maggie’s excitement and impatience had overflowed. Waking
-at a very early hour, and finding Bessie still sleeping, she lay a few
-moments thinking of all that was to be done that day, and wondering
-that the household should still be so quiet, with the prospect of such
-important business before them.
-
-“I just expect the end of the matter will be that every one in the
-house, even poor mamma, who is not so very well yet, will have to turn
-to and help to make up for their pro-cras-to-na-tion!” said she to
-herself, indignantly; “and I’ve just a great mind to begin packing up
-myself, to set them a good example, and make them ashamed of a little
-girl like me taking time by the forelock so much better than they do.”
-
-No sooner said than done; and Maggie scrambled out of bed and into
-her dressing-gown and slippers quite forgetting to pause and think
-whether or no mamma would approve of her running about the house in
-such a guise, and if she would not be giving more trouble than help by
-meddling with what she did not understand.
-
-Upstairs she trotted to the topmost story, where was a room which Fred
-called the “put-all-room,” and which held, not only trunks and boxes
-of all shapes and sizes, but a couple of great, old-fashioned presses,
-and many another article not in common daily use, and stored there to
-be out of the way. The children thought it rather a treat to go in
-now and then with mamma or nurse, to rummage there and see what they
-could spy out: but none of them had ever gone there alone or without
-permission; and if Maggie had taken time to reflect, I think she would
-have known that her mamma would not wish her to do so, though she had
-never positively forbidden it.
-
-But just now the busy little head was too full of plans for making
-herself useful, to take heed of any thing else; and finding what she
-had hoped for, that the door was unlocked, she opened it, and went in.
-The trunks were not piled together at one end as they usually were, but
-stood singly, here and there about the room, just as Patrick had left
-them the day before, when he had examined them to see if they were in
-good order; and this Maggie observed with great satisfaction.
-
-“It just seems as if it was fixed to be convenient for me,” she said
-to herself; “and now I can try which is the heaviest one I can pull. I
-know I could not take those largest downstairs, but I think I could one
-of the middlings.”
-
-But, after various trials, she found to her great disappointment, that
-she could by no means move even one of the “middlings;” and was at
-last forced to content herself with a small black leather trunk, in
-which she thought she would put some of her own and Bessie’s clothes.
-
-“For a pack in time saves nine,” said Maggie to herself; “and even if
-it does not hold much, this little trunk is a better beginning than
-nothing.”
-
-Having fixed upon this prize, she contrived with some trouble to drag
-it from the room, and push and pull it to the head of the stairs. But
-here a new difficulty arose. She could by no means lift the trunk and
-carry it down: small as it was for the amount of packing she wished to
-do, it was quite too heavy for her little strength; and though for one
-moment she thought of pushing it over the edge of the top stair, and
-allowing it to slide down by its own weight, she soon reflected this
-would not do.
-
-“For it will just go and smash itself all to pieces, I suppose, and
-then make a horrid noise to wake the people all up,” she said again,
-feeling rather vexed with the innocent trunk. “Oh! I know what I’ll
-do: I’ll go in front of it and pull it down very gently, one step at a
-time.”
-
-But in spite of all the pains she took, the trunk seemed to Maggie to
-make the most outrageous noise, sliding over each stair with a grating
-sound, and coming down from the edge of one to another with a thump and
-a bang, which all her efforts could not silence. She was soon heartily
-sorry that she had ever touched it; but she must go on now, for she
-could not possibly pull it up again, and if she left her hold of it, it
-would go tumbling headlong to the bottom.
-
-However, she took heart of grace again by the time she had reached the
-foot of the top flight, for no one seemed to have been disturbed; the
-servants having all gone down stairs, and the boys, who slept in the
-third story, being sound sleepers. So she concluded to go on and not
-have all her pains thrown away; but she had gone only two or three
-steps on the second flight, her troublesome prize bumping after her,
-when she heard her father’s voice from below.
-
-“What are you busy with there, Patrick?” he said. “You are disturbing
-Mrs. Bradford, and will wake the children. Leave it till later in the
-day.”
-
-“O papa!” said Maggie, feeling rather guilty, and very much mortified,
-“it’s not Patrick, but me;” and as she spoke, she appeared round the
-turn of the stairs, while her attention being for the moment diverted,
-the trunk slid after her with a bang which seemed to jar the house.
-
-“You, my daughter!” said Mr. Bradford, coming up to where Maggie stood;
-“and what _are_ you doing here at this time in the morning?” and he
-looked down in great surprise at the small figure whose cheeks matched
-her scarlet dressing-gown, and whose curls were tossed and tumbled in
-the wildest confusion.
-
-“It’s this mean old trunk, papa,” said Maggie, pettishly; “the more
-I try to make it go softly, the more it won’t, but just squeaks and
-bumps all it can, the horrid thing!” and now she gave up the trunk very
-willingly into her father’s strong grasp.
-
-“What were you doing with it?” asked Mr. Bradford.
-
-“Taking it downstairs, so I could pack it with my things and Bessie’s,
-papa. I wanted to take mamma by surprise to see how useful I could be.”
-
-“You have taken mamma rather too much by surprise,” said her father,
-unable to help smiling; “for you have wakened and startled her. It
-is well to try to be useful, but one should try to be thoughtful
-and considerate at the same time, or our pains will be quite thrown
-away, as yours are now. You must go back to your bed, my daughter,
-and let this trunk alone;” and lifting the trunk he carried it to the
-third-story hall, Maggie looking on with a very crestfallen feeling.
-
-“It may stay there till we see if it is needed,” said Mr. Bradford,
-soothingly, as he saw her disturbed face; “and by and by, at the
-proper time, you may ask mamma if you can help her;” and taking the
-little hand which was trembling with cold and over-exertion, he led her
-back to her own room. Papa had been very kind, and could scarcely be
-said to have found fault with her; but Maggie, who began to feel that
-she had been somewhat to blame, would rather have been scolded than
-hear him laugh as he did when he told mamma how and where he had found
-her. She did not hear what he said, but she knew very well what he was
-talking about, and drew the bed-clothes over her head that she might
-shut out the sound of his laughter.
-
-“It’s too bad,” she thought: “most always when I try to be very
-superior, I make a mistake and people laugh at me about it. I feel as
-if I’d like to be mad at some one, but I can’t be mad at papa, and I
-don’t want to be mad at myself, ’cause I didn’t mean to do wrong; and
-it’s no use to be mad at the trunk, but I b’lieve I do feel a little
-provoked at it, it has made my hands hurt, and my arms do ache so.
-I’m real tired too.” And coming to the surface for air, Maggie turned
-over on her side, and presently dropped off into a sound morning nap;
-so that when nurse came to tell her she might get up, she found her
-still sleeping instead of wide awake as usual, and was bidden by Mrs.
-Bradford to let her sleep as long as she would after her exertion.
-
-Maggie was rather subdued and quiet all the first part of the morning,
-and more than ever grateful to papa, when she found that he had not
-told the boys, and so given them the opportunity to tease and laugh at
-her.
-
-“I suppose you couldn’t let me help you after my _unconsiderate_
-unusefulness this morning: could you, mamma?” she said, when she saw
-her mother gathering together the articles Jane was to stow in the
-trunks.
-
-“Well, yes: I think I can find something for you and Bessie to do,”
-said mamma: “you may take all these tapes, needles, spools, and so
-forth, into your own room, and see how neatly you can put them into
-this box; and all these ribbons may go into that one.”
-
-“Oh! thank you, mamma: I will let Bessie do the ribbons, ’cause they
-are the prettiest;” and away ran generous Maggie with her sister to
-begin the pleasant task.
-
-That done, mamma gave them leave to pack the clothes belonging to Miss
-Bessie Margaret Marian, and Miss Margaret Colonel Horace Rush Bradford,
-in another box; saying that since she did not feel as if she could do
-without her own little daughters, she would not ask them to leave the
-whole of their large family behind, and thought the dolls might prove a
-great diversion when they were tired, or perhaps shut up in some hotel
-on a rainy day.
-
-They were busy deciding what dresses should be taken and what left,
-when Mrs. Norris came round to see Mrs. Bradford for a few moments,
-bringing Lily with her; and while the ladies talked in one room, the
-little girls chattered away in the other, Belle coming in about the
-same time.
-
-“Oh!” said Lily, “is your mamma going to let you take your large dolls?
-my mamma will only let me take a tiny, weeny one that can go in a
-travelling-bag.”
-
-“I wouldn’t take any then,” said Belle. “I’m going to take my largest,
-biggest one of all.”
-
-“Not Belle Maggie Bessie?” questioned Maggie.
-
-“Yes: Belle Maggie Bessie!” repeated Belle, in a tone of determined
-obstinacy and snappishness, which showed that the subject was a sore
-one with her.
-
-“But your papa said last night that you could not take her, ’cause such
-a large doll would be too much trouble,” said Bessie.
-
-“Well, anyhow, I’m going to: he said I could this morning,” answered
-Belle.
-
-“Then you cried and cried and bothered him, till he said yes: I know
-you,” said Maggie, reproachfully.
-
-“I don’t care,” said Belle; but she did care, and now was ashamed
-that her little playmates should guess how she had worried her too
-indulgent papa.
-
-“You might repent yet and tell him you won’t take her,” said Bessie.
-
-“Yes, do, and make a Rip Van Winkle of her,” said Maggie.
-
-“I shan’t make her that ugly thing, and I shall take her,” said Belle,
-indignantly.
-
-“You needn’t be so cross,” said Maggie: “Bessie and I made all our
-other dolls Rip Van Winkles and William Tells, and it was good fun.
-Don’t you want to see them, Lily?”
-
-Lily assented; and, opening a deep drawer in the bureau, Maggie showed
-her all the various dolls belonging to herself and Bessie, lying with
-bandages on their eyes.
-
-“I don’t see what you call them William Tells and that other name for,”
-said Lily. “William Tell was the man Miss Ashton told us about, who
-shot an apple off his son’s head.”
-
-“Yes,” answered Maggie; “and we told Harry and Fred about it, but they
-knew before, and told us that the Swiss people believe that he and his
-companions went fast asleep in a cave for a great many hundred years,
-and some day they would wake up and rule over them.”
-
-“And who was the Winkle man?” asked Belle.
-
-“He was another old fellow who went up into the mountains and went to
-sleep for ever so many years; and when he woke up nobody knew him,
-and he did not know anybody. Harry told us about him. I don’t see how
-people can be so foolish as to sleep for so long; but it came into my
-head to make our dolls Rip Van Winkles and William Tells till we came
-back, and then we wouldn’t feel as if they were so lonely when they
-were asleep all the time.”
-
-“It’s only pretend, you know, and one can make b’lieve about dolls
-even better than about people,” said Bessie. “And it’s a great relief
-to suffering to go to sleep and forget it,” she added, as gravely
-as though there were no “pretend” about it, and the dolls were real
-children, feeling deeply the separation from their little mammas.
-
-“That’s a very nice thing to do. You do make such nice plays, Maggie,”
-said Lily, admiringly. “I shall do it with my dolls: you’d better too,
-Belle.”
-
-“Well, I don’t know; but I’m going to think about it,” said Belle, in
-whose little heart Maggie’s reproach had awakened a feeling of remorse
-for the selfishness and obstinacy she had shown about her doll. “I
-b’lieve Belle Maggie Bessie _is_ most too large. I can’t carry her much
-myself, and papa did say she’d be in everybody’s way. I guess I’ll make
-a William Tell of her, if Maggie and Bessie will let me put her with
-theirs.”
-
-“Yes, we will; and you can take a doll of moderation,” said Maggie,
-meaning that Belle could take a doll of moderate size.
-
-“Do you think you’ll be seasick on the steamer?” asked Lily.
-
-“Pooh! no, I shan’t. I won’t be,” said Maggie.
-
-“Perhaps you can’t help it,” said Belle. “I’m sure I didn’t mean to be
-seasick when I came here in the steamer, but I couldn’t help it; and oh
-dear!--it’s--it is horrid.”
-
-“Is being seasick any thing like being homesick?” asked Bessie.
-
-“Not exactly; but the two things very often go together, darling,” said
-Aunt Bessie, laughing, and speaking from the next room.
-
-“Then I’m more determined than ever not to be it,” said Maggie, meaning
-seasick by “it.” “But then I couldn’t be homesick either, when I have
-so many of my own home people with me.”
-
-But, in spite of her determination, Maggie had privately a great dread
-of this same seasickness. She could not bear to be sick; not that she
-was impatient or cross when this was the case with her, but that she
-thought sickness, like sleep, was “a great waste of being alive.” She
-wanted to be able to run about and amuse herself all the time; and it
-was “such fun” to go to sea, that she was very much afraid lest any
-thing should interfere with her enjoyment of it.
-
-“They give people sour things when they are seasick,” said Belle, who,
-having once suffered in this way, thought herself entitled to give all
-necessary information on the subject. “That’s the only nice thing about
-it. They gave me lots of sour oranges and lemons.”
-
-“But Bessie and I don’t like sour things, so that won’t make it any
-better for us,” said Maggie, soberly. Nevertheless, she treasured
-Belle’s remark; and not seeing her way clearly to a private stock
-of oranges and lemons, she watched her opportunity when her little
-playmates were gone, and taking Patrick into her confidence, begged
-him to give her “two pickles and a whole lot of vinegar,” not to eat
-herself, because mamma would not allow that, but to be prepared, when
-all the rest of the family were seasick and she had to take care of
-them.
-
-The good-natured Irishman, expressing great admiration at the
-“forethought of her,” furnished her with what she wanted; and Maggie
-went off, rejoicing in her spoils.
-
-The pickles were stowed away in the soup-tureen belonging to her doll’s
-dinner-set; and she contrived, when nurse and Jane were not looking, to
-slip them into a corner of one of the trunks. The vinegar she poured
-into a vial she had also obtained from Patrick; and as the cork did not
-fit very tightly, and she feared the liquid might run out if she put it
-into the trunk, she hid it in her bosom, heroically enduring the smell
-of the vinegar, which was exceedingly disagreeable to her, “for the
-sake of my family,” as she told Bessie.
-
-For Bessie’s quick little nose soon smelt out the vinegar, which she
-also disliked very much; and after several sniffs and exclamations
-of disgust from her, and much wondering as to where that “horrid,
-vinegarish smell did come from,” Maggie felt forced to tell her the
-secret which she had meant to keep until they were safely on board the
-steamer.
-
-But Bessie was by no means so struck with admiration as Patrick had
-been, and for once did not think Maggie’s plan a good one; at least not
-unless she could be persuaded to tell her mamma of it.
-
-“For you know, dear Maggie,” she said with a doubtful shake of her
-head, “mamma does not like us to keep secrets from her; and don’t you
-think she will know what is best to take?”
-
-“Well, I don’t know,” said Maggie, unwilling to give up her cherished
-plan; “maybe she won’t think about sour things, and I’m sure she’d be
-very thankful when she’s seasick, and finds an unexpected pickle just
-on hand.”
-
-“I think she’ll like it just as well if she knows about it before,”
-said Bessie. “And I don’t believe it is quite right; and, besides, it
-is such a very bad-smelling secret to have. Tell her, and see what she
-will say.”
-
-But even as they were talking, they found that the “bad-smelling
-secret” had betrayed itself; for nurse, going to finish the packing of
-the trunk where the pickles were concealed, also perceived the scent of
-vinegar.
-
-“What have you been putting in here that smells so of vinegar?” she
-said to Jane.
-
-“Nothing,” was the answer. “I’ve had no vinegar.”
-
-“But it’s here, surely,” said nurse, sniffing around in her turn: “it’s
-about this trunk, spilled on something I suppose: that’s some of your
-carelessness, Jane.” And Mammy, who was rather apt to snub her younger
-helpmate, lifted several articles in turn to her nose.
-
-“Oh dear! I’ll have to tell: she’s scolding poor Janey for it,”
-whispered Maggie, in great dismay.
-
-“What’s this?” exclaimed nurse, when, having pulled out half a dozen
-things, she came upon the tiny tureen. “Pickles! and the vinegar
-dribbled out of them on the master’s clean shirts. Well! that naughty
-Frankie! he’s gone beyond himself in such a trick as that. He’s been
-busy with your doll’s china, Maggie, my honey; but where in the world
-did he lay his mischievous hands on pickles? I’ll just speak my mind to
-Patrick for leaving them in the child’s reach. Pickles indeed! but he’s
-a pickle!”
-
-This was too much for Maggie. She could not hear her little brother and
-Patrick blamed, and she spoke out at once.
-
-“It was not Frankie who put them there,” she said: “it was I, and I
-want them to stay there.”
-
-“Indeed, they’ll not then,” said nurse. “Ye know your mother never lets
-ye touch them; and what a way would that be to take them anyhow? What
-ails ye the day, Maggie? I think the spirit of mischief has hold of ye.”
-
-Maggie was displeased in her turn, and, as usual, was dignified and
-made use of all the long words she could think of, which were suitable
-to the case.
-
-“If you interfere with my pickle arrangements, I shall not be
-responsible for the seasickness,” she said solemnly.
-
-“Responsible for the seasickness! I should think not,” said nurse,
-forgetting her vexation in her amusement, and bursting into a hearty
-laugh, in which she was joined by Jane; while Maggie stood swelling and
-indignant; “responsible for the seasickness! and what put that into
-your head, my lamb, and what do you think pickles stuffed into trunks
-have to do with it?”
-
-But Maggie was too much hurt and disappointed to answer, and could only
-reply with a nod to Bessie’s plea that she would let her explain.
-
-This was soon done; and nurse, sorry to see Maggie so grieved, said,--
-
-“The pickles would have done ye little good packed away in the trunk
-which ye will not see till we come to land again, honey; and don’t ye
-fret your little soul about it, for your mamma has provided all things
-needful; and I promise you if all the rest are taken down but yourself,
-ye shall play nurse to your heart’s content, and wait on everybody. Ye
-did mean to be considerate and thoughtful, I’m sure; but it’s always
-best for such young heads to take counsel of those that are wiser and
-older in such things.”
-
-Having allowed so much to be confessed, Maggie thought she might as
-well make a clean breast of the whole affair; and produced the bottle
-of vinegar, with many entreaties to be allowed to keep it. Nurse shook
-her head; but Mrs. Bradford came into the room just then, and she
-turned the matter over to her.
-
-Mamma laughed too when she heard the story, and told Maggie to give
-up her pickles and vinegar, and she would provide her with something
-better; so taking both the little girls into her own room, she
-delighted them by presenting each with a beautiful morocco satchel,
-just of a right size for small travellers, and with lock and key all
-complete, to say nothing of a light chain by which they could be hung
-over the shoulder.
-
-Maggie was farther consoled by a bottle of smelling salts, one
-of hartshorn, and three lemons; and this she appeared to think a
-sufficient safeguard against seasickness for all the passengers and
-crew of the steamer. For the rest of the day her restless energies
-found satisfaction in locking and unlocking, arranging and rearranging
-this satchel and its contents, and the busy head and fingers were kept
-from farther mischief or hindering “help.”
-
-
-
-
-II.
-
-_AT SEA._
-
-
-“Are we at sea now, papa?” said Maggie, holding by her father’s hand as
-she jumped up and down on the deck of the steamer; “are we really at
-sea?”
-
-“Hardly at sea yet, little daughter: we are still going down the bay.
-When we are fairly at sea we shall lose sight of our own great city,
-where we have left grandmamma and the boys, and all the other dear
-ones.”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie, who was by no means in such overflowing spirits
-as Maggie; “it’s rather sorrowful to leave so many of our own people
-behind us. I wish everybody could have come with us.”
-
-“Then we’d have no one to write to,” said Maggie, who found consolation
-in all partings in the thought of letter-writing, in which she
-delighted.
-
-“But, papa, will you tell us when we are really and truly at sea?”
-
-“You’ll be apt to know that without telling, little maiden,” said a
-gentleman who was passing: “we have had high winds the last three days,
-and shall find it rough enough outside, I take it;” and he passed on.
-
-“Who’s that, papa?” asked Bessie.
-
-“That is the captain,” said Mr. Bradford.
-
-“What a nice face he has,” said the little girl.
-
-“What did he mean by ‘outside’?” asked Maggie.
-
-“He meant outside of the bay or harbor. We are going now through
-what is called the Narrows, then we shall pass Sandy Hook, where the
-light-house is, and be fairly out at sea.”
-
-“And what did he mean by ‘rough’?” asked Maggie.
-
-“Well, he meant the waves might be rather high, and toss and roll the
-ship about more than you would find quite comfortable.”
-
-“Oh! I shan’t mind it,” said Maggie. “It will be fun.”
-
-“He meant you’d be seasick,” said Belle, with a wise shake of her head.
-
-“I don’t believe he ever meant that,” answered Maggie, in a tone which
-said she considered the idea almost an insult. “He must see how well
-and strong I look.”
-
-“I hope you may be able to keep to your determination, my little girl,”
-said her father, smiling.
-
-“Why, is this what people make such a fuss about?” said Maggie, when
-some time after the threatened rolling and pitching began: “I think it
-is lovely. But, then, papa,” she added presently, “perhaps it would be
-nicer if you would ask that good-natured-looking captain not to let the
-ship do it quite so much. It seems to make my head so very _bobbly_.”
-
-“The captain cannot help it, dear,” said her father, looking half in
-pity, half in amusement, at the face which Maggie was making such
-desperate efforts to keep smiling and unconcerned. “The waves roll the
-vessel about in this way, and you know the captain does not rule them.
-We must bear it as we can; but I hope by and by you will become used to
-it, and not mind it so much.”
-
-“Oh! I don’t _mind_ it, papa,” said Maggie, still determined that these
-rolling waves should not conquer her; “at least not so very much, and
-I’m not a bit seasick; only--only--I don’t think the sea is quite so
-very comfortable to be on as the land: do you?”
-
-Hapless little Maggie! Half an hour more, and the “bobbly” head lay
-in mamma’s lap, hands and feet hung helplessly, chattering tongue was
-still, save for an occasional piteous, “O mamma!” and the merry dancing
-eyes, usually so wide-open and quick to notice all around them, were
-closed as though they never cared to lift their lids again. Even the
-new satchel had lost its charm, and hung unheeded at her side. Its
-cherished contents, which she had intended to be of so much use to
-others, proved of none to herself. Lemons, smelling salts, hartshorn,
-and many other remedies, were tried without success; and it would have
-been hard to find a more wretched little girl than was poor Maggie,
-for the next twenty-four hours. Belle and Lily were too ill themselves
-to feel at all inclined to triumph over the failure of Maggie’s
-“determination;” though I do not think they would have been unkind
-enough to do so, had they been ever so well.
-
-As for Bessie, she made what the captain called “a capital little
-sailor,” and to her fell the part of nurse, which Maggie had intended
-to fill. And never was a more gentle, tender, thoughtful young
-nurse than our little “princess,” handy and knowing enough for
-seven-and-twenty instead of seven years old. Now she was rubbing
-Maggie’s cold hands, now bathing Belle’s dizzy, aching head with such
-soothing fingers; now coaxing Lily to take one of those oranges which
-were to work such wonders; now amusing baby, for Mammy was in a bad
-way too, and mamma’s attention was pretty well taken up with her poor
-Maggie; now showing a picture-book to some fretful child whose mother
-was too ill to attend to it. Always ready not only to do, but to see
-where and how she could do, some small service for a sufferer, she went
-about from one to another like some dainty little fairy, with a mission
-of healing and kindness. So long as she could keep her feet, which was
-not always possible, the rolling of the ship only troubled her by the
-distress it brought to others, especially Maggie; but all her pleasure
-in her beloved sea was lost in her sympathy for her sister. It was so
-strange and unusual to see Maggie lying helpless and subdued, with no
-thought or care for any thing about her, that it made Bessie herself
-very miserable; and she could scarcely believe her father’s assurances
-that Maggie was not going to die, and would probably soon feel better.
-
-But she thought despair and misery could go no farther upon the
-following morning, when, having dressed Margaret Bessie Marion and
-Margaret Colonel Horace Rush in the new travelling suits Aunt Annie had
-made for them, and combed their “real live hair,” she brought them and
-placed one on each side of Maggie, as she lay among the pile of pillows
-and shawls papa had arranged for her upon the deck.
-
-“Maggie dear,” she said coaxingly, “would it not comfort you a little
-to hold Bessie Margaret Marion? She looks so sweet.”
-
-“No,” moaned Maggie, without opening her eyes: “I never want her again,
-Bessie, never. You can have her.”
-
-“Oh, no!” said Bessie, cheerily: “you’ll want her when you feel better,
-and I hope that will be pretty soon.”
-
-“No,” said Maggie again: “I’ll never be better. And, Bessie, I think
-I’d better tell you my will. I’m too sick to write it myself, but you
-can remember.”
-
-“But you’re not going to die,” answered Bessie, dropping the doll upon
-her lap and looking at Maggie in fresh dismay.
-
-“Yes, I feel it,” said Maggie, with a tragic whisper and shake of her
-head.
-
-“Oh, no, dear! Papa said not, and the doctor said so too. They said
-people hardly ever died of seasickness.”
-
-“Then I’m one of the ‘hardly evers,’ Bessie,” persisted Maggie,
-seeming, poor child, to find some relief in the idea; “and I’d
-better make my will, and tell you who I want my playthings and other
-_possessings_ to go to.”
-
-Bessie did not know whether to be most alarmed at Maggie’s words, or
-consoled by her belief that her father and the doctor must know best;
-and she listened in silence while Maggie went on, speaking slowly and
-with many pauses.
-
-“You can have all my dolls, Bessie, ’cept Josephine Matilda, and she’ll
-be good for Baby, ’cause she’s Indian rubber and can’t be broken; and
-mamma my prize writing-desk, and papa my new satchel; and my doll’s tea
-set, the white and gilt one for you, and the blue one for Lily; same
-with the dinner-sets--only, red for Belle--and my tin kitchen too--oh!
-I can’t tell any more--oh! mamma--mamma!” and here poor Maggie’s will
-came abruptly to an end.
-
-But things brightened towards the latter part of that day, for they
-came into smoother waters; and Maggie, as well as all the other seasick
-passengers, began to feel easier.
-
-“Hallo!” said the captain, pausing as he came by to look at the little,
-pale, tired face upon the pillows: “is this the jolly little woman who
-came on board yesterday afternoon? Why, this will not do. I shall have
-to take her in hand myself, Mrs. Bradford: will you let me turn doctor?”
-
-“Most certainly, Captain, if you can do any thing to relieve her. Every
-thing seems to fail except time and patience, and of the last my poor
-child has shown a fair sample,” answered the anxious mother.
-
-With a nod to Maggie, who, at the sound of his hearty, cheery voice
-had half opened her eyes to look at him, and another to Bessie, who sat
-upon the edge of her sister’s couch, he walked away; coming back after
-a little while, followed by the steward carrying a small tray. On the
-tray were two plates, the one holding a crisp slice of brown toast; the
-other, something which Bessie thought very uninviting, a dry, rather
-black-looking herring.
-
-“I wonder if he is going to ask Maggie to eat that thing,” she said to
-herself. “Idea of it! I know she never can do it. I’m afraid he’s not
-so very nice as he looks, and that he has very poor sense.”
-
-But the captain asked Maggie nothing about the herring; but, sitting
-down beside her, he took the tray from the steward, and cutting a small
-bit from the fish, he held it to Maggie’s lips. Maggie turned away her
-head in disgust, in which Bessie sympathized.
-
-“Come, come,” said the captain, “every one has to do as I say on this
-ship, especially when I turn doctor.”
-
-He did not smile, though he looked as good-natured and pleasant
-as ever; and, doubtful if he were in joke or in earnest, Maggie
-reluctantly took the bit of fish from the fork, and then a mouthful of
-the toast, which she swallowed with the same martyr-like air. Another
-and another followed, taken with less and less reluctance; till at
-last Bessie was surprised to see Maggie’s eyes remain open, and fix
-themselves rather longingly upon the plate, as if she wished the
-captain would make the intervals shorter. He took no notice, however,
-but fed her slowly, till fish and toast had both entirely disappeared,
-when he said,--
-
-“I think we shall do now. I’ll be back in half an hour, Mrs. Bradford,
-to see how my patient here is getting on,” and walked away.
-
-“Maggie,” said Bessie, as soon as he had gone, “wasn’t that meal very
-nas--, I mean rather disagreeable?”
-
-“Why, no,” said Maggie, “it was delicious; and I think that captain is
-lovely, Bessie. He’s the best doctor ever I saw. The next time I come
-to sea--which I hope I never will again--I’ll put herring in my satchel
-’stead of lemons. They never did me a bit of good.”
-
-Bessie privately thought this worse than the “pickle arrangement;” but
-since the captain’s prescription had done Maggie so much good, she
-had nothing more to say against it or him; and when he came back at
-the promised time it was to find his little patient beginning to look
-like herself, and talking and smiling with something of her accustomed
-brightness.
-
-This was the last of Maggie’s seasickness, and by the next morning she
-was nearly as lively and well as usual; though she now and then fell
-into a fit of thought, as if she were considering some knotty question;
-and she was observed to regard Margaret Bessie Marion with more than
-usual interest, and to give her a great amount of petting and tending.
-At length the question which was weighing on her mind found words.
-
-“Papa,” she said, “don’t lawyers know about wills?”
-
-“They ought to, Maggie,” answered Mr. Bradford. “Why, you don’t want to
-make yours, do you?”
-
-“I have made it, papa,” said Maggie, with all the gravity of a judge.
-“I told Bessie about it, but I want to know if it’s against the law to
-undo the things you’ve willed, if you don’t die when you thought you
-were going to.”
-
-“Not at all,” said papa, laughing: “you may make your will, and ‘undo
-it’ as often as you please, while you are living.”
-
-“For the people won’t be disappointed as long as they don’t know you’ve
-willed them the things,” said Maggie, meditatively. “Anyhow, I s’pose
-my people would be more disappointed to have me die, than not to have
-my things.”
-
-“They would indeed, little daughter,” said her father, drawing her
-tenderly to him: “to lose our Maggie would be to take a great deal of
-sunshine out of the lives of ‘your people.’”
-
-“And I know Bessie don’t care for my dollies so long as we can play
-with them together: do you, Bessie?”
-
-“Oh, no! Maggie; and if I hadn’t you, I should never play again, but be
-sorrowful all my life;” and Bessie put on an air of extreme melancholy
-at the bare idea of such a possibility.
-
-So this matter being settled to the satisfaction of all, and Maggie
-feeling like her own self once more, she and Bessie were free to enjoy
-all the new pleasures about them.
-
-They were a merry, happy party, those four little girls, Maggie,
-Bessie, Belle, and Lily; always pleasant and good-natured with
-one another; never fretting or quarrelling in their play. As
-for Maggie, her new friend the captain used to call her “Little
-Make-the-best-of-it;” for her sunny temper found so much good in all
-things, and so many reasons why all that was, was best.
-
-He escorted the young quartette all over the steamer, taking them down
-into the machine rooms, where they saw the great furnaces glowing
-with hot coals, and tended by strong men in scarlet shirts, with
-their sleeves rolled up to the shoulders; where the iron beam and
-pistons went up and down, up and down, without a moment’s pause or
-irregularity; where each little wheel and joint went steadily on doing
-its appointed work, without which the huge machinery must have stood
-motionless and useless.
-
-The sympathies of the children, especially those of Maggie, were
-greatly excited in behalf of a man whom they saw watching the steam
-dial plates at the upper end of the engine room. There were three of
-these plates, the centre one very large, the other two smaller; and the
-man paced up and down the narrow platform in front, almost without a
-moment’s pause, turning his eyes every now and then to the dials.
-
-“What funny clocks,” said Bessie, “and how that man watches them! Why
-is he so anxious about the time?”
-
-“Only one of them is a clock,” said the captain; “the others are to
-show how much steam we have on, and how it is working, and if all is
-right.”
-
-Bessie did not understand, and said so; and the captain, taking her up
-in his arms, tried to explain the use and working of the dials to the
-little girls; but it was rather a difficult matter for them to take in,
-and I do not know that he made it very clear to them.
-
-“But I want to know about that man,” said Maggie: “does he have to walk
-here and look at these things all the time?”
-
-“All the time,” said Captain Brooks.
-
-“Doesn’t he eat and sleep?” asked Belle.
-
-“Oh! to be sure,” said the captain. “I said he was here all the time;
-but I should have said a man was here all the time; for there is
-another who takes his turn while this one rests.”
-
-“But are you not tired sometimes?” Bessie asked of the man, who just
-then came to the end of the platform where she was.
-
-He nodded assent as he turned, but made no answer in words, did not
-even smile, being a grum-looking man, and seeming altogether intent on
-his dials.
-
-“He’s not very polite just to nod at you and not speak,” said Lily.
-
-“It is against the rule of the ship for him to talk while he is on
-duty, and he always keeps the rule,” said the captain.
-
-“Oh!” said Maggie, her pity more than ever roused for the object of
-her interest: “does he have to walk on this little bit of a place with
-nothing to amuse him, and can’t even talk? I think that is pretty hard:
-_I_ never could do it.”
-
-“But if he were talking and chatting with every one who came along, and
-thinking only of his own amusement, he would forget his work and have
-his attention taken off from those plates which it is his business to
-watch constantly,” said the captain.
-
-“And then we’d be blown up or burnt up or drowned or something,” said
-Maggie.
-
-“Not as bad as that, I hope,” said Captain Brooks, smiling; “but
-something might readily go wrong before he perceived it.”
-
-“It seems like watching conscience all the time for fear we do
-something naughty,” said Bessie, who had been thoughtfully regarding
-the man since she last spoke. “If we forget conscience, or don’t pay
-attention where it points, we can be naughty before we know it.”
-
-“Just so,” said the captain, looking at her half in amusement, half in
-surprise; “but tell me, little one, do you find some moral lesson in
-every thing?”
-
-“I don’t know what ‘moral’ is, sir,” said Bessie, demurely; “but I
-think that man is a pretty good lesson to us.”
-
-Here roguish Lily, for whom the prospect of being “blown up or burnt
-up or drowned or something,” did not seem to have any terrors, and who
-had been all this time trying to distract the watchman’s attention by
-shaking her head and finger at him, flirting her pocket-handkerchief,
-and giving little squeaks and “hems,” all without any avail, suddenly
-astonished him and accomplished her object, by firing a paper pellet
-which hit him directly between the eyes. The gruff old fellow only
-gave her a growl in return, however, and recommenced his pacing up and
-down; but Lily went capering about in an ecstasy of delight at her
-unlooked-for success, till the captain, who could not help laughing,
-called her to order with,--
-
-“Here, here, you elf! have done with your monkey tricks, or I shall
-shut you up in a cage till we get to shore.”
-
-“You’ve none large enough,” said laughing Lily.
-
-“There are plenty of hencoops on board,” said the captain, pretending
-to look fierce, “and carpenters too, to make any sized cage I may
-order. You had better look out.”
-
-“I don’t think it’s fair to tease the poor man,” said Bessie, “he has
-to be so stupid all the time, and he is so dutiful too. Let’s go away,
-Captain Brooks, and not let him be teased any more.”
-
-So the captain took them away in search of other novelties; but Maggie
-and Bessie did not forget “the poor, stupid man,” as the latter called
-him, meaning only that she thought he passed his time in such a dull,
-uninteresting manner; and they set their young wits to work to see if
-they could not do him some kindness.
-
-“I don’t see the good of it,” said Lily. “The captain said he was a
-surly old fellow, any way, and didn’t care to talk much when he could.
-I guess we’d better just let him alone.”
-
-“We oughtn’t to judge by appearances,” said Maggie, gravely. “Bessie
-and I have learned that.”
-
-“But not till we’d performed some pretty bad mistakes,” said Bessie:
-“so take a lesson of us.”
-
-“Tell us about them,” said Belle; and accordingly Belle and Lily were
-much interested in hearing of Lem and the silver cup, and of Aunt
-Patty; Maggie also confessing how she had for a long time misjudged
-Mrs. Jones, of Quam Beach, because she had a disagreeable manner.
-
-
-
-
-III.
-
-_LUCY._
-
-
-Old ocean seemed to wish to make amends, during the last two days of
-the short voyage, for the tossing and rolling he had given our friends
-during the first. It was as smooth as a river almost, and broke itself
-up into little wavelets which seemed formed only to sparkle and catch
-the sunshine. The weather was warm and summer-like, growing more and
-more so the farther south they went; and the children spent the whole
-of their time on deck, even taking their meals there: for though Maggie
-declared herself “all right now,” she could not eat when taken below,
-and it was “such fun” to have breakfast, dinner, and tea, sent up to
-them and eaten on deck in such _impromptu_ fashion, that the others
-were only too glad of the excuse of bearing her company. Mamma and Mrs.
-Norris preferred it too; so they had quite a sociable, cosey time of it.
-
-As for Bessie, she wanted “no better contentment” than to sit watching
-the sea. The sky; the waves; the white sea-gulls, which now and then
-came sailing round on their snowy wings; the other vessels they saw in
-the far distance, or sometimes near at hand; the huge porpoises which
-threw themselves with a sudden leap and plunge out from the water and
-back again,--each and all had their charm for her; and, if undisturbed,
-she would sit for hours, her doll clasped in her arms, gazing her fill,
-and thinking her own thoughts. Happy, peaceful thoughts they were too,
-if one might judge by the expression of her sweet little face.
-
-“How my Bessie loves the sea, does she not?” said her father, sitting
-down beside her one time when he found her thus absorbed.
-
-“Yes, papa, dearly; but then I love the real sea better.”
-
-“But this is the real sea, darling.”
-
-“But I mean the _real, real_ sea, papa; the true, _very_ sea,” said the
-little girl.
-
-“I do not know how you could have more real sea than this, dear,” said
-her father, rather at a loss to know what she could mean. “We are many,
-many miles from land. You can see none on any side. It is water, water,
-the real true ocean, all around us, as far and farther than our eyes
-can reach. You do not mean that you would have it rough and stormy?”
-
-“Oh, no, papa!” Bessie answered, rather puzzled herself how to make her
-meaning plain to her father; “but I mean that kind of sea where the
-waves come slowly, slowly on the beach, all white and curly, and make
-that nice sound I like so much. It does not come in this kind of a sea.”
-
-“Oh, ho!” said her father, “I understand. It is the _seashore_ you are
-longing for, even more than the open sea itself. Well, perhaps one of
-these days, you may be there again.”
-
-“Oh! do you think I might be, papa? Oh, that would be so delightful!”
-and she turned her little, eager, wistful face to her father with such
-a sparkle in her eye.
-
-“I think it more than likely that such a thing will come to pass,
-Bessie,” said Mr. Bradford; but he did not tell her what a pleasant
-surprise awaited her in the course of her summer travels.
-
-“Papa,” she said again presently, “do not these dear little waves we
-have to-day make you think of our Maggie? They seem just like her, as
-if they were dancing and laughing, and so glad and gay.”
-
-“Yes,” said her father, pleased at the pretty conceit of the
-affectionate little sister, “and God’s sunshine, pouring down upon
-these merry waves and touching them with light and sparkle, is like the
-love and tenderness which make our Maggie’s heart so gay and happy.”
-
-“And I am a little bit of Maggie’s sunshine: am I not, papa?” asked the
-sweet Bessie.
-
-The reply came in a squeeze, half a dozen smothering kisses, and a
-squeal meant to express affection and delight, from Maggie herself,
-who, coming up behind them and hearing Bessie’s question, answered
-after her own peculiar fashion.
-
-Yes: they were both true sunbeams, these two dear little girls:
-sunbeams as all children may be, because they were happy; happy because
-they were good and generous and loving; sunbeams to one another and to
-all around them, shedding light and brightness wherever they passed.
-
-“Bessie,” said Maggie, when she had done hugging and kissing her
-sister, “I’ve made a very surprising discovery. Do you see that little
-girl sitting over there? I’ve seen her before.”
-
-“Yes,” answered Bessie. “She’s a kind of errand girl and helps the
-stewardess. Yesterday morning when you were so sick she brought some
-ice for you; but I didn’t speak to her, ’cause I felt so bad about
-you.”
-
-“But, do you know who her father is, Bessie?”
-
-“No,” said Bessie. “Who?”
-
-“That man downstairs, the steam-clock man. Isn’t that very curious?”
-
-“Why, yes. How did you find out, Maggie?”
-
-“Well, Belle and Lily and I were there, while you looked at the water,
-and that child came and stood by us; and she looked so very wishful
-at our dolls, that I told her she might hold Bessie Margaret Marion a
-little while if she would be careful of her; and you don’t know how
-pleased she seemed then; and, Bessie, what do you think, the poor child
-never had a doll in her life, ’cept only a rag one, and she has no
-mother or sisters or any one but her father; and the captain lets her
-live with her father on board the steamer; and she tries to help the
-stewardess and run about; and she don’t like the sea a bit, she is so
-tired of being on it most all the time; and she’s just my age, only a
-year older; and Lily asked her if her father was a cross patch to her,
-and she was rather mad at that, and said no: he was good and kind as
-could be, and she loved him dearly. And so I told her Lily did not mean
-to make her mad,--only we thought perhaps she did not find him very
-interesting ’cause he would not talk much. But she did not seem to like
-that very much either: so I said, very quickly, that maybe the reason
-her father did not talk much was because he had so much thinking to do;
-and then she looked pleased again, and said yes, that was it, but he
-always talked enough to her. And then I told her I felt so very sorry
-for him, ’cause he had to walk up and down that little place, with
-nothing to do but to look at those old clock things; and I knew I never
-could be so strict with my duty, for I would be sure to laugh or talk
-or something.”
-
-“And didn’t she look pleased when you said that about her father?”
-asked Bessie, when Maggie had come to the end of this long story.
-
-“Oh, yes! And she said he did not like to do it, but he had to make a
-living,” answered Maggie.
-
-“I’m real sorry for both of them,” said Bessie. “You know, Maggie, we
-said we would like to be kind to him if we could, ’cause he had such
-a stupid time; and I s’pose he would be just as pleased if we did a
-kind thing to his girl.”
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie: “if he’s a dutiful father, he would. I was thinking
-we might give her a doll to amuse herself with.”
-
-“Not one of ours?” said Bessie, holding Margaret Colonel Horace fast,
-as if she thought she was to be taken from her at once.
-
-“Oh, no! We never could give up these dolls,” said Maggie. “We love
-them too much; and besides the Colonel gave them to us, so it would
-never do. But then, you know, we have some of our own money with us;
-and I thought when the steamer stopped going and we come to that part
-of the world that is land again, maybe we might find a toy-store and
-buy her a doll of her own.”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie. “Papa, do they have stores in Savannah?”
-
-“Plenty,” answered papa, “and doubtless we shall find a toy-store
-without trouble.”
-
-“And we may buy Lucy a doll, may we not, papa?” said Maggie. “You see,
-it’s pretty hard for a child to have no relations, or dolls, or other
-advantages, except only a father.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mr. Bradford, laughing, “if you choose to spend your money
-to give pleasure to this little girl, who is so poorly off, you may
-certainly do so.”
-
-The children were delighted with their papa’s consent; and when Belle
-and Lily heard of the plan, they begged Maggie and Bessie to let
-them join in giving this pleasure to the poor child who had so few
-enjoyments. Maggie and Bessie readily agreed: and it was settled that
-when they reached Savannah, one of the first things to be done should
-be the purchase of a doll for Lucy Waters; for such was the name of the
-little girl.
-
-Our four young friends were not the only children on the steamer with
-whom Lucy had something to do, as you shall hear.
-
-“Father,” she said, as she sat upon his knee that evening, while he was
-off duty, “there are some nice little girls on board, this trip.”
-
-“Humph!” was all the answer she received; for, in spite of Lucy’s
-assertion that her father talked enough to her, he did not throw away
-too many words, even upon her: but Lucy was used to his way, and did
-not mind it, for she knew he loved her dearly.
-
-“There are,” she insisted. “One of them let me take her doll, and it
-can turn its head; and she let me do it, and move its arms too. And
-another one was kind to me when some other children said bad things to
-me. There they are, father: don’t you see them?” and she pointed to
-where Maggie and Bessie were sitting, with their father and mother.
-
-“Thought so,” said Waters, who was not really surly, but only silent
-and unsociable.
-
-“Why how, father! Did you know about it?”
-
-“No,” replied her father, “but thought like enough it was them when you
-said some spoke nice to you. Seem like kindly, loving, little souls.”
-
-“There are two more nice ones, that play with ’em,” said Lucy.
-
-“Humph!” said Waters again, “one of ’em is a saucy mischief, I guess.”
-
-“Oh!” said Lucy, “I know which one you mean. They call her Lily. I
-didn’t like her so much at first; but I do now, ’cause she slapped a
-boy’s face who said hateful things to me.”
-
-If Lucy imagined her father would ask what the boy had said, she was
-mistaken; for he smoked away without a word more. But the memory of her
-wrongs was too great to be borne in silence, and presently she said,--
-
-“Are not my clothes very nice, father?”
-
-“Nice as I can afford, anyhow,” he answered without taking his pipe
-from his lips.
-
-“I told that boy and his sisters they were as nice as anybody’s,” said
-Lucy; “but maybe they’re not.” And taking off her bonnet, she turned
-it round and round, eying it rather mournfully. “I don’t think this
-kind of a hat is so nice as those little girls’, father; nor this long
-apron so nice as their short frocks. I wonder if I couldn’t make
-’em look better, so folks wouldn’t laugh at me.”
-
-Now, I think Waters was somewhat mistaken when he said Lucy’s clothes
-were as nice as he could afford. He had good wages, and his little girl
-did not want for what was necessary to make her neat and comfortable:
-but he did not know how to dress her; and the enormous shaker bonnet,
-which would have fitted a grown woman; and long, scant apron which came
-to her feet,--cost no less, perhaps more, than the short frock and
-round straw hat, which would have been more convenient and suitable for
-a girl of her age.
-
-Poor Lucy knew she looked very different from most children of her
-own size; but, although she kept herself very tidy, she did not see
-how she was to remedy this difficulty. She was a funny little figure,
-certainly: more so than she was aware of; but it had never troubled
-her much until this afternoon, when some rude but well-dressed boys
-and girls, who would have been very indignant if they had been told
-they were not half so well-bred and polite as the engineer’s little
-daughter, had annoyed her very much.
-
-Maggie and Bessie had noticed these children, but, seeing how rough
-and boisterous they were, had rather avoided them. But that afternoon,
-while they, with Belle and Lily, were talking to Lucy, and asking her
-some questions about her homeless, seafaring life, these boys and girls
-came up to them.
-
-Not having at that moment any dispute to settle among themselves, they
-were ready to band together against any one else; and Lucy presented a
-tempting mark for attack.
-
-“Ho! you seem to have picked up a fine acquaintance there!” said Arthur
-Lathrop, the eldest of the brothers.
-
-“She is dressed in the last fashion,” said Charlotte, his sister, with
-a scornful look at Lucy.
-
-“Quite the style,” joined in the other boy. “You brought your bonnet
-from the Paris Exposition: did you not, ma’am?”
-
-Poor Lucy had not the least idea what the Paris Exposition was; but she
-knew very well that these unkind children were making fun of her, and
-she drew back with a hurt and angry look.
-
-“Couldn’t you give my sisters the pattern of that lovely bonnet?” said
-Arthur.
-
-“And of that outside toggery too,” said William, “whatever its name is.
-Not being used to such an elegant style of dress, I don’t know what to
-call it.”
-
-“You ought to be ashamed to talk so,” said Bessie, indignantly. “She’s
-a nice, good, little girl, who tries to be a help to every one; and if
-her clothes are not so very pretty, she can’t help it. It is better to
-have good clothes and be bad, than to have bad clothes and be good,”
-added the little girl, saying just the opposite of what she intended.
-
-But no one noticed her mistake. The Lathrops were all too intent
-on their victim, the other little ones too full of sympathy and
-indignation, to pay much heed to a choice of words.
-
-“Well,” returned William, provokingly, “don’t we say she is the most
-stylish, fashionable young lady we have seen this long time. For me, I
-am struck dumb with admiration.”
-
-“To be sure,” said Charlotte, “didn’t you say that bonnet was the
-latest fashion from the Exposition?”
-
-“Or from Noah’s ark: which is it? Pray tell us, miss,” put in Arthur
-with a loud laugh.
-
-“Let her be, you bad boys,” said Belle.
-
-“She looks a great deal nicer than any of you,” said Lily, too anxious
-to take up Lucy’s defence to think of the exact truth of her statement.
-
-“Oh! of course, of course,” retorted Arthur. “She is quite a model. I
-propose we all ask our mothers to buy us just such clothes. Don’t leave
-us, Miss Elegance;” and he caught hold of poor Lucy, who had turned to
-run away.
-
-“Let her be,” said Lily.
-
-“You’re very ungrateful,” said Maggie. “This morning when you called
-the stewardess, I saw Lucy run very quick to call her. You ought to be
-ashamed all of you. You’re as bad as the Elisha children in the Bible,
-that were eaten up.”
-
-“Are you going to let her go?” asked Lily, with a threatening shake of
-her head at the young tyrant, who still held Lucy fast.
-
-“As soon as she tells us how many hundred dollars she paid for this
-love of a bonnet,” said Arthur, tossing off the unlucky shaker with a
-jerk of his thumb and finger.
-
-Without another word, Lily reached up her small hand, and gave the big
-boy a sounding slap upon his cheek. In his surprise, he loosed his hold
-of Lucy, who quickly snatched up her bonnet, and made good her escape.
-
-Arthur turned fiercely upon Lily; but she stood her ground, and not
-exactly caring, bully though he was, to strike back at a girl so much
-smaller than himself, he contented himself with catching her still
-uplifted hand in his, and saying,--
-
-“How dare you do that?”
-
-“’Cause you deserved it,” said Lily, sternly.
-
-“And I’ve a good mind to give you another,” said Belle.
-
-“Children! Children!” said Mr. Powers, who had seen from a distance
-that trouble was threatening, and had come to prevent it. “What is the
-matter here? Quarrelling and striking?”
-
-“I’m striking,” said Lily, rather proud of having given a blow in what
-she considered a just cause; “but I’m not quarrelling, sir.”
-
-“No, papa,” said Belle. “We’re not quarrelling: it’s only those bad,
-mean ones;” and she pointed at the Lathrops with as much scorn in her
-tone and manner as they had used towards Lucy.
-
-But these children, knowing right well that their share in the dispute
-was by far the worst, did not choose to face Mr. Powers’s inquiries,
-and now scattered in all directions.
-
-“Striking and calling names look a good deal like quarrelling,” said
-Mr. Powers, smiling.
-
-“But we had to take Lucy’s side, papa,” said Belle; and neither she
-nor Lily was to be persuaded that it was not right for the latter to
-strike a blow in Lucy’s defence. Indeed, Maggie and Bessie were rather
-inclined to hold the same opinion, and all four were quite excited over
-Lucy’s wrongs.
-
-While Lucy was telling her father the story, they were talking it over
-among themselves; and knowing, in spite of their sympathy, that she
-presented rather a comical figure, were trying to think of some means
-by which they might help her to dress herself more like other children.
-But they did not see exactly how it was to be done, nor did Mrs.
-Bradford when they consulted her.
-
-“I fear it would not do to offer Lucy clothes, my darlings,” she said:
-“those she wears, though odd-looking, are good and comfortable; and her
-father might be offended if we offered her any thing which seemed like
-charity, or let him know that we do not think her properly dressed.”
-
-“Mamma,” said Bessie, gravely, “do you think a thing is comfortable
-when it makes a child laughed at?”
-
-“Well, no, dear, perhaps not,” answered Mrs. Bradford, smiling, “and I
-am very sorry for Lucy. Mrs. Norris and I were saying this morning that
-we wished we might tell the poor child how to make herself look less
-like a little old woman, but we thought it would not do to interfere.”
-
-“I’d wish somebody would interfere if it was me,” said Maggie. “It must
-be most _too_ much to have a father who won’t talk, and who has such
-very bad taste.”
-
-This was said with so much emphasis, and with such a long-drawn sigh at
-the end, as if the mere thought of such misfortune were almost too much
-for Maggie, that every one laughed.
-
-Bessie had less to say about Lucy’s troubles than any of the others;
-but she thought more of them: for we know how sensitive she herself
-was to ridicule, and she could not bear to think that Lucy might have
-to undergo the same trial again.
-
-“Mamma,” she said, coming to her mother’s side that evening, “there
-are Lucy and her father sitting at the head of those steps, and she is
-showing him those queer dressing-gown frocks of hers. Could I go and
-speak to them?”
-
-Mrs. Bradford turned to see if it was a proper place for Bessie to go
-to, and then gave her permission, thinking that her little girl might
-possibly see some way to help Lucy, and trusting to her good sense and
-kind heart not to say any thing that might give offence.
-
-“Maybe they’re not just the right shape,” said the engineer, as Bessie
-came near; “but I don’t know how you are to better them;” and he turned
-over and over the two frocks, just like the one Lucy had on, which lay
-across his knee. “Maybe Dorothy would show you.”
-
-“I don’t like to ask her,” said Lucy; or Dorothy the stewardess, was
-rather sharp and short with her.
-
-Bessie came close.
-
-“Would you be offended if some one tried to be kind to Lucy?” she
-asked, seizing her opportunity.
-
-She was quite surprised to see how pleasantly Waters smiled as he
-answered,--
-
-“Not I. Those that are friends to my Lucy are friends to me.”
-
-“Some children laughed at her,” said Bessie, wishing to put the case as
-gently as she could.
-
-The engineer frowned and nodded.
-
-“I told him,” said Lucy.
-
-“There’s no excuse for them,” continued Bessie, looking out over
-the waters as if she were talking more to herself than to the man,
-“but perhaps they would not have done it, if--if--if Lucy’s clothes
-were--were a little prettier.”
-
-“And I’ll warrant if your power was as good as your will, you’d make
-them prettier for her,” answered the engineer. “You’re a kind little
-lady. Lucy was just asking me if I could tell her how to fix up her
-things a bit; but I don’t know. Old Mrs. Sims, who does her washing and
-sewing, she bought them, and I didn’t see but they were all right; but
-now Lucy says they’re not, and she can’t do ’em over.”
-
-Lucy stood listening in amazement to this unusually long speech from
-her father, who was very rarely so sociable with any one as he now was
-with Bessie.
-
-“But you wouldn’t mind if mamma was to try and help her, would you?”
-Bessie asked in a coaxing voice.
-
-“Mind!” said the engineer, “I’d be only too thankful, and so would
-my Lucy; but such a lady as your mamma doesn’t want to bother with a
-little stranger girl.”
-
-“Oh, yes, she does!” said Bessie, eagerly, “and mamma don’t think it
-a bit of bother if she can do a kind thing for some one; and she said
-she would like to fix Lucy up, ’cause she was such a nice, tidy child.
-Come and show her these, Lucy;” and without waiting for more words, she
-snatched up one gown, and taking Lucy by the hand drew her after her,
-telling her to bring the other two with her.
-
-Lucy obeyed rather timidly; but the kind manner and words of the two
-ladies, Mrs. Bradford and Mrs. Norris, soon put her at her ease, and
-she became deeply interested in the plans for putting what Bessie
-called “the dressing-gown” frocks into proper shape.
-
-There were four of them, all alike, of a good but dull gingham, without
-the least shape or fit, save what was given by a string about the
-waist; very long and scant,--so scant, that the ladies decided it would
-take two to make one suitable frock. Lucy asked and readily obtained
-leave from her father for this; and Mrs. Bradford allowed the four
-little girls to begin the work that very night by ripping apart the
-seams.
-
-She and Mrs. Norris went to work also that evening; and when the
-steamer came into port the following night, Lucy was made happy by
-having one dress made in a manner proper for a girl of her age; and
-knowing that the second was surely promised to her by Mrs. Bradford.
-Belle presented her with “the doll of moderation,” which she had
-brought with her, she and her young friends having concluded to keep
-their money for another purpose instead of buying a new one.
-
-The day on which the vessel started on her return voyage, Mr. Bradford
-and Mr. Powers drove down with their little daughters and Lily Norris;
-and the children brought Lucy not only her own gingham frock, but also
-two others, of bright, simple calico, all nicely made up; and a straw
-hat with a blue ribbon upon it. These were all their own presents,
-bought with their own money, only the making having been paid for
-by their mammas; so that the engineer could find no fault with the
-kindness done to his little girl by these thoughtful young strangers.
-
-Lucy was contented beyond measure with her new clothes; but no words
-could do justice to her satisfaction and pleasure in her doll. What a
-treasure it was! What a delight in her rather lonely little life! She
-talked to it, and caressed it, slept with it in her arms at night,
-kissed it the first thing in the morning, dressed and undressed it,
-and learned to use her needle in fashioning clothes for it. Her father
-might be too busy to attend to her; Dorothy might snub her; fretful,
-impatient passengers send her hither and thither till she was ready to
-drop from fatigue,--she had one solace and delight that repaid her for
-all: the recollection of that little china head, and the staring, blue
-eyes which lay upon the pillow in her berth, the kisses which she would
-run and snatch now and then, till her time was her own once more, and
-she could pet and nurse her little treasure to her heart’s content.
-
-And so our four little travellers have begun their journey with a kind
-deed which brought pleasure and comfort, such as they did not dream of,
-into this poor, craving, young heart, which had had so little to feed
-upon; and went upon their way followed by blessings and grateful, happy
-memories.
-
-
-
-
-IV.
-
-_AN OLD ENEMY BUT NEW FRIEND._
-
-
-It was late at night when our travellers reached Savannah, so late and
-so dark that even quick-sighted, wide-awake Maggie could see nothing
-about her as they rode to the hotel, save the twinkling street-lamps;
-and she was as ready as the other children to be put to bed at once and
-postpone all questions and sight-seeing until the morning.
-
-But you need not fear I am going to trouble you with a long description
-of the beautiful, quaint, old city, with its numberless green squares
-which make it so bright and airy; its broad avenues planted with
-three rows of trees, so tall and wide-spread that their branches have
-laced overhead, making lovely, leafy arches for one to pass beneath;
-its roses--such roses! the like of which we do not see in our colder
-northern climate; roses, which with us are only bushes, growing there
-into trees, or running into luxuriant vines which clothe the fronts
-and sides of the old-fashioned houses, covered with a profusion of
-blossoms, and filling the air with their delicious fragrance. They were
-just in the perfection of their glory when our friends arrived, and it
-would be impossible to tell the delight Bessie took in them. Her love
-of flowers here had full enjoyment in these her favorites. Morning,
-noon, and night, she was seen with her little hands filled with
-roses,--for the family were kept well supplied, thanks to the graceful
-southern fashion of sending flowers to all newcomers and strangers;
-they were twisted among her curls and worn in her bosom, laid beside
-her plate at meals, and she would even have slept with them on her
-pillow, if mamma would have allowed it.
-
-She made a pretty picture as she sat upon the staircase of the ----
-House, the day after their arrival, her lap full of red, white,
-and yellow roses, which she was arranging with no small taste and
-daintiness into bouquets for her people.
-
-Three pair of eyes were watching her,--those of a grave-looking
-gentleman, who stood at the foot of the stairs; and those of Arthur
-and Charlotte Lathrop, who were peering at her over the banisters from
-above. But Bessie noticed neither until Arthur called her attention by
-making a sound like a snarling dog. Bessie started and looked up, then
-went on with her work in silence.
-
-“I say,” said Arthur, “are you making a wreath of roses for that old
-Mother Hubbard you took such a fancy to on board the steamer?”
-
-Bessie made no answer.
-
-“Why don’t you speak when you’re spoken to?” said Arthur. “Did you give
-your tongue to Mother Hubbard?”
-
-“When I’m talked to politely, I always do speak,” said the little girl.
-
-[Illustration: Bessie’s Travels. p. 82.]
-
-“Oh! and we’re not polite enough to suit you, I suppose,” said Arthur,
-sneeringly.
-
-“’Tis only engineers’ daughters and the like who are fit company for
-her,” joined in Charlotte.
-
-“We might go and take lessons from Mother Hubbard, and then perhaps
-she’d like us better,” said Arthur. “I say, Miss Bradford, what school
-did you learn your manners in, that you don’t speak when you’re spoken
-to?”
-
-Bessie remained silent again.
-
-“Do you hear?” shouted Arthur.
-
-“Once I heard of a school where they only paid two cents for learning
-manners,” said Bessie, demurely.
-
-“What then?” asked Arthur.
-
-“I should think that was the kind of a school you had been to,”
-answered Bessie.
-
-“And why, I’d like to know?”
-
-“’Cause I shouldn’t think they could teach much manners for two cents.”
-
-Arthur was a clever boy with a quick sense of humor; and he was so
-struck with what he considered the wit and smartness of the retort,
-that he forgot to be angry, and, instead of making a sharp answer,
-broke out into a hearty laugh.
-
-“Pretty good that!” he said. “You’ll do yet.”
-
-“Pretty good, and pretty well deserved too, my lad,” said the
-gentleman, who had been standing below, coming up the stairs. “See
-here, Clara, here is the Queen of the Fairies, I believe,” and he
-turned around to a lady who ran lightly up behind him.
-
-“Queen of the Fairies, indeed,” said the lady, with a laughing look at
-the little figure before her, in its white dress and shining hair, and
-lap covered with brilliant flowers: “or Queen of the”--What she would
-have said was lost, for after a pause of astonishment she exclaimed,
-“Why! it is--yes, it is Bessie Bradford--dear little Bessie!”
-
-And regardless of her muslin dress with its fluted flounces and
-ruffles, down went the lady on the stairs before Bessie; and, greatly
-to her surprise, the little girl found herself held fast in the embrace
-of a supposed stranger.
-
-But it was no stranger, as she found when she could free herself a
-little from that tight clasp, and look in the lady’s face.
-
-“Don’t you know me, Bessie?” asked the lady.
-
-“Why! it’s Miss Adams!” cried Bessie, in as great amazement as the
-new-comer herself.
-
-“And you are a little glad to see me, are you not?” asked the lady,
-seeing with pleasure the smile and glow on Bessie’s face.
-
-“Not a _little_, but very, Miss Adams,” she replied. “I was very
-interested about you, and always thought I’d like to see you again
-after I heard you’d”--here she hesitated for a word.
-
-“Well,” said the lady.
-
-“I can’t think of the word,” said Bessie. “Oh, yes! reformed, that’s
-it,--after you’d reformed. You know you wrote and told us about it
-yourself.”
-
-At this “Miss Adams” went off into a fit of laughter, which sounded
-very natural to Bessie’s ears; and yet there was a difference in that
-and in her manner from those of the old days at Quam Beach; something
-softer and more gentle; “more as if she remembered to be a lady,
-mamma,” Bessie said afterwards.
-
-The gentleman smiled too.
-
-“Her words are to the point when she does find them,” he said.
-
-“They always were,” said the lady, giving Bessie another kiss. “Bessie,
-this is the gentleman I found to make me ‘behave myself.’ I hope you’ll
-find the ‘kitchen lady’ improved under his teaching.”
-
-Bessie colored all over face and neck.
-
-“Oh! please don’t,” she said. “I’m so sorry I said that; but I was
-such a little child then, I didn’t know any better. I wouldn’t say such
-a saucy thing now for a great deal.”
-
-“You need not be sorry about it, Bessie: I am not.”
-
-“Please don’t speak about it any more, ma’am,” pleaded the child.
-“Couldn’t you let bygones be bygones?”
-
-“What do you mean by ‘bygones’?” asked the gentleman.
-
-“I thought it meant, sir,” said Bessie, modestly, “when a person had
-done something they were sorry for, not to say any thing more about it.”
-
-“Very well,” said the lady, still smiling. “It shall be so, if you wish
-it, Bessie. And now tell me how your mamma and Maggie and all the rest
-are.”
-
-“Oh! they are all very well, except mamma, and she is better, and we
-are travelling to do her good; and a great many things happened to us,
-Miss Adams, since you knew us before.”
-
-“I don’t think it has ‘happened’ to you to grow much,” said the lady.
-
-“Oh, yes’m!” answered Bessie. “I used to be five, and now I’m seven;
-and I’ve been to school too. We’ve all grown pretty old. Baby can walk
-and talk now.”
-
-“And how do you like my doctor?” asked “Miss Adams,” as Bessie still
-called her, glancing round at the gentleman who stood beside her.
-
-Bessie looked up at him, and he looked down at her, and when their eyes
-met, both smiled.
-
-“I like him: he looks good and nice;” and the little girl, who had
-already twisted a rose or two into the bosom of the lady’s dress, now
-handed two or three to the doctor in her own graceful, gracious little
-way.
-
-“What are you going to do with all those bouquets you have tied up so
-tastily?” asked Dr. Gordon.
-
-Bessie told him whom they were for.
-
-“And who is this for?” asked Mrs. Gordon,--for so she told Bessie to
-call her,--pointing to that which the small fingers were now arranging.
-
-
-“It’s for a little girl down at the steamer, who is rather hard off,
-and does not have a nice time, and has extremely ugly clothes,”
-answered Bessie. “But then if they are the best she has, and she has no
-mother, no one ought to laugh at her: ought they?”
-
-“Certainly not: who was so unkind?” asked Mrs. Gordon.
-
-“Some children who didn’t behave half so nice as she did, ma’am.”
-
-“Ah!” said the doctor; “and was that boy you were talking to just now
-one of them?”
-
-“Why, yes, sir,” said Bessie, with some hesitation. “But how did you
-know it?”
-
-“Oh! I am a good guesser,” answered Dr. Gordon.
-
-“I don’t know if I ought to have said that to him,” said Bessie,
-thoughtfully. “I b’lieve I was pretty severe.”
-
-At this Mrs. Gordon went off into another fit of laughter; and the
-doctor smiled as he answered,--
-
-“It was pretty severe, it is true, Bessie; but not more so than he
-deserved, especially if he had been teasing some poor child who could
-not defend herself.”
-
-Bessie colored, and answered, “But I’m afraid I did it more ’cause I
-was angry for his being impolite to me than for his teasing Lucy.”
-
-“But tell us all about it; and did you say the child had no mother?”
-said Mrs. Gordon.
-
-In reply, Bessie told all she knew about Lucy, omitting, however, to
-give any account of the unkindness of Arthur Lathrop and his brother
-and sisters to the poor child. This was noticed by both Dr. and Mrs.
-Gordon, but they pressed her no farther, seeing she did not wish to
-speak of it.
-
-“There’s another will be glad to come,” said Mrs. Gordon, eagerly, to
-her husband. “That will make five. You’ll see this engineer and speak
-to him about it: won’t you, Aleck?”
-
-“All in good time, dear,” he answered quietly.
-
-Five what? Bessie wondered; and where would Lucy be glad to come? But
-as she supposed they would tell her if they wished her to know, she
-asked no questions.
-
-But her curiosity was not gratified just then, for the doctor now said
-to his wife,--
-
-“Come, Clara, we are keeping our friends waiting. You must tell little
-Bessie about your plans some other time.”
-
-“Yes,” said Mrs. Gordon. “We have to go to a sick friend here in the
-house, Bessie; but I shall come to call on your mamma to-morrow, and
-then I shall see you again and ask her to let you come to me; for I
-have something to tell you, in which I think you will be interested.”
-
-“Don’t you live here, ma’am?” asked Bessie.
-
-“Here? yes, here in Savannah, but not in the hotel; and I want you
-to come to my house. By the way, where is Maggie? I thought you were
-always together.”
-
-“Most always,” said Bessie; “but Maggie and the other children went
-with Mr. Powers and papa to see a cotton-press; and mamma thought I was
-too tired, so I told Maggie she need not mind leaving me. And now I am
-glad I did not go.”
-
-“And I am sure I am glad,” said Mrs. Gordon, as she kissed Bessie for
-good-by, and once more told her she should be sure to see her the next
-day, and would arrange with her mamma the time when she and Maggie
-might come and spend the day with her.
-
-Bessie was very anxious to know what Mrs. Gordon could have to tell
-her which was to interest her so much, and which seemed in some way
-to concern Lucy Waters; but she was a little doubtful regarding the
-prospect of spending the whole day with her old enemy “Miss Adams,” not
-feeling at all sure that she would like it, or that she might not fall
-into some trouble, in spite of the very evident and pleasing change in
-that lady.
-
-Maggie was not at all doubtful, and positively declared that she would
-not go on any account; and she tried to persuade Bessie to join her in
-begging their mother to refuse Mrs. Gordon’s invitation to them.
-
-“For Bessie,” she said, “you know a ‘bird in the hand is worth two in
-the bush;’ and so, even if Miss Adams is so much better than she used
-to be, it is wiser to stay away from her, and not give her the chance
-of being disagreeable if she wanted to be.”
-
-Maggie had been much given to the use of proverbs lately, as you will
-have perceived; and if one could possibly be fitted to her purpose, it
-was made to serve, as on this occasion.
-
-But Bessie did not feel as if they had any excuse for refusing the
-invitation so kindly given, nor did mamma when she was appealed to.
-
-“You certainly need not go if you do not wish it, my darlings,” she
-said; “but do you think it likely, Maggie, that Mrs. Gordon would
-invite you to her house, and then treat you unkindly? She must be a
-good deal changed, it seems to me; and would it not look as if you were
-unforgiving, if you refuse her kindness?”
-
-“Oh! I forgive her, mamma,” said Maggie, “though it _was_ my own Bessie
-she plagued so, but then I thought her old habits might be too strong
-for her, and break out again.”
-
-“You forgive, but don’t forget, eh, Maggie? Suppose you were Mrs.
-Gordon, how would you like Miss Adams’ faults to be treasured up
-against you, and allowed to stand in the way when you wished to show
-good-will and kindness?”
-
-“I wouldn’t like it at all, mamma; and I suppose it’s not very Golden
-Ruley for me to say I won’t go; so, if she asks us, I’ll make up my
-mind to it.”
-
-Mrs. Gordon came the next day, according to promise, to call on Mrs.
-Bradford; and invited not only Maggie and Bessie, but also Belle and
-Lily, to spend the whole of Friday with her, promising to call for them
-in the morning and bring them back at night.
-
-But perhaps you will find it more interesting to read Maggie’s own
-account of this visit, which she wrote to Colonel Rush.
-
- “DEAR UNCLE HORACE,--Things are so very surprising in this
- world that you never quite know how they are going to turn
- out, of which the case is at present, Miss Adams or who was
- Miss Adams but now Mrs. Gordon and you will remember her at
- Quam Beach but under unpleasant circumstances to which we will
- not refer but forget as well as forgive as mamma reminded me.
- But you would be surprised to see how much she is improved
- and so different to what she used to be which was greatly to
- be desired of all her friends and a pleasure to all who wish
- her well. So seeing she wished to make up for past offenses we
- went to spend the day with her and she was very horspitable.
- She came in her carriage to take us to her house which is most
- handsome with roses and flowers of many kinds of which she
- brought mamma a whole lot at the same time and invited all the
- big people to dinner the next day. I think all this shows she
- repents sincerely and is not the same woman but much changed
- and ought to be encouraged to keep on doing well. She has a
- nice husband named Dr. Gordon, but sober which is not his own
- fault if he was born so and I pity him. And a sweet baby boy
- named Aleck and crows and laughs with pleasure at us. But I
- hope by no means you think we think him so sweet as May Bessie
- which he is not and May Bessie is so near to us, which also he
- is not and we love her far the best. Miss Adams was very kind
- to us all day, indeed quite fond but most of all to Bessie, and
- she played with us and amused us and I was glad I did not let
- the devil which is a word that is not best to write unless it
- is necessary get the upper hand and make me stay away out of
- revenge or being shy.
-
- “But the most surprising and best thing of all, Uncle Horace
- is what she is going to do with some of her money. You know
- in those days of which we will not speak she had a great deal
- more than she knew what to do with. Well, now she has found
- a good use for some of it in a way well pleasing to God and
- men. But I am too tired to write more to-day and will finish
- it to-morrow--Well, to return on this day to Miss Adams and
- her good works which shows she has read her Bible which urges
- to repentance of sins and prophets by it which is a sight to
- make the coldest heart to rejoice. She has a house not very
- far from her own where she lives and she is going to have six
- little girls there in the care of a nice, kind lady. And these
- little girls are not to be happy children with mothers to take
- care of them, but orfuns or without mothers or teaching or
- training in the way they should go. For Miss Adams says she
- knows what it is to be without a mother or some wise person to
- guide her, and now that God has been so good to her she wants
- to give a helping hand to some little girls who would be left
- too much to themselves and not properly taught. She does not
- mean to have very poor children, and if their friends wish it
- they may pay a little money for them but the contrary if they
- do not, and prefer charity though she does not think it such
- and would like them to come without any pay. And here they will
- have a happy home and be taught to be desirable women fit for
- teachers or other good things and so it will be their own fault
- if they don’t do it. And she has chosen four girls who are to
- come in the fall when Miss Adams comes back from the north
- because things cannot be quite ready till then, as the lady has
- a sailor son who is to go to sea which I think a hard case for
- his friends to have him leave his native land. And then the
- house will be ready and the lady will go and the children will
- come and Miss Adams is going to see if Lucy Waters’ father who
- you know I told you about in my last will let her come too.
- I think if he does not he will be much wanting in sence and
- proper behaviour, but I think he will dont you? Miss Adams,
- Mrs. Gordon I mean but I always forget to put her wedding name
- says she feels so sorry for all little motherless girls, and I
- am glad of it are not you? And so is Bessie and we think the
- reason Miss Adams takes so much trouble for these little girls
- is because she is afraid that if they do not have good care
- they may grow up to be such women as she used to be when we
- knew her before but which is not to be mentioned in these pages
- and now she is quite ashamed of it. We cannot tell just yet if
- Lucy’s father will let her come, but papa and the doctor are
- going to the steamer this evening to ask him and when we know
- Bessie will write and tell you all about it. And Bessie and
- I have quite made up our minds to take Miss Adams for one of
- our friends because we find her most sencible and kind and so
- changed from her old ways which we will not remember if we can
- help it.
-
- “And dear Uncle Horace and Aunt May we wish you were here
- ’cause we are having such a nice time and I wrote such a
- long letter I am afraid you will be tired of it but such an
- interesting subject my brains were quite full and I had to and
- you must excuse it. We send two kisses for May Bessie and four
- for you and hope to see you once more in the future when we
- come home. And we send a great deal of love from your loving
-
- “MAGGIE AND BESSIE.”
-
- “P. S. Savannah is such a fine city and so many trees and
- roses that it seems strange to me that Alexander the Great and
- Napoleon Bonaparte did not try to take it, being both men who
- never minded their own business but always trying to take what
- did not belong to them, speshally the latter whom in my heart I
- heartily despise because he never did as he would be done by.”
-
-
-
-
-V.
-
-_BELLE’S HOME._
-
-
-You may be sure there was not much trouble in gaining the consent of
-Lucy’s father to the plan proposed for her welfare. He was only too
-glad and thankful to feel that his motherless little daughter would
-be placed where she would have a kind and prudent eye to oversee and
-guide her; and where she would have the opportunity of growing up
-into a useful and steady woman. This he knew she could not do in the
-unsettled life she now led on board ship with him, and he had long been
-considering what he should do with her.
-
-Lucy, though thankful, was not as much pleased, and shed some bitter
-tears over the prospect. The poor child wanted to learn, and was glad
-to have a settled home; but she dreaded the thought of parting from her
-father, who would only be able to see her at such times as his vessel
-should be at the port of Savannah, and who was the only person whom she
-had to love her. But, in a day or two after, when she had seen Mrs.
-Gordon, and heard her talk so kindly of all the pleasures and comforts
-she would find in this promised home, she became more reconciled to it,
-especially as the autumn still seemed a long way off to her, and she
-had all the summer to go back and forth with her father on the sea.
-
-So she told her troubles to her doll; and the steady, blue eyes, which
-never winked or softened, brought comfort to her, and seemed to give
-her the assurance that she need not be parted from her, even to go to
-her new home. If she had not had this beloved companion, it would have
-gone much harder with poor little Lucy.
-
-Our little girls did not see her again; but last autumn, when they
-were settled once more in their city home, after all their summer
-wanderings, Mrs. Gordon wrote to them, saying that Lucy was quite
-contented and happy under her care; and that she was a very good child,
-being trustworthy and obedient, and showing a great desire to learn.
-
-So there we will leave her, hoping that she will, as Maggie says,
-“prophet by all that is done for her and make a useful and happy
-woman.” The doll went with her; and all the other toys and amusements
-which were provided for her never made her tired or forgetful of this,
-her first love, or of the dear little girls who had taken so much
-interest in her.
-
-Our party did not remain long in Savannah, for the weather was becoming
-warm and oppressive; but before they went away, they all spent a day on
-Mr. Powers’ plantation.
-
-This was several miles from the city; and starting in the morning,
-soon after breakfast, they drove out in the cool of the day. Their
-way lay through dense pine woods; tall, stately pines, with long,
-straight trunks; shooting upwards, without leaf or branch, for many
-a foot, till they neared their height, when they put forth their
-dark-green crowns, which cast such a sombre shade below. The shade was
-no objection on this warm day, and a light breeze was stirring, which
-was very refreshing; but it sounded rather mournful to Maggie and
-Bessie, as it moaned through the mighty stems, and rustled the thick,
-fragrant leaves overhead. It has a strange, peculiar sound, the wind in
-those dark, pine forests of the South,--a sound rather saddening to any
-listener.
-
-Maggie did not like it at all, and said so, which rather displeased
-Belle, who, in her delight at returning to her beloved Southern home,
-found every thing there perfect. However, as they drove on, both Maggie
-and Bessie spied out so many objects which called forth their surprise
-and admiration, that she was presently consoled, and concluded that
-they “liked her own country pretty well, after all.”
-
-Here and there was a magnolia with its magnificent cream-white
-blossoms, their delicious perfume mingling with the fragrance of
-the pines; there a group of scarlet cardinal flowers, or a little
-pool bordered with bright blue flags and spotted tiger-lilies; while
-through the deep stillness of the woods came the sweet notes of the
-blue-jay and mocking-bird. Once, as they were passing over a bridge
-which crossed a marsh, Maggie called the attention of the others to two
-turtles, great big fellows, larger than any the children had ever seen
-at the North; “swamp turtles” Belle said they were. They scuttled out
-of the way in their clumsy fashion, diving out of sight into the mud;
-and Bessie said she thought they must be some of the unclean animals
-spoken of in the Bible, since they liked to live in such a dirty place.
-
-The entrance to the plantation was through an avenue of magnificent
-live-oaks, some of them so large that two or three men could not have
-encircled them with their outstretched arms; and these splendid trees
-were studded all over the lawn, spreading far and wide their branches,
-which, unlike their neighbors the pines, they sent out very low,--so
-near the ground in fact, that even Bessie could reach the gray Spanish
-moss which hung over them in long festoons and wreaths. The children
-had seen this curious moss before in the beautiful old cemetery of
-Bonaventure, where the oaks are perfectly clothed with it; and Bessie
-had admired it so much, that Maggie had taken up the idea of carrying
-home enough to make “a bower” for her in their own little room. But she
-thought it best to gain the consent of her father and mother to this
-arrangement; not only because it was right, but also because nurse was
-rather apt to call such things “truck and trash,” and to put them out
-of the way as fast as possible. If papa and mamma said they might have
-it, nurse might _call_ it what she pleased, but she could not throw it
-away.
-
-Mr. Powers stood awaiting them on the steps of the veranda, for he had
-been at the plantation for three or four days, while Belle and Daphne
-had been left in Mrs. Bradford’s charge at the hotel; for he did not
-think it best for Belle to sleep on the plantation at that time of the
-year.
-
-She shrieked with delight when she saw him; and, in her hurry to
-reach him, had nearly thrown herself from Daphne’s lap underneath the
-carriage-wheels. There would have been an end to the day’s pleasure
-then; but Daphne’s hand grasped her skirts, and saved her from a
-terrible death.
-
-As it was, the whole party were startled; and her father’s face had
-lost its smile of welcome, and looked rather pale as he came down the
-steps and took her in his arms.
-
-“My pet!” he said, “always in too much of a hurry. This would have been
-a sad meeting for papa, if you had fallen; but a good God took care of
-you for me.”
-
-Belle clung about his neck and did not speak; for whether it were the
-fright, or the sight of her father, or the return to the old home which
-she had left at such a sad time, or perhaps all three, her feelings
-took a sudden turn, and when Mr. Powers had brought his friends in and
-welcomed them, and raised the little face to kiss it again, he found it
-drowned in tears.
-
-“Why! my darling,” he said, “were you so frightened?”
-
-“I don’t know, papa,” sobbed the excitable little thing; “but, this is
-home--only--only--mamma is not in it.”
-
-Tears, or something very like them, came to the eyes of all, even of
-Mr. and Mrs. Norris, who had never known Belle’s dead mother; and Mr.
-Powers turned hastily away, and stepped with her out on the veranda.
-
-“_Only_ mamma was not in it!” Ah, yes! that was the _only_ that made
-all the difference in the world, so that home did not seem like home
-any longer.
-
-It was some few moments before either of them were composed enough to
-return; and when Mr. Powers came back he was alone, and told Bessie
-that Belle wanted her to go to her.
-
-Bessie went out upon the veranda, which ran on all four sides of the
-house, and around the corner she found Belle curled up on a settee
-where her father had placed her. She stretched out her arms to Bessie
-when she saw her, saying,--
-
-“Bessie, I do remember mamma so much in my home, and you are a comfit.
-You are my next best comfit to papa, ever since the first day you spoke
-to me in school.”
-
-This was a pleasant thing for Bessie to hear; but she put aside her own
-pleasure for the present, and thought only of being the “comfit” her
-poor little friend called her. I wonder if there was any one among all
-the people who knew her, who could have said that our dear Bessie was
-not more or less of a comfort to them.
-
-Her sweet sympathy and gentle tenderness soon did Belle good, and
-Bessie let her talk on about her mother as long as she would.
-
-Belle had been very bright and cheerful lately,--thanks to the friends
-with whom she had been so much thrown,--and it was a good while since
-she had had a fit of longing for her mother; but the coming to her home
-had brought her great loss back to her, and just now she could think of
-nothing else.
-
-“Do you know where they put my mamma before she went to heaven?” said
-Belle.
-
-“No. Where?” answered Bessie.
-
-“Do you see those high trees over there, Bessie? They put her where
-little brother and sister are, and ever so many grandpas and grandmas.”
-
-“But they didn’t put her soul there,” said Bessie.
-
-“No,” said Belle, “’cause that was God’s part, and it went to him.
-And then she couldn’t speak or hear me or see me, but was all deaded
-away; and so they put the rest of her over there, and put a great many
-flowers over her. But that was a long, long while ago, before I went
-away to the North, and I didn’t see where they put mamma this ever so
-long. Maybe the flowers are all faded. Will you come and see, Bessie?”
-
-“We must ask mamma or your papa first,” said Bessie.
-
-“They would let us,” said Belle: “it’s a very safe place. I used to
-often go there when mamma was alive, to be by little brother and
-sister, and she is there now. There couldn’t any danger come to us
-where mamma is: could there, Bessie?”
-
-“No: I guess not,” said Bessie. “I s’pose mother-angels take care of
-their little children. I’ll go with you, Belle dear, if you’re quite
-sure your papa will let us.”
-
-“I know he would, Bessie; and I’d just as lief ask him; only then
-Maggie and Lily will come too. I’d like Maggie to come, but Lily laughs
-so much. I love Lily; but I don’t want any one to laugh where my mamma
-is dead.”
-
-“No,” said Bessie, with the most caressing tenderness of tone and
-manner, “they shan’t; and I’ll go, Belle.”
-
-With their arms about one another’s necks, the two little things ran
-down the piazza steps, and the shady path, through which Belle led the
-way; but as they came near the small burying-ground, their steps grew
-slow and more reverent.
-
-It was an exquisite spot. An iron railing enclosed it, but the rails
-were hidden by the green vines which overran them, and within it was
-beautifully sodded; the green broken here and there by the white
-marble monuments and slabs which marked the resting-place of Belle’s
-relations. Flowers of the loveliest kinds were blossoming over and
-around them, and all showed the utmost care and loving remembrance.
-Over the entrance was an arch, also of white marble, and on the stone
-were cut the words, “He giveth His beloved sleep.”
-
-“How sweet it is!” exclaimed Bessie, struck at once with the lovely
-quiet and peace of the place; and then she looked up and spelled out
-the letters on the arch.
-
-“Sleep! that was what mamma said: it was only like a sleep if we loved
-Jesus and tried to do what He wanted us to, and I think it must mean
-Him when it says, ‘giveth His beloved sleep.’ What dear words! are they
-not, Belle?”
-
-“Yes,” said Belle, but without paying much attention to what Bessie was
-saying, for her eye had caught sight of a new object in the enclosure.
-
-“See!” she went on, catching Bessie by the arm: “there’s a stone there
-where they put mamma;” and drawing Bessie with her, she pushed open the
-light gate.
-
-It swung easily back, for it was unfastened. There were none here to
-intrude, no one came here who would not guard with the greatest love
-and reverence the little spot sacred to “His beloved.”
-
-“His beloved!” For of those who lay there, not one but had closed
-their eyes in the full faith that they should open them again upon the
-brightness of His face. Truly that was “God’s Acre.”
-
-The “stone” which had attracted Belle’s attention was a shaft of pure
-white marble upon her mother’s grave. The centre had been cut away so
-as to leave four small arches, one on each side, and beneath there was
-a cross, with the letters “I. H. S.;” before that an open Bible, with
-the words, “I will not leave you comfortless.”
-
-The sculptor had done his work perfectly; and the snowy marble showed
-in beautiful contrast with the dark, glossy leaves of the bay tree
-which spread its arms above it.
-
-“Papa put it there, I know he did,” said Belle, after she and Bessie
-had stood looking at it in silence for a moment or two.
-
-“Yes: I s’pose he did,” said Bessie: “let’s see what these words are,
-Belle.”
-
-By standing on tiptoe, the little ones could manage to see the letters
-carved upon the book; and Bessie read them out as she had done those
-over the gateway.
-
-“‘I will not leave you comfortless,’” Belle repeated after her. “Why!
-mamma said that herself a little while before she went to heaven. Maybe
-that was why papa put it there.”
-
-“And Jesus said it,” replied Bessie. “It’s in the Bible, in a chapter
-I’ve heard very often. Don’t you remember, Belle? It begins, ‘Let
-not your heart be troubled;’ and Jesus said it Himself. Perhaps the
-reason He told people not to be troubled was He was going to promise to
-comfort them when they had something very bad to bear. It’s the best
-comfort to know He loves you and will take you to heaven to see your
-mamma some day: isn’t it, Belle?”
-
-“He will if I’m good,” passing her little hand slowly and caressingly
-over the marble; “but then I’m not always good.”
-
-“No,” said Bessie, “not always; but mamma said you was not near so
-spoiled as you used to be. I think you’re pretty good now, Belle.”
-
-“I slapped Daphne’s face this morning,” whispered Belle, remorsefully.
-
-“Oh! did you?” said Bessie. “Well, Belle, I used to slap people
-sometimes, even when I had mamma to teach me better, and there was no
-excuse for me.”
-
-“But my own mamma _did_ teach me better, Bessie. I slap Daphne pretty
-often, but she never tells papa; and I promise myself I’ll never do it
-again, and then I just do.”
-
-“Did you ever promise Jesus and ask Him to help you not to do it?”
-asked Bessie.
-
-“No,” answered Belle. “I didn’t think of it. I could do it now,
-couldn’t I?”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie.
-
-They knelt down together side by side, and Belle said in a soft but
-steady voice, for her tears had now ceased,--
-
-“Dear Jesus, I promise not to slap Daphne any more, or not to be
-naughty any more if I can help it; and you will help me to be good.
-Amen.”
-
-Then pressing her lips to the cold stone, as if it were the warm,
-living cheek she had once caressed, she said in a pleading, pathetic
-whisper,--
-
-“Dear mamma, your little Belle will try to be just as good as you would
-want her to be if you were here wif her.”
-
-Will any doubt that the “mother-angel” heard and rejoiced over the
-simple promise uttered by her little one’s trusting lips?
-
-“Do you think it really makes Jesus glad when I’m good?” asked Belle,
-when they had risen from their knees.
-
-“Oh! to be sure it does,” answered Bessie.
-
-“And He _did_ leave me some comfit: didn’t He, Bessie? He left me papa,
-and He gave me you and Maggie too; and your mamma is a great comfit
-too.”
-
-“Mamma’s the best comfort of anybody,” said Bessie.
-
-“Oh, no, Bessie! oh, no! Papa best--you next.”
-
-Bessie did not contradict her, though she thought it a very strange
-opinion for Belle to hold, and was not at all convinced herself.
-
-“I wish papa was here to stay with me by mamma a little while,” said
-Belle, presently.
-
-“Shall I go ask him to come?” asked Bessie.
-
-“Yes,” said Belle. “Do you know the way?”
-
-“Oh, yes! It’s right up that path, isn’t it?”
-
-Then she kissed Belle and left her, turning back as she passed through
-the gate, to look at her little playmate sitting by her mother’s grave
-and leaning her head pensively against the monument. But Belle smiled
-as she met Bessie’s eye, and the little girl felt that she had not
-been left quite “comfortless.” Her own heart was very full of love and
-sympathy.
-
-Bessie ran up the path till she was nearly half way to the house, when
-she was brought to a sudden stand-still by what she thought a very
-alarming object. Just before her was a large black dog, broad-chested,
-tall, and fierce-looking, standing directly in the path, and seeming as
-though he meant to dispute the way.
-
-Bessie’s heart was in her mouth and her knees shook; but she did not
-scream. She looked at the dog and he looked at her, but he did not bark
-or growl. Then she found her voice, and tried what coaxing would do.
-
-“Nice doggie, nice little doggie,” she said to the great creature.
-“Does little doggie want Bessie to go away? Well, she will. But then
-the good little fellow mustn’t bark at Bessie and frighten her.”
-
-Bessie had an idea that her seeming enemy could bite as well as bark if
-he saw fit occasion; but she did not think it wisest to suggest it to
-him.
-
-It must have been a hard-hearted dog, indeed, which could have resisted
-that insinuating voice and smile, and either bark or bite; and this one
-did not seem inclined to do the one or the other; but then neither did
-he seem to intend to move out of the path, but stood stock still gazing
-at his unwilling little companion.
-
-Seeing that he appeared peaceable, Bessie took courage, and, edging off
-upon the grass, went a few steps forward. But as she passed the dog, he
-turned and placed himself before her, though still without any show of
-attacking her.
-
-Bessie was pretty well frightened; but she began her wiles again,
-talking to him as she would have done to Baby Annie or Flossy.
-
-“Poor fellow! nice doggie. Bessie wouldn’t hurt little doggie for any
-thing. Doggie, doggie, doggie! He’ll let Bessie go to the house, won’t
-he? Don’t he want to go and see Belle down there?”
-
-Now you must not think that Bessie wanted to save herself by exposing
-her little friend; for she knew that this must be Duke, the great
-English blood-hound, of which Belle had often spoken, saying how loving
-and good Duke was to her, although he was fierce and unfriendly with
-strangers.
-
-But no, all coaxing proved useless: the dog stood his ground and would
-not suffer her to pass, even giving a low growl and seizing the skirt
-of her dress when she tried once more to do so.
-
-Bessie was dreadfully frightened, and was about to call aloud for help,
-when she saw Mr. Powers coming towards her from the house. As he came
-down the path, a great snake glided from beneath some low bushes on
-the other side, passed swiftly over the narrow path, and would have
-been out of sight in an instant, had not the dog, suddenly all alert,
-bounded forward, seized it by the back of the neck, and giving it a
-violent shake, left it lying dead.
-
-“How is this, dear child?” said Mr. Powers, looking from the dog and
-snake to the child. “Old Ben told me he had seen you and Belle going to
-the burying-ground. Where is Belle?”
-
-“Yes, sir, we did,” answered Bessie; “and Belle is there now, waiting
-for you to come to her mamma’s grave. I was just coming to tell you,
-and that dog stopped me. He’s a pretty naughty dog; he wouldn’t let me
-go on, and he killed the poor snake that did not do a bit of harm, but
-was just running away as fast as he could.”
-
-“Duke knew he would do harm if he but found the chance, my child,”
-said Mr. Powers. “That is a very venomous snake, and the dog’s care
-may have saved you from being badly bitten. Good Duke! brave fellow!”
-and Mr. Powers patted the dog’s head. “It is years and years since
-we have seen a snake of this kind upon the plantation, and I hope it
-may be long before we see another. You and Belle have each escaped a
-great danger this morning, Bessie. I am glad too that old Duke was not
-bitten.”
-
-Bessie was very grateful to Duke now, and she too patted and caressed
-him. He seemed to think himself, that he had performed a great feat, as
-indeed he had; and kept looking up at his master and thrusting his nose
-into his hand as if to call for more thanks. Bessie’s attentions he
-received more coolly, though he permitted them.
-
-“Run up to the house now, you steady little woman,” said Mr. Powers:
-“your mother is wondering where you can be, though she said you were to
-be trusted not to get into mischief. It is a good thing to have such a
-character, Bessie.”
-
-When Duke saw that Bessie and his master were going in different
-directions, he seemed to be divided in his own mind as to which one he
-had better accompany. But after looking from one to the other he seemed
-to decide that Bessie needed his protection, and trotted gravely along
-by her side till she reached the house, when he turned about and raced
-after his master.
-
-Bessie went in and told her story, but so simply and with so little
-fuss that her mother had no idea of the danger she had been in, till
-Mr. Powers came with Belle and told how she, as well as Belle, had been
-mercifully preserved from harm that morning.
-
-When Belle came back with her father, she was quite composed, and soon
-became cheerful again, though she was rather more quiet than usual all
-the morning.
-
-As soon as the party were rested after their drive, they all went out
-for a walk about the place. Mr. Powers’ estate was a rice plantation,
-and the children were greatly interested in going through the mills
-and seeing how the rice, so familiar to them as an article of food, was
-prepared for the market. They were particularly so, in watching the
-husking of the rice. The grain was stored on the second story of the
-buildings, in great boxes or bins. There was a little sliding-door in
-each of these, just above the bottom of the bin; and when the men were
-ready to go to work, a trough was placed leading from that, through
-a trap-door, to a hopper on the floor below. Then the bin door was
-opened, and the rice in its brown husks slid through the trough into
-the hopper beneath, and from thence into the mill, on each side of
-which stood a man who turned the arms of the mill. In this, the outer
-husk was stripped from the rice; then it passed through another wide,
-covered trough, into the sifting or winnowing machine. This was a large
-box with a wheel at the bottom which turned the rice over and over. As
-it came to the top, the chaff was blown away by a great “four sided
-fan,” as Bessie called it, made of four pieces of canvas stretched in
-different directions, and fixed upon a roller which was turned round
-by a man, and fanned away the light husks broken from the grain on its
-passage through the mill. But this was only the outer husk; and it had
-to go down a third trough into another mill, where the inner covering
-was taken off; then through a second fanning machine, from which it
-came out clean and white; and lastly into a third building, where it
-was led into another range of bins, till it should be necessary to put
-it into the bags and barrels in which it was sent to market.
-
-Maggie, as usual, wanted to “help;” and the good-natured colored men
-who were about let her try her hand at just what she chose, provided
-it was safe for her. Indeed, all the children, even Belle, to whom
-the amusement was not new, were greatly pleased to pull up the
-sliding panels of the bins, and see the rice come pouring down into
-the mill-hopper, and to thrust their hands and arms into the white
-grain, and shovel it into the bags. So entertained were they with
-this business, that the older people walked on when they had satisfied
-their own curiosity, leaving the children in the care of old Cato, who
-promised to see that they came to no harm.
-
-“We’ve done a whole lot of work, Mr. Powers,” said Maggie, when they
-were called back to the house to dinner. “I think your men must be
-pretty glad we came.”
-
-“Yes,” said Lily: “we’ve most filled two bags and a barrel.”
-
-“And we didn’t spill very much either,” said Bessie, who was at that
-moment laboring away with a wooden shovel, on which she contrived to
-take up about two table-spoonsful of rice.
-
-“Capital!” said Mr. Powers: “you’ve earned your dinner to-day, have you
-not?”
-
-Whether the dinners were fairly earned or no, the exercise had given
-them all good appetites, and they were not sorry to go in and take
-their seats at the well-furnished table.
-
-
-
-
-VI.
-
-_LETTERS._
-
-
-Maggie had seized the opportunity when Bessie was not near, to ask Mr.
-Powers for the Spanish moss.
-
-“Mr. Powers,” she said, “is not that moss private moss?”
-
-“Private moss? How private, Maggie?” said the gentleman.
-
-“I mean is it not your own to do what you like with?”
-
-“Certainly: if growing upon my trees and on my grounds can make it
-mine, it is, dear?”
-
-“Then could you let me have some of it, quite a good deal?” said
-Maggie, to whom it had been a great effort to ask this; but the
-thought of pleasing Bessie upheld her courage.
-
-“Oh! to be sure; a whole wagon-load if you want it,” said Mr. Powers,
-smiling, and without the least idea that Maggie would take his words
-almost literally.
-
-The next thing was to ask mamma’s consent to carry it home, and this
-also was obtained without difficulty; Mrs. Bradford having no idea of
-the extent of Maggie’s ideas, and supposing she only wanted a small
-quantity as a curiosity.
-
-Accordingly, Maggie took the other children into her confidence as soon
-as they were all sent out again to play under Daphne’s care. Bessie was
-delighted with the plan, and kissed and thanked her many times; and the
-other two were quite ready to lend their aid.
-
-So they all set to work to gather the moss, Daphne, too, giving a
-helping hand, at her little lady’s request; though as she saw the great
-pile they heaped together, she was more than doubtful as to the use
-of such exertion. To gather it might be allowed,--it would never be
-missed from the trees,--but to carry it home was another thing.
-
-But she let them take their own way; for she could never bear to refuse
-Belle any thing, least of all to-day, when Belle had come and put her
-arms around her neck, and laid her soft fair cheek against her old
-nurse’s dark one; telling her she was “sorry for every time she had
-slapped her; but she would never do it again, for Jesus was going to
-help her, and mamma would ask Him to, she was sure.”
-
-So if Belle had asked to dance upon Daphne’s head, or do any other
-extraordinary or unheard-of thing, I think the old woman would have
-contrived in some way to grant her darling’s wish; and she meekly stood
-pulling off the long, gray, pendant mosses, and heaping them in the
-little, eager, outstretched arms which returned to her again and again.
-
-Great was the amazement of the grown people to see the procession which
-appeared, when at last the carriages came to the door to take them
-back to the city, and the children were called to make ready.
-
-First came a negro lad whom Maggie and Belle had pressed into the
-service, showing his two rows of white teeth, and rolling up his eyes
-with enjoyment of the fun; while he pushed before him a small hand-cart
-filled with the precious material, which was to make such a lovely
-“Bessie’s Bower” of the familiar little room far away at the North;
-next Bessie and Belle trotting along, half hidden beneath the moss
-which Maggie had heaped in their arms and around their necks; then
-followed Maggie herself, and Lily, toiling away at a large wheelbarrow
-piled with the spoil; old Daphne bringing up the rear, also carrying
-her share and looking rather sheepish.
-
-“Here’s ‘Birnam wood come to Dunsinane,’” said Mr. Bradford, laughing,
-as he first perceived the approaching show. “What are the little ones
-about? Some freak of Maggie’s, doubtless. What a busy, contriving
-little head it is. What is all that for, Maggie?” as the children came
-within hearing.
-
-“To take home to New York to make a bower for Bessie in our room, papa.
-Mamma gave us leave, and Mr. Powers said we might take all we wanted,”
-answered Maggie, not in the least doubting that she was quite secure
-with both these safe-guards.
-
-“Dearest child!” said Mrs. Bradford when she could speak for laughing.
-“I never supposed you had any idea of taking such a quantity.”
-
-“I told you I wanted quite a good deal, mamma,” answered Maggie,
-beginning to quake for the success of her plan, when she saw how
-astonished and amused the grown people were.
-
-Poor Maggie! So many of her fine plans had come to grief lately, and
-still she must always be forming new ones.
-
-“And how do you propose carrying all this home, Maggie?” asked Mr.
-Bradford.
-
-“Oh! Belle says there are boxes under all the seats of the carriage,
-papa; and we can carry it to the hotel in these. And then I thought
-maybe you could find some way to send it home in the steamer, when Mr.
-Powers sends the sweet potatoes and things to grandmamma.”
-
-“And if there’s too much to go into the carriage boxes, we have a great
-many baskets, and we will lend Maggie some,” said Belle.
-
-“And we are all going to carry some on our laps, we are anxious for
-Bessie to have her bower,” said Lily.
-
-“I’d like it very much, mamma,” pleaded Bessie, last of all.
-
-“My dear children,” said Mrs. Bradford, “I am sorry to disappoint
-you; but it would be impossible to carry all that moss home. Not the
-half of it could go in the carriage, even if we all made ourselves
-uncomfortable for the sake of carrying it; and you would soon grow
-tired of such a bower.”
-
-“But it is useful as well as ornamental, mamma,” said Maggie, with an
-air as if this quite settled the matter in her favor; “for Belle says
-the poor people here make beds of it, and if we ever do grow tired of
-it we could give it to some poor person, and they might be very glad of
-it.”
-
-“And I never _will_ be tired of it, mamma, even when I’m grown up,
-Maggie made it,” said Bessie.
-
-“My darlings,” said mamma, “it is impossible. You may carry home a
-basket full if you will, but I could not allow your room to be filled
-with it, and it would be too much trouble to pack such a quantity, and
-send it to New York. You must rest content with a little, dear Maggie.
-There are a great many reasons why your plan will not do, though it was
-kind in you to think of pleasing Bessie; but we will find some other
-way of doing that.”
-
-Maggie’s disappointment was very great, as was that of all the little
-girls; but when mamma said a thing, it was to be; and Maggie knew she
-would never deprive them of any pleasure that was best for them to
-have. So she tried to bear it as cheerfully as she might, though there
-were tears in her eyes, and she gave a sigh which seemed to come from
-her very shoes, as she dropped the arm of the wheelbarrow.
-
-“I’m afraid you would have to call your room the ‘Spider’s Bower,’ if
-you decked it with that moss, Maggie,” said Mr. Powers; “for those
-insects are very fond of it, and will gather where it is.”
-
-“Ugh!” said Maggie; and the Spanish moss at once lost half its charm
-for her, for she had a great dislike to spiders.
-
-Seeing that she bore her disappointment so well, Mr. Bradford took an
-opportunity of telling Maggie a secret, which went a great way towards
-consoling her. But she had some time to wait before this secret bore
-fruit; and as we are not going back with Maggie and Bessie to their
-city home, perhaps you would like to know what it was.
-
-In the autumn when their travels were ended, and they reached home,
-where a great deal of papering and painting had been done during their
-absence, they found their own little room decked forth with the most
-enchanting wall-paper that ever was seen. On a pearl-colored ground
-ran a vine of green leaves, and bright berries, and here and there,
-perched upon the stems, or hovering over and pecking at the berries,
-were the most brilliant colored birds. Never was seen a prettier paper,
-or one more suited to a little girls’ room; and both Maggie and Bessie
-were quite satisfied with such a “bower” as it made of their cosey
-little nook; and the Spanish moss, well beaten and shaken, to destroy
-all spiders who might have found a retreat therein, was consigned to
-the boys’ play-room in the top story of the house. Though by that time
-it had lost its first novelty and charm, both Maggie and Bessie still
-had a clinging to it, as a memento of their pleasant visit to Belle’s
-beautiful Southern home.
-
-Maggie was still farther consoled that evening when they reached the
-city, by finding two letters awaiting her, and one for Bessie. Maggie’s
-were from Uncle Ruthven and Fred, and Bessie’s was from Harry.
-
-You shall have them all. Uncle Ruthven says,--
-
- “I cannot tell you, dear little Maggie, how much we all miss
- you and darling Princess. I do not like to go to your house and
- find no smiling faces looking out of the window, or running to
- the front door, or head of the stairs when Uncle Ruthven comes.
- So I do not go very often; only now and then to see that all
- is going right during your absence. I hear nothing from the
- William Tells and Rip Van Winkles, and therefore conclude they
- are still enjoying their long nap.
-
- “Our house is quite gay, however, what with the three boys,
- Flossy, and Marygold, all of whom are flourishing.
-
- “Flossy was very mopish for a day or two after you left; and
- kept himself hidden under sofas and behind curtains, in a most
- melancholy manner, refusing to play, and eating very little.
- He is in better spirits now, however, though not as frisky as
- usual; and Harry and Fred take him out every day for a walk;
- but when they come towards home, he always insists on turning
- into your street; and when they take him up and bring him to
- our house, he falls into low spirits again, and retires into
- private life until the next meal-time.
-
- “Marygold is well, and sings away as merrily as he did in
- your own room at home. Aunt Annie wanted to put him in the
- conservatory with the other birds, but grandmamma said, no: he
- must hang in the bow-window of her own sitting-room; for since
- she could not have you, she must have something which belonged
- to you about her. So there he swings and sings, reminding us
- constantly of our Maggie and Bessie so far away.
-
- “As for Frankie, he is as mischievous and roguish as ever,
- and pretty saucy into the bargain. He seems very much afraid
- that grandmamma will think she is to take his mamma’s place
- altogether; and every morning when he comes down to breakfast,
- enters the room with,--
-
- “‘Damma, I’ll stay wis oo, and mind oo des dis one more day.
- Den I do back my mamma’s house and mind her.’
-
- “If grandmamma tells him to do or not to do any thing, he says:
- ‘Yes, I’ll mind oo dis once; but oo’re not my mamma.’
-
- “‘But she is my mamma, and I make all little boys mind her,’ I
- said to him this morning.
-
- “He looked gravely at me for a moment, and then said, ‘Den be a
- dood boy ouself, and den I will see ’bout it.’
-
- “The rogue gave us a good fright yesterday. I was writing
- letters in the library, when he came in, and asked if he might
- stay with me. I gave him leave, provided he was quiet; and for
- a wonder, he was so; standing for some time looking out of the
- window, till he saw a poor drunken man go by, when he turned to
- me and said,--
-
- “‘When tipseys walk, they run.’
-
- “After that he came down, and I gave him the great book of
- animals you know so well, with which he amused himself for some
- time, telling the animals about the ‘poor tipseys.’ He was
- very sweet and good, and being much engaged with my letters, I
- did not pay much attention to him. But, after a time, I looked
- around to see if he was in mischief, and he was nowhere to be
- seen.
-
- “The book lay open on the floor, and one or two toys beside
- it, but no Frankie. The door stood open, and thinking he must
- have slipped out, I went in search of him. He was not to be
- found. Grandmamma, your two aunts, and all the servants were
- soon alarmed, and joined in the search, but all in vain; and we
- were just about sending to mamma’s house, to see if he had run
- away there, when Aunt Bessie saw a little fat hand peeping out
- of the almost closed door of one of the bookcases. She ran and
- pulled it open, and there lay our lost boy, fast asleep. He had
- crept in among the papers and pamphlets, and, drawing the door
- nearly to, had fallen asleep without meaning to, in his quiet
- nook. He woke to find us all looking at him, and was very angry
- at himself for going to sleep; exclaiming, ‘I des b’lieve I
- went to seep, and I tates no more naps in de daytime. I ’samed
- of myself.’
-
- “Harry and Fred are going to write to you, so I will leave them
- to speak for themselves. We are all well here, and last evening
- had the great pleasure of reading the letters you and Bessie
- wrote to the Colonel and Mrs. Rush, and which they kindly
- brought around to us.
-
- “Write to me soon, and tell all your adventures to your
- affectionate uncle,
-
- “RUTHVEN STANTON.”
-
-Harry’s letter to Bessie came next, and ran thus:--
-
- “PRECIOUS PET PRINCESS,--It seems to me as if it were two
- months instead of two weeks since you went away, and I can’t
- tell you how I want to see you. But it is all right, for I
- know you are having first-rate times, and dear mamma is getting
- ever so much good. We’re not having such a bad time either,
- though it’s not like having you all home. Uncle Ruthven is a
- first-rate fellow to stay with, I can tell you, and when we
- have finished our lessons, he always has some fun on hand for
- us. So we don’t have time to feel very lonely. But I am glad
- for your sakes that you and Mag were not left behind, for you
- would have felt worse about it than Fred and I do.
-
- “Last Saturday we all went to Riverside, we boys on our ponies,
- of course, and had a famous day. Uncle John has a new boat,
- and he and Uncle Ruthven rowed us across the river,--they let
- Fred and me take an oar by turns, too,--and we went up the
- Palisades. Isn’t there a splendid view up there, though? You
- can see ever and ever so far. There were lots of Bob Whites
- about, and we heard them all round us, and we came upon two
- fellows with dogs and guns hunting them. I hope they didn’t
- have much luck, the old rascals!
-
- “Haven’t we had a time this afternoon? I don’t know just how
- it happened, but I think Master Marygold must have opened the
- door of his cage himself,--for we have seen him pecking away at
- the catch several times lately; and Uncle Ruthven, only this
- morning, told Jane to twist a piece of wire round it when she
- cleaned the cage. But Jane forgot it, and so this afternoon
- Frankie came running in saying, ‘Marydold’s few away;’ and
- sure enough the cage was empty and no Marygold to be seen. But
- after awhile we heard a saucy ‘cheep,’ and there, on the top
- of grandpapa’s picture, sat my gentleman as independent as you
- please; and, before we had time to shut the window, out he flew
- into the yard. Weren’t we in a way though, thinking what you
- and Maggie would say to come home and find him lost. He hopped
- around for a while, flying off every time any one went near
- him, and at last flew clear away over the neighbors’ gardens,
- and we gave him up for lost.
-
- “Grandmamma put his cage outside, hoping he would grow homesick
- and come back. And sure enough; for she was taking a nap in
- her bow-window about sunset, when she was waked by a ‘cheep,
- cheep,’ and there was Marygold hopping about on her work-table,
- and asking pardon for his naughtiness as plainly as any bird
- could. She brought his cage, and in he popped, glad enough
- to be at home. So he’s all safe once more, and his cage made
- secure, so he can’t try that dodge again.
-
- “You know Colonel Rush has taken a house at Newport for the
- summer, and he wants us all to come there when we get through
- with our other wanderings. Won’t it be jolly? Then you know we
- are to spend October at dear, old Chalecoo; so you will have
- change enough for one six months. What travelled young ladies
- you and Maggie will be!
-
- “I think I have written the most correct and proper letter in
- the world, and hope your dear little highness will not find any
- ‘unproper impressions,’ as you once said when Fred used some
- slang word; and that it will altogether suit your notions. Lots
- of love and kisses to all from
-
- “Your loving brother,
-
- “HARRY.”
-
-Here is Fred’s letter to Maggie.
-
- “DEAR OLD MIDGET,--Don’t I wish you were here that I might give
- you a good squeeze and hear you call out, ‘O Fred! you are
- cur-r-rushing me!’ I’ll play the bear in the matter of hugs,
- when I do get you back,--that is certain. By the way, there’s
- a mean chap leading a poor, old, black bear about the streets
- here, making him dance, and scrape a fiddle, and other jigs
- of that kind. It is not a bit of fun to see the poor, poky,
- old thing perform, and he must have been beaten ever so much
- before he could be taught. You can see that by the way he is
- frightened when his master lifts his stick. It’s a mean shame,
- so it is. Don’t you say so, Mag?
-
- “What jolly times you are having! so are we for the matter of
- that. Uncle Ruthven is a regular brick,--though I always knew
- that,--and so are grandmamma and the colonel, and all the rest.
- School breaks up the twentieth of June, and then, hurrah! for
- the country. Uncle John has invited Tom Norris to go with us to
- Riverside, and stay all the time that we stay. First-rate in
- him, wasn’t it? Tom is the jolliest good boy I ever saw: you
- never catch him in the least thing that isn’t just up to the
- right, and yet he’s the best company and merriest fellow in
- the world. He keeps me out of a heap of mischief, many a time,
- dear, old chap! that’s so, I know. Dear, old, steady-going Hal!
- he often wonders at my tantrums, I know; but he’s good too, and
- it is awful hard work to keep out of scrapes in school when
- you’ve a quick temper like mine, and not too much thought. I’ll
- tell you a secret, Mag: I believe it has helped me a good deal
- to see you and Queen Bess take so much pains to cure yourselves
- of those two very faults,--you, with your carelessness, and
- Bessie, with her passionate temper. I thought it was a shame
- if you two little girls did it, that a great fellow like me
- shouldn’t. And for that reason I’m going to let you tell dear
- mamma some thing that will make her dear eyes dance. Mr. Peters
- called me to him this morning,--and I thought for sure I must
- be in some row, though I didn’t see what,--and he said he
- wanted to tell me that no boy in the school had improved in
- character, or taken so much pains with his faults, as I had
- during the last year. I don’t want to be puffed up, but didn’t
- I feel some pumpkins; but I could most have cried that mamma
- wasn’t home for me to tell the good news to. However, when I
- went home, there sat grandmamma, the dear, precious, old soul,
- so sweet and good and loving; so I just pitched into her and
- gave her the news, and a tight squeeze into the bargain. She
- was as pleased as could be, but then she isn’t mamma; so just
- you tell the darling mother, and bid her shut her eyes, and do
- you give her a good choke for me, just as I do, Ducky-Daddles!
- and see if she don’t gasp out, ‘Oh, my dear boy!’ and you write
- it to me, Mag. And tell papa, Mr. Peters told me if I turned
- out such a man as my father,--a true Christian, a perfect
- gentleman, and a thorough scholar,--no one could ask more for
- me. I never expect to be all that, but it’s something to have
- one’s father spoken of that way, and, Mag, do you believe, I
- just bawled. And old Peters--I’ll never call him that again if
- I remember, only it comes so handy--asked me to go of a little
- errand for him. I knew that it was just that he knew I didn’t
- want to go back to the school-room with red eyes, and I was
- all right again before I came back. He’s a jolly old soul, if
- he is strict. But I just tell you, you and her royal highness
- can take some of the credit to yourselves; for I know you have
- helped me without meaning it. And Uncle Ruthven is as pleased
- as any thing, and he said he had seen it himself, and he had
- meant to give me a handsome pony for taking pains with myself;
- but as papa had given me one when he gave Hal a watch just
- before you went away, he would let me say what the present
- should be.
-
- “And so, Midget, I told him I should like him to give you and
- Bess the pony between you; and he said I had better take a
- couple of days to think it over, and he would give me leave to
- change my mind. I suppose he thinks I’ll slink out of it; but
- I shan’t, so you two may just count on a pony of your own. I
- guess there’ll be a side-saddle too, for Uncle Ruth don’t do
- things by halves. I’m awfully sleepy, and anybody but you would
- be tired of this long letter.
-
- “Your loving brother,
-
- “FREDERICK TALBOT BRADFORD, ESQ.”
-
-Maggie answered her Uncle Ruthven’s letter the very next morning in
-these words:--
-
- “DEAR UNCLE RUTHVEN,--Whenever I think of the pleasure of
- writing to my absent friends who are away from me in distant
- lands I am always very thankful that I am not a quadrewped or
- other animal which has only legs and no arms to write with. And
- if it had, no brains or ideas, but only instinct which is not
- enough to write with. So I thank God He gave me a sencible soul
- which thinks, and arms and also pen, ink, and paper. And also
- pencils for Bessie has to print with them, and also friends
- which we can write to, for if I was an orfun and had no friends
- I would be badly of and very lonesome and my ideas of no use.
- So I think every one ought to be very grateful for these things
- (if they have them) and if they have not let them say God knows
- best; and I think it is the duty of the human race to make use
- of these things and to write long letters to all their friends,
- for it is such a pleasure to have letters and to answer them.
- And I am going to write you the longest letter I ever wrote in
- my life, because the Bible says, ‘Whatsoever ye would that men
- should do unto you, do ye also unto them.’
-
- “But, dear Uncle Ruthven, we have had no adventures to tell you
- about. I mean _real real_ adventures; except only one which
- was most terrible to hear and was that Bessie met a snake that
- was poisonous and nearly bit her, but a good dog of Mr. Powrs
- would not let her go on, and so she did not come in the way
- of the snake which was a wonderful blessing or she might have
- died. And then I would have been like the king Miss Ashton
- told us about, whose son was drowned and he never smiled again
- nor would I if my Bessie came to such a sad end but would be
- unhappy all the days of my existence and never laugh at the
- funniest thing that could happen. And I pray our Father in
- Heaven that my Bessie will not die while I am alive even to
- go to Heaven for I would miss her so very, very much. But I
- will not write any more of this most unhappy thing or else my
- beloved uncle you will say ‘what a sad, stupid letter Maggie
- has written to me,’ and I would not wish any one to take the
- liberty of saying such a thing about me.
-
- “Belle’s home which is named Oakdale is a place most beautiful
- to behold with such large oak trees that make the most pleasant
- of shades and magnolias and vines of jessamine and other sweet
- smells most delicious to the nose. I do wish there was a nicer
- name to call a nose, it don’t sound nice in a letter. And
- such lots and heaps of rice, enough for a million dinner and
- breakfasts I should think but I hope I shall never be in the
- necessity to eat it for I hate rice. But Bessie likes it very
- much so I am glad it grows for her and others. And we had such
- fun playing with it and working too for we helped the men a
- great deal. Now you need not laugh Uncle Ruthven nor the boys
- either if you let them read this letter, for the men said we
- did and if you had seen the great bag we filled you would know
- it. It was real funny to see the rice run down the wooden
- gutters into the hoppers. Isn’t that a queer name?
-
- “Papa said such a funny thing. He said he knew a hopper that
- would not be of much use in that mill because it always shut
- its mouth whenever any rice came near it, and he meant me. It
- made us all laugh so. The next day after to-morrow we are going
- to take adieu of Savannah and all the kind people we have come
- to know; and of Miss Adams and the doctor; and most of all of
- Mr. and Mrs. Norris and Lily. Lily cries about it and wants to
- stay with us but her parents have to stay in this place for a
- short time and to go home by the steamer, and I am glad and
- thankful such is not my fate to be seasick again. Oh! Uncle
- Ruthven! it is awful! and you can’t help it if you make up your
- mind ever so much. But we go by land which is much better than
- the sea to travel on and shall visit many places and see many
- surprising things which I shall advertise you of when I know
- them myself.
-
- “Bessie and I think we never heard of any thing so kind and
- generous as Fred to say he wanted you to give us a pony for
- his present and never no never again will I say Fred teases, no
- not if he plages me ever so much. But I think he does not plage
- so much as he used to. Mamma was so pleased about him and is
- at this present moment writing to him. It is a very charming
- thing to have sencible and religious parents and I suppose also
- it must be so for the parents to have their children improve
- and be as sencible and good as is in their natures. But it is
- not in mine to be so good as Bessie and I despair of it for it
- is not in me. The other day a lady was talking to Bessie and
- I heard her say afterwards, ‘That child is a little angel.’ I
- suppose she meant _like_ an angel which would be far better for
- her to say as it is always best to say just what you mean but I
- thank her for the complement to my Bessie and think she must be
- a woman of sense.
-
- “Harry wrote to Mamma and said something that hurt my feelings.
- He said I wrote very nice letters but they were so full of
- moral reflextions and centiment that he almost killed himself
- laughing. Now I know he didn’t almost kill himself and Miss
- Ashton never taught us reflextions and centiment and I don’t
- know what they mean and I wouldn’t do such a thing as to put
- them in my letters. I don’t think Harry is very kind to say
- that and make fun of me. But don’t you tell any one I said so
- for you know I tell you all my secrets dear Uncle Ruthven and
- maybe Harry would think I was cross.
-
- “Please give my love to every body I know if I do love them and
- if I don’t my complements and most of all to all my own people.
- It took me two days to write all this letter which I hope will
- give satisfaction from your affectionate beloved
-
- “MAGGIE.”
-
-Last of all here is a little letter which Bessie wrote to her
-grandmamma,--
-
- “DEAR DARLING GRANMAMMA,--Your Bessie is going to send a
- letter to you to tell you how I love you but I cant rite such
- nice leters as Maggie. Dont Maggie make nice leters and she
- said she would help me but I toled her I wanted to make it
- all myself so you would kno how much I love you. Please dear
- Granmamma to rite me an answer to my leter and I hope you will
- keep alife till we come home or if you are not dear Manma will
- cry and all the rest of us two. I saw a carf in a cart with all
- its legs tied and it mad me sorry and I wish it was mine to let
- it luse. Baby is so sweet and she has a new trik that is so
- cuning. All the time she pulls off her shoes and soks and Mamma
- don’t want her to so Nursey says shame shame when she does it
- and when baby sees any one else do it now she always calls
- shame and she saw a gentelman in the parlor who did not kno how
- to be very polite and he sat with his slipper hanging on his
- toe and Baby pointed her finger at him and called out very loud
- Oh shame shame and every boddy lafed it was so funny. Every
- day I am more and more glad for dear Manma feels so much better
- and it makes such a joy in my hart that I can’t tell it but you
- kno it don’t you dear Granmanma for you are her own mother and
- you love her just like she loves me. I am too tired to make it
- any longer and I love you and my solger and all my peple and I
- send them kisses.
-
- “Good by dear Granmanma
-
- “Your little pet
-
- “BESSIE.”
-
-
-
-
-VII.
-
-_A “REAL, REAL ADVENTURE.”_
-
-
-They were all in the railway train bound for ----; that is, Mr. and
-Mrs. Bradford, with their three little girls and nurse, Mr. Powers,
-Belle, and old Daphne.
-
-Maggie, Bessie, and Belle, with their dolls, had two whole seats to
-themselves, one having been turned so as to face the other, and give
-them what Bessie called a “nice, cunning travelling-house.” Here they
-had established themselves in great comfort, papa and mamma being just
-behind; while Mr. Powers, and the two nurses with Baby, were seated on
-the opposite side of the car.
-
-And here, by and by, seeing the nice play that was going on, did Miss
-Baby think it best to betake herself and her own doll, named Peter
-Bartholomew. This gentleman with the long name, which had been given
-to him by Fred, was made entirely of worsted, face, cap, coat, and
-pants, all knit of the brightest colors, and could be knocked about or
-thrown from any height without damage to his head or limbs. So for this
-reason he had come travelling with Baby Annie, as her dolls were apt to
-receive some hard knocks and severe falls, not altogether wholesome for
-more brittle materials.
-
-But Annie was not very fond of Peter Bartholomew, and he received
-some pretty hard usage at her tiny hands; so that it was well he was
-not a gentleman of tender feelings, and was able to take thumps, hard
-squeezes, and scoldings with the utmost composure.
-
-However, on this occasion she thought it wise to praise Peter
-Bartholomew, by way of persuading her sisters that his company, as well
-as her own, was desirable; and, putting her little head on one side in
-the most insinuating manner, she spoke thus from nurse’s lap,--
-
-“Baby tome too. Peter tome too. Baby dood. Peter dood. Nice Peter. Oh,
-pitty Peter!”
-
-“Oh! isn’t she too cunning, the darling?” said Bessie. “Let’s let her
-come play with us.”
-
-“Yes, we’ll take her in our house,” said Belle.
-
-So baby was taken into the enclosure, which Maggie had made quite
-complete by fastening a handkerchief from the arm of one seat to that
-of the other, and calling it “the door.” Nurse could have lifted baby
-at once into the place which was offered for her; but that would not do
-at all. Baby must wait till the door was untied, and she admitted in
-due form.
-
-Once there, and seated in a snug corner, she behaved herself very well
-for a long time, watching her little sisters and Belle with grave
-admiration and wonder, and submitting to be played and “_pretended_”
-with just as they chose, only now and then insisting that they should
-all “tiss Peter,” a thing which she would by no means be induced to do
-herself.
-
-But at last she took it into her head to look out of the window, and in
-order to do that she must stand upon her feet, which was not safe to
-let her do without some careful hand to guard her; and as she objected
-very decidedly to returning to the other side of the car where nurse
-sat, there was nothing for it but to let nurse come to her.
-
-Now this interfered very much with the arrangements of the three little
-girls, who were having a grand “family” play; and not one of them was
-at all inclined to be so disturbed, and there was even some pouting
-when nurse said they must make room for her for a short time.
-
-But Maggie, Bessie, and Belle could all understand better than Baby
-Annie, that in travelling one must consider the comfort and convenience
-of one’s fellow-passengers, as well as one’s own. Baby was very little,
-and not very well: they had a long day’s journey before them, and it
-was necessary that she should be indulged in a measure, and kept in a
-good humor as long as possible; and Bessie was the first to think of
-this.
-
-“Now, just let me in here for a bit, my honeys,” said nurse, as Maggie
-stood with her hand on the pocket-handkerchief door, determined to
-defend her “house” as long as possible. “Baby’ll fret if I take her to
-the other side when she don’t like it, and that will worry your mother;
-besides it’s sunny there when we come out of the woods. Let her look
-out of your window awhile, with me to hold her, and it will soon be her
-sleepy time, when ye may have your place to yourselves.”
-
-Now old nurse was by no means a small woman; and the children knew
-that their quarters would be very much narrowed when she should find
-entrance there, and she might have found it hard work to persuade them
-to yield without interference from their father or mother, had not
-Bessie bethought herself when nurse spoke of her mother.
-
-“Oh, yes!” she said to her sister and Belle, “you know we came on our
-travels to do mamma good, and so we mustn’t let any thing trouble her.
-If we do, maybe our Father would think we didn’t care very much that He
-made her better, and that we are ungrateful. Any thing must be choosed
-’cept to worry mamma. And baby don’t know any better; so let’s give up
-to her this time, if she cries everybody will be uncomf’able.”
-
-“Well,” said Maggie, once more untying the handkerchief, “I won’t be
-selfish.”
-
-“Nor I,” said Belle, who had been the most unwilling to give up her own
-way.
-
-The “cunning house” was certainly far less roomy when Mammy was seated
-therein; but having made up their minds to do a kind act, our little
-girls did it pleasantly and made no fussing about it; the only thing
-that was said being when Bessie remarked,--
-
-“Nursey, it would be rather convenienter if you were not _quite_ so
-fat,” which nurse thought a great joke, and laughed heartily, saying,--
-
-“And there’s nobody knows that better than your old Mammy, my pet; but
-just put by your play till baby’s had her fill of looking out, and I’ll
-tell ye a story.”
-
-Nurse’s stories always found a market; and the three little girls
-ranged themselves in the seat facing her, and listened eagerly while
-she told them the most marvellous of fairy tales.
-
-Meanwhile, Baby Annie, happy and contented, amused herself with
-watching the swiftly passing objects; and Peter Bartholomew, held by
-one foot, hung dangling head downwards from the car window. How much he
-enjoyed this novel mode of riding, neither he nor his little mistress
-ever told, though baby had enough to say both to herself and him while
-nurse talked to the other children.
-
-But at last Mrs. Bradford suddenly exclaimed,--
-
-“Take care, nurse; baby has her head out!” and Mammy, who had turned
-her face for a moment from her charge, drew her in and seated her on
-her lap.
-
-“Baby must not put her head out,” said mamma: “she’ll be hurt.”
-
-“Peter out,” said baby.
-
-“Why! she’s lost Peter Barfolomew,” said Belle.
-
-“Sure enough,” said nurse, when she had shaken out her skirts, and
-looked on the floor, without finding that gentleman.
-
-“Bad Peter. Peter all don,” chuckled the baby.
-
-“Did ye throw Peter out?” asked Mammy.
-
-Baby could not say yes; but she nodded her little head till it seemed
-as if she would wag it off, seeming to think she had done something
-very praiseworthy.
-
-“Oh, you naughty girl!” said nurse.
-
-“No, no: baby dood; bad Peter. Peter all don, Peter out,” said baby
-again, clapping her hands, and laughing with the most self-satisfied
-air.
-
-Yes, Peter Bartholomew was “all gone,” left far behind as the train
-sped on its way; and though the children went off into merry peals of
-laughter at little Annie’s bit of mischief, Mrs. Bradford was rather
-sorry, since Aunt Patty had taken such pains to make him for her.
-However, the baby knew no better, and his loss could not trouble her
-much.
-
-Nurse had not finished her story, and when the children’s mirth had
-subsided, she went on with it. Having disposed of Peter Bartholomew,
-and finding that she was not allowed to put her head out, the window
-lost its charms for baby, and she sat still on nurse’s lap for a few
-moments, gravely regarding her fellow-passengers, and trying to find
-amusement in them.
-
-Nor was it long before she found a new object of interest. In the seat
-next to Mammy and herself, and of course with his back towards them as
-they rode backwards, was a gentleman who wore an enormous Panama straw
-hat. The older children had remarked this hat and wondered at it, but
-after the first moment they forgot both the hat and its wearer, and
-noticed them no more. But I cannot say that the gentleman had not
-noticed them, although he gave no sign of doing so.
-
-The hat by no means took baby’s fancy: perhaps she thought it took up
-more than its share of room in the world; however that may be, she
-concluded to take a closer look at it, and raised herself upon her
-little feet on the cushioned seat beside Mammy. First she looked at
-the hat on one side, then on the other; then she peeped under it; then
-tried to lift herself on the tips of her small toes and peer over it;
-then carefully touched it with one little finger, and finally expressed
-her opinion in a loud, emphatic,
-
-“Bad hat!”
-
-But the owner of the offending article of dress did not turn his head
-or appear to take the slightest notice, not even when baby repeated,--
-
-“Bad, bad hat! Off hat!”
-
-“Sh! sh! my lamb. What’s come to ye to-day?” said nurse.
-
-Not the spirit of a lamb certainly, for baby was in a contrary mood,
-and determined to have her own way by one means or another; and,
-finding the hat remained in its place in spite of her orders, she
-seized hold of it; and, before nurse could stop her, had snatched it
-from the stranger’s head and tossed it into his lap. Still, without
-turning his head or seeming at all disturbed, the gentleman put it
-on again, while baby struggled to free herself from nurse’s hold,
-shouting,--
-
-“Off hat, off! Bad hat!” again and again, till her mother was obliged
-to call her to order.
-
-Little as she was, baby had learned to obey when mamma spoke; but the
-sight of that hat was not to be endured by any baby of taste, and even
-when seated upon mamma’s lap, and treated to a bit of sponge-cake and
-papa’s watch, she could not forget it, but now and then broke forth in
-a wailing tone with,--
-
-“Oh dear! Bad hat, off hat!” till at last the gentleman removed the
-hat, and submitted to ride bareheaded till his little tormentor should
-be asleep.
-
-This was soon the case when the cause of her trouble was out of sight;
-for it was, as nurse said, “her sleepy time,”--one reason perhaps why
-she was so fractious,--and she forgot hat, watch, and cake in a sound
-mid-day nap.
-
-Her two sisters and Belle thought all this remarkably funny, and had
-had much ado to stifle their laughter, so that it should not reach the
-ears of the stranger with whom baby had made so free. But in spite
-of their amusement, which had been shared by more than one of the
-grown people around, Bessie was rather troubled lest mamma should be
-worried by the little thing’s misbehavior and crying, and also lest the
-gentleman should have been vexed.
-
-To tell the truth, he was rather annoyed at the notice which all this
-had brought upon him and his unfortunate hat; but his vexation passed
-away the moment he heard a soft voice at his ear, whispering,--
-
-“Thank you very much, sir, for taking off your hat; and will you please
-to s’cuse baby, she don’t know any better than to take a liberty. As
-soon as she can understand, mamma will teach her to be polite.”
-
-The gentleman turned his face towards her. A pleasant, good-natured
-face it was, with a merry twinkle in the eyes just now.
-
-“Mamma is a first-rate teacher of politeness and some other good
-things, I see,” he said, smiling.
-
-“Yes, sir; ’deed she is,” answered Bessie; wondering what mamma had
-said or done since they had been in the cars by which this stranger
-could know so much; and then, thinking her duty done, she turned away
-and began her play with the other children again. After this, all went
-smoothly and quietly enough till they reached a town where they were to
-change cars, and where two different railroads crossed one another at
-the depot. Here they had to wait for an hour until their train should
-be ready to start; and here Mrs. Bradford thought she might have a
-good rest after her long ride.
-
-But a fair was going on in the small town, and the dirty little hotel
-was full to overflowing; so that the only place that could be had for
-Mrs. Bradford and her sleeping baby was an eight feet square room with
-a hard sofa, and two equally uninviting chairs. However, by means of
-cloaks and shawls, a tolerably comfortable resting-place was arranged
-for these two; and the three children who had no mind to be shut up in
-the tiny room, were taken for a walk by Mr. Bradford and Daphne; Mr.
-Powers going to call on an old friend who lived near by.
-
-But there was a good deal of noise, dust, and confusion in the street,
-and the little girls soon tired of it and wanted to go back to the
-hotel. When they reached it, two trains were standing at the station,
-and Daphne exclaimed, pointing to the nearest,--
-
-“Dere’s de train, Massa Bradford. S’posin’ I jis takes de little ladies
-into de cars. Better for dem waitin’ dere dan in de verandy where all
-dem folks is; an’ we’ll wake Miss Baby for sure all goin’ into dat
-little room.”
-
-This last was more than likely; and the veranda where all those men
-were lounging about, smoking and drinking and swearing, was certainly
-no place for little ladies; and Daphne’s idea seemed a good one to Mr.
-Bradford.
-
-“You are sure that is our train, Daphne?” he asked.
-
-“Sure, Massa Bradford. Ain’t I been in it a hundred times?”
-
-“Is this the train for ----?” asked Mr. Bradford of a man standing
-beside the cars.
-
-“All right, sir. Last car, sir,” was the reply.
-
-Mr. Bradford thinking himself quite sure, helped the children and
-Daphne into the car, found them good places, and looking at his watch,
-said,--
-
-“We have half an hour still. Keep these seats for the rest of our
-party, and I will bring them all soon. You are right, Daphne: it is
-more comfortable here than in the hotel.”
-
-Then he went away; and for a few moments the children were well amused,
-watching all the bustle around the station, and now and then dipping
-rosy little fingers into a basket of delicious strawberries just given
-to Daphne by a friend whom she had met. The old woman’s pleasure in the
-splendid fruit, was to see her young mistress and her little friends
-enjoy it, and she encouraged them to eat as long as they would.
-
-But presently a steam whistle sounded, and she looked about her
-uneasily, saying,--
-
-“’Pears like this train ain’t maybe right, after all. I go see ’bout
-him, Miss Belle. Jes you sit still one minute.”
-
-[Illustration: Bessie’s Travels. p. 172.]
-
-If Daphne had not been so engaged in feeding her young charge, she
-would have known that this was the second time the whistle had sounded;
-and she was terribly startled when just as she set her foot upon the
-ground in order to seek Mr. Bradford and make all sure, it was blown
-again, there was a call of “all aboard,” and before the bewildered old
-woman had collected her senses, the train steamed out of the station.
-Had she instantly made known her trouble to those about her, it might
-not even then have been too late; but instead of that she rushed after
-the cars, gesticulating and beckoning with an umbrella which was the
-pride of her heart, and which she always carried, and crying aloud,--
-
-“Hi there! Hi! Hold on dem cars; hold on till I get my chillen. Hi! Hi!”
-
-The people about thought her crazy, and laughed and cheered as she tore
-after the fast receding train; but to poor old Daphne it was no joke,
-and as it turned a curve in the road and was lost to sight, she dropped
-her umbrella and stood still wringing her hands, and crying,--
-
-“Oh, de chillen, de chillen! Oh, my little Miss Belle! what I gone and
-done, and what dey faders say?”
-
-But we must leave Daphne, and go in the cars with our three little
-girls.
-
-For the first few moments they did not understand it, and even after
-the cars were in rapid motion, looked about them expecting to see their
-parents and nurses come in. The truth came first to Maggie, and her
-poor little heart almost stood still with terror and dismay.
-
-“Why, we’re going!” exclaimed Belle. “Where’s papa?”
-
-“And papa and mamma, and all our people?” cried Bessie in a terrified
-voice.
-
-Then Maggie broke forth.
-
-“Oh, we’re gone off with! They’re left behind! What shall we do? Oh!
-what shall we do? There’s nobody to take care of us: we’re gone off
-with.”
-
-Belle immediately set up the most violent screams; and Maggie and
-Bessie were as much distressed, though they did not cry as loudly.
-
-The people around them soon understood the cause of their trouble:
-indeed Maggie’s exclamations left no room for doubt, that they were
-really “gone off with;” though it was some time before either of the
-three could speak coherently enough to say how it had happened. In fact
-the poor little things hardly knew themselves: all they could tell was
-that Daphne had thought they were in the wrong train, had gone to see,
-and before she came back they were speeding away, they knew not where,
-without their natural protectors, and in the midst of perfect strangers.
-
-Bessie was the first to collect herself enough to make the story
-understood, though even then, her tears would hardly let her speak to
-the group of curious and sympathizing people, who gathered around the
-three as they clung weeping together.
-
-“And now we’re quite, quite lost; and there’s no policeman to help us,”
-she sobbed; “and what will mamma do?”
-
-“Poor little dears,” said a lady, pressing forward, and laying her hand
-soothingly on the little, pitiful, upturned face. “Don’t cry so, my
-children: you’ll be taken back in some way to your parents.”
-
-“I’m all papa has,” gasped Belle: “he can’t do wifout me.”
-
-“Please let us get out,” moaned Maggie: “we could run back to where our
-papa and mamma are.”
-
-“The train must be put back,” said one of the by-standers, and he went
-to find the conductor, and see what could be done; while the lady who
-had spoken to the children sat down beside them and tried to quiet them
-with assurances that their parents would certainly find them again.
-
-“But dear mamma will be so frightened and worried, and it’s so bad for
-her,” said Bessie; her first thought always that tender care for her
-mother.
-
-The story had spread through the train; and people were coming in
-from the other cars to look at the three little waifs, who, all by
-themselves, were each instant being taken farther from their friends;
-and Belle, looking up as the door was opened afresh, spied a familiar
-object.
-
-“Oh! there’s the ‘bad hat’ man!” she cried, glad to see any thing on
-which she had ever laid her eyes before, even though it might be that
-ugly hat with the strange face beneath it.
-
-At the same moment there came in also the conductor, and the gentleman
-who had gone to find him; and now the children felt a faint hope that
-there might be some way out of this trouble.
-
-But the conductor was surly, and absolutely refused to put back,--which
-indeed would have been hardly safe,--or to stop the train and let out
-the children, as was proposed by some person, and pleaded for by the
-little ones themselves.
-
-And here the “bad hat” man put in his word.
-
-“That would never do,” he said; “those little things could not
-possibly walk back to ----, and no conveyance could be found along
-here. They must come on to the next station, and there we will see what
-can be done.”
-
-Down went the three heads and up went Belle’s voice again at these
-unwelcome words; but the “bad hat” had a kind heart beneath it, and the
-wearer at once set himself to comfort the forlorn children.
-
-“Come, come, take heart,” he said cheerily. “Now let us see how soon
-we shall get back to papa and mamma. It will not take us more than one
-hour or so, to reach the next station, and then--well, to be sure,
-we’ll have to wait awhile there for the up-train,”--he did not think
-it best to say it would be more than four hours,--“but we’ll telegraph
-them and let them know you are all safe, and will be with them before
-long.”
-
-“Do you know the children sir?” asked a lady.
-
-“Well, no, madam, and they don’t know me; but they know my _hat_ pretty
-well, and I think that is ground for an acquaintance. It’s a broad one,
-anyhow, is it not?” he said with a nod at Belle, “and we’re going to
-take advantage of it.”
-
-“It’s a great while for poor mamma to wait for us, and she’ll be very
-frightened,” said Bessie, wiping the tears from her eyes, though they
-were immediately filled again. “I s’pose she’ll think we’re never
-coming back to her.”
-
-“Not a bit of it,” said “Bad Hat:” “she’ll think you’ll find some one
-to look after you and bring you back; and how delighted she’ll be to
-see you safe after such an adventure.”
-
-At this last word all the children pricked up their ears, especially
-Maggie. She, being the most timid of the three, had been the most
-broken down by terror, and had, until now, remained in the very depths
-of despair. But it was really almost a consolation to hear this called
-“an adventure,” and to remember that here was a subject for the most
-interesting of letters, provided they ever again reached home and
-friends, and had the opportunity of writing such. She was still rather
-doubtful how this was to be brought about, in spite of Mr. “Bad Hat’s”
-assurances.
-
-“Why! so it is an adventure,” said Bessie; “and Maggie said she wished
-we’d have some great adventure, but she didn’t mean this kind of a one;
-did you, Maggie?”
-
-“No, _indeed_ I didn’t,” sobbed Maggie.
-
-“But you can write a letter about it,” said Belle, catching her breath
-between almost every two words; “and it will be so interesting: all the
-people you know will want to read it.”
-
-Belle, as well as Bessie, had the greatest admiration for Maggie’s
-letters, and thought them the most marvellous works of genius.
-
-“Of course they will,” said the gentleman, whom our little strays were
-already beginning to look upon as a friend. “And so, Maggie writes
-letters, does she? I wish she would write one to me one of these days.”
-
-“But she don’t know your name,” said Bessie.
-
-“Well, perhaps she might find out. I am not ashamed of it. But I think
-this little lady has found a name for me. When I came in the car I
-heard her say, ‘There’s the bad hat man.’ Now suppose Maggie writes a
-letter and directs it to the ‘bad hat man,’ do you think it would reach
-me?”
-
-“Yes, I fink it would,” said Belle with emphasis, and eyeing the hat
-with a look which seemed to add, “there’s no possibility of mistaking
-that hat.”
-
-So, in pleasant, cheerful talk, the friendly stranger tried to beguile
-the way, and help the little ones to bear their troubles; and he
-partly succeeded, though now and then a heavy sigh, or a murmured “Are
-we most at the next station?” or “Oh, mamma!” showed that they were
-not forgotten. The other people, who had gathered round in pitying
-sympathy, saw that they had fallen into good hands, and went back to
-their seats, leaving them to his care.
-
-“But what shall we do now?” asked Maggie, in new alarm, as they at last
-approached the longed-for station where they were to leave this train,
-and at least feel that they were to be borne no farther from their
-friends. “I don’t know about the streets.”
-
-Now it was rather a strange, but a very good thing that, timid as
-Maggie was, she seldom lost her presence of mind; and, however
-frightened she might be, could still think what was best to do for
-herself and others. You will remember how she thought of her own sash
-and Bessie’s, as a means for saving Aunt Bessie’s life when she fell
-over the precipice at Chalecoo. So now feeling as if the care of Bessie
-and Belle rather fell upon her, since she was the oldest of the three,
-she tried to collect her thoughts and plan how she should act. But it
-was all useless, this was such a new and untried place, and so many
-dangers and difficulties seemed to beset her, that she could not see
-her way out of them. But her fears were speedily set at rest.
-
-“Oh! you are only going to do as I tell you,” said their new friend. “I
-shall see you safe in your parents’ hands.”
-
-“Will you, sir?” cried Maggie joyfully, and slipped her hand into his,
-in her great relief.
-
-“Are you going to get out here?” asked Bessie, as the train slackened
-its speed.
-
-“Yes: you did not think I would leave you to shift for yourselves?”
-
-“Do you live here?” asked Belle.
-
-“No: I live down in Florida,” was the answer.
-
-“And are you going to get out here just to take care of us?” asked
-Bessie.
-
-He smiled and nodded assent.
-
-“You are very good, sir,” said Bessie. “Is it just as convenient as not
-for you?”
-
-“Well, no,” he returned. “I cannot say it is; but then I heard a little
-girl say, this morning, that ‘any thing was to be choosed before mamma
-should be worried,’ so after that I think I must do all I can to
-relieve mamma’s anxiety, and get you back to her as soon as possible.”
-
-So Bessie’s thoughtfulness and care for her dear mother was reaping its
-own reward.
-
-
-
-
-VIII.
-
-_OLD JOE._
-
-
-R Station was not much of a place. There were only about half a dozen
-houses, as many barns, and one store, which was part of the little
-station-house. And there was no telegraph; but when our little girls
-and their protector left the train, another gentleman promised to send
-a message to their parents from the next stopping-place.
-
-There was not much to entertain the children, even had they been in
-a mood to be amused; and the hours dragged very wearily. The kind
-gentleman would have taken them for a walk in the pleasant pine woods,
-but they were so fearful lest they should miss the up train, which was
-to carry them back to their mother and father, that they could not be
-induced to lose sight of the railroad track. Maggie and Belle could
-be persuaded to do nothing but sit on the low bank at the side of the
-road, and look up and down the long line of rail for the train, which
-was still so far away. Bessie, naturally more trusting and less timid
-than the others, had more confidence in their new friend and what he
-told her; but she would not leave her sister and Belle, and, moreover,
-was too tired to do more than wait with what patience she might. So the
-“bad hat” let them do as they would, furnishing them with some dinner,
-for which they had little appetite, and telling them droll stories,
-which could not draw forth more than faint smiles. But at last Bessie
-found something to interest her.
-
-There was an old colored man working around the station, cutting
-wood, drawing water, and so forth, and he cast many a pitying glance
-toward the sorrowful little strangers. Nor did he content himself
-with looking; for, having finished his work for the time, he walked
-away into the woods, and soon came back with a large leaf full of
-wood-strawberries, and a bunch of scarlet cardinal flowers and yellow
-jasmine, which he offered to them.
-
-Bessie took them, and, after thanking him prettily, divided them with
-Maggie and Belle; then, out of her own share, arranged a little bouquet
-for Mr. Travers; for that, the “bad hat man” had said was his name.
-
-“How pale and tired you look, my little girl!” he said as she fastened
-it in his button-hole: “suppose you lie down and take a sleep? It would
-be well if the others would do it too.”
-
-They all thought they could not possibly do such a thing, “the train
-might go by” while they were asleep; but when Mr. Travers proposed that
-he should spread his railway rug under the shade of the pine-trees,
-where they could not miss hearing the train, and said he would sit
-beside them and wake them the moment it was near, Bessie and Belle
-felt as if they should be glad to take advantage of his kindness. For
-it was true that they were all three quite worn out with fatigue and
-excitement. But Maggie was very decided in her refusal to take a nap,
-saying that she “never went to sleep except at night, when it was no
-use to stay awake, there was nothing to do.”
-
-But when the rug was spread beneath the trees, she took her seat
-upon it with the others, leaning her back against a great pine, with
-Bessie’s head in her lap. Belle, too, cuddled close up to her; and Mr.
-Travers seated himself opposite, with his book.
-
-“I wish I had a story-book for you, Maggie,” he said.
-
-“It’s no matter, sir,” said Maggie, dolefully. “I’m not in good enough
-spirits to read. I’d rather think about going back.”
-
-“Suppose you pass the time by composing that letter you are to send
-home, telling of this adventure?” said the gentleman. “Here are a
-pencil, and the back of a letter, if you’ll have them.”
-
-Maggie brightened considerably at this suggestion, and gratefully
-accepted the kind offer.
-
-Bessie lay with her head in Maggie’s lap, drowsily thinking how
-pleasant it would be to go to sleep in this nice place, if papa and
-mamma and baby were only here too. It was so cool and quiet. No one
-seemed to be stirring in the cottages or the small station; not a sound
-was heard but the gentle whisper of the breeze in the tree-tops, the
-chirp of the crickets, and the varied notes of a mocking-bird perched
-not far from them. Then the spicy smell of the pines was so delicious
-and balmy.
-
-Not a human being was to be seen but their own party, and the old negro
-man, who now sat upon a wheelbarrow at a little distance, reading what
-looked like a leaf or two from a book. He seemed to read very slowly
-and with great pains, pointing his finger along from word to word, and
-forming the words with his mouth, as people do who cannot read very
-well; but he appeared to be very intent over it.
-
-“I wonder what he is reading,” said Bessie to herself, as she sleepily
-watched him: “it looks like a piece out of an old torn book. Maybe it’s
-a newspaper, and they have such a very little one this is such a very
-little place, and there isn’t much to tell about. I shouldn’t think it
-was very interesting here.”
-
-The last thing she saw before she went to sleep, was the old negro;
-and the first on which her eyes opened was the white-haired man, still
-sitting there, poring over his leaf, as if he had not moved from that
-spot; and yet she felt as if she had taken quite a long, refreshing nap.
-
-She gently turned her head, and looked at her companions. Belle did
-not appear to have moved, lying fast asleep with her cheek on Maggie’s
-dress, and her hat over her eyes, just as she had lain down. Mr.
-Travers sat with his back against a tree, his arms folded, his eyes
-closed, and bareheaded. Bessie turned a little more, so that she could
-see Maggie.
-
-Why! was it possible? Yes, surely: watchful Maggie was fast asleep
-too. The pine-tree against which she leaned did not shoot up with a
-straight, unbroken trunk, as they generally do, but was a kind of twin
-tree, parting into two a foot above the ground, and forming a crook or
-fork. In this fork was the “bad hat,” and on the “bad hat” lay Maggie’s
-head, as peacefully as though it were the pillow of her own pretty
-bed at home; and Maggie was as sound asleep as if it were that same
-familiar pillow. One dimpled hand loosely held Mr. Travers’ pencil, and
-the paper lay fluttering unheeded on the ground at her feet. Bessie
-picked it up lest the breeze should blow it away, and Maggie’s precious
-thoughts be lost. But it was evident that the letter had not made much
-progress, for Bessie found only these words written:--
-
- “OH, DEAR, DARLING UNCLE RUTHVEN,--Such a horrible, dreadful
- adventure!”
-
-She would not disturb any of the others, but sat quiet a moment
-watching them, then turned her eyes again towards the old negro.
-
-“I think I’ll go speak to him,” she said to herself. “He is a great
-while reading his paper, and I s’pose he can’t make it out very well.
-Maybe I could help him, and he was very kind to us.”
-
-She rose softly, and walked slowly towards the old man. He looked up
-and smiled, saying,--
-
-“Little Miss want for any ting ole Joe can do for her?”
-
-“No, thank you,” said Bessie, now feeling rather shy of asking him if
-she could help him; then after a moment’s pause she added, “You were
-reading when I went to sleep, and you are reading now.”
-
-“Yes, little Miss,” he answered, “Joe read most all de time when no
-trains on hand and he work all done up.”
-
-“Is it a little newspaper?” asked Bessie.
-
-“A newspaper?” he answered, spreading the sheet on his knee, and
-laying his hand reverently upon it. “Yes, Missy, a newspaper what habs
-great news in it, de best news in de worl’,--de news how de Lord Jesus
-come down to save sinners, and old Joe among ’em. Do little Miss know
-dat news?”
-
-“Oh, yes!” said Bessie, simply. “I always knew it. I’m glad you think
-it’s good news, Joe, then I know you love Him.”
-
-“Sure, Missy,” said Joe, “how I gwine for help love Him when I knows He
-done such a ting for Joe?”
-
-Feeling on the instant a bond of sympathy between herself and the old
-negro, Bessie slipped her soft little hand into his hard, black palm,
-as she said,--
-
-“But some people who know it don’t love Him.”
-
-Joe shook his head sorrowfully.
-
-“Yes, an’ I bery sorry for dem folks; but I bery glad for Joe, and for
-little Miss too, for I ’spect she love Him by de way she speak, an’ I
-know de Lord love her.”
-
-“Did you mean that was out of the Bible?” asked Bessie, looking at the
-printed sheet which she now saw was torn, scorched, and soiled.
-
-“Yes,” answered Joe, triumphantly, “it out ob de Bible;” and he placed
-it in Bessie’s hand.
-
-Yes, it was out of the Bible, two leaves: one containing the second
-chapter of Luke, with the account of the Saviour’s birth; the other,
-part of the fifteenth and the whole of the sixteenth of Mark, relating
-his death and resurrection.
-
-“I hab de beginnin’ an’ de end,” said Joe, “an’ I hab some more too,
-some ob my Lord’s own bressed words what He preach to His people;” and
-he drew from his pocket a single leaf, containing most of the sixth
-chapter of Matthew.
-
-“Is that all you have of the Bible?” asked Bessie.
-
-“Dat’s all, Missy, but dey’s a deal ob preciousness in it: dey’s words
-what bears readin’ ober and ober. To be sure, dey’s times when I gets
-longin’ for more; but I jes says, ‘Come now, old Joe, don’t be so
-ongrateful. Ef de Lord had meant you to hab more He would ha’ sent it
-you;’ and I tank Him for not lettin’ dis be burn up an’ for lettin’ me
-fin’ it ’fore it was blowed away by de wind.”
-
-“Where did you find it, and how did it come so burnt and torn?” asked
-Bessie.
-
-“Foun’ it ober by Miss Sims’ house. ’Spect she use it for her bakin’,
-and when de bread done she trow it out, an’ de Lord He let old Joe fin’
-it. Bress His holy name.”
-
-“Do you mean she baked her bread on the leaves of the Bible?” asked
-Bessie, exceedingly shocked.
-
-“’Pears like it, Missy. I ’spect she don’t know its wort’, poor
-woman!” said Joe, with a pitying thought for the owner of the pretty,
-comfortable cottage, who was so much poorer than himself.
-
-Bessie stood looking at him with a multitude of feelings struggling
-for expression on her sweet, wistful, little face. Indignation at
-the treatment received by God’s Holy Word; pity, respect, and tender
-sympathy for the old negro,--were almost too much for her, and her
-color rose, and the tears came to her eyes.
-
-“Little Miss feel so bad ’bout it as did old Joe,” he said, “but,
-Missy, dat was de Lord’s way to help old Joe. Long time he ben wantin’
-a Bible an’ save up he money, and hab mos’ enough; an’ one day a poor
-feller come along what hab no shoes an’ hab cut he foot awful, an’ he
-mus’ go on to de city to see his chile what dyin’; an’ de Lord say
-in my heart, ‘Joe, you gib dat money for shoes for dis poor feller,’
-an’ I couldn’t help it no way, Missy, an’ I buys him de shoes out de
-store. An’ he ain’t gone but little time, an’ I walkin’ roun’ by Miss
-Sims’ feelin’ down in de mout’ along ob my Bible; an’ a piece ob paper
-come blowin’ to my feet, an’ I picks him up, an’ ain’t he a bit out my
-Lord’s book, an’ I sarch roun’ an’ fin’ noder one. Praise de name ob de
-Lord what sen’ Joe such comfort till he hab more money!”
-
-Bessie still stood silent, her heart too full for words at the simple
-story of this old disciple’s self-sacrifice. And he had only these
-three leaves out of God’s precious Book, while at home there were
-Bibles without number for all who needed them. Oh! if she only had one
-to give him. But here there was none,--yes, there was too.
-
-Just before they left home, grandmamma had given to each of the little
-girls a Testament and Psalms bound together. She thought they might be
-more convenient for daily use in travelling, than the handsomely bound
-Bibles which they generally used at home; and if they should happen to
-be lost would not be so much regretted. They had been carried in the
-little satchels all the way; and now, as usual, Bessie’s satchel hung
-by her side. The book was not large; but the print was good and clear,
-far better than that on old Joe’s cherished leaf, and what a world of
-riches it would hold for him.
-
-“I could give him mine,” thought Bessie, “and he would be so glad. I
-don’t b’lieve grandmamma would mind if I gave away her present for such
-a reason as this; and Maggie will let me use hers when I want to read.
-I think I ought to give it to him, and I know I would like to.”
-
-“S’pose little miss kin read fus’ rate,” said Joe, interrupting her
-thoughts.
-
-“Mamma says I can read very nicely,” she answered.
-
-“Maybe she wouldn’t min’ readin’ out a piece. Some words most too hard
-for Joe, but he kin listen fus’ rate.”
-
-Bessie drew her satchel around, and unfastened it.
-
-“Shall I read you some out of my own little Testament?” she said,
-drawing forth the book.
-
-Joe’s eyes brightened.
-
-“If Missy be so good,” he said, eagerly. “She hab it all dere: all how
-de Lord Jesus lib an die, an lib again, an’ talk for his people?”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie. “What would you like me to read?”
-
-“If Missy read where He say, ‘Let not your heart be trouble’; an’ how
-He go to make a place for dose what follers Him.”
-
-Bessie found the fourteenth of John, and read it carefully and
-distinctly, the old man listening intently. When she came to the
-fourteenth verse, he raised his hand and said,--
-
-“I t’ought so. I t’ought dere war a promise like dat. Now I know sure
-some day He gib me a Bible, I allers do ax it in His name, an’ He
-promise allers stan’ sure.”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie, thoughtfully; then added, in a tone of some
-self-reproach, “but, Joe, I forgot that promise once this morning.”
-
-“But Missy mind it now?”
-
-“Yes,” answered Bessie. “You see we had such a dreadful trouble, Joe,
-and it’s not quite over yet. Somehow the cars took us away without papa
-and mamma, and we didn’t know where we were going, and there was no
-one to take care of us. It was worse than once when I was lost in New
-York; cause that was my own country where I live, and the policemen
-were there; and it seemed to me that even our Father couldn’t help us
-in such a trouble as this. But in a minute I knew that was wrong, and I
-asked Him to send us help: and right away he did; for a kind gentleman
-came who we saw in the cars before, and he is taking care of us, and
-will take us back to papa and mamma. That is the gentleman there by the
-tree.”
-
-Joe nodded, as much as to say he knew, as indeed he did; for the story
-of the little wayfarers had come to his ears. Little he thought when he
-first heard it, what a blessing they had brought to him.
-
-“And, Joe,” continued the child, “I think maybe our Father had a
-purpose in letting us be run away with, and bringing us to this place.”
-
-“Sure, Missy,” replied the old man. “He allers hab a purpose in what
-He do, an’ a good one too; but sometimes we don’t see it, we ain’t
-fait’ enough.”
-
-“But I think I do see it now,” said Bessie, her tiny fingers still
-resting on the blessed words of Jesus’ promise. “I think He sent me
-here, so I could bring you my little Testament.”
-
-“Yes, Missy. I ’spect He did, dat’s a fac’,” answered Joe, not taking
-in at once that she meant to give him the book; “an’ dose words done
-Joe a heap of good. Yes: He send you here for read ’em to Joe.”
-
-“But you don’t understand,” said Bessie. “I mean He sent me here to
-_give_ you the Testament. I think He meant you to have it, you asked it
-in His name. It isn’t all the Bible: but it has all about Jesus, and a
-good deal besides, and the Psalms too; and you will love it very much,
-won’t you?”
-
-“Missy don’t mean she gwine fur gib Joe her own book?”
-
-“Oh yes, I do,” answered Bessie. “I have another Bible at home, and
-papa would give me as many as I want, and I can read my sister’s till
-we go home. I am going to give it to you for your own, Joe.”
-
-The old man sat for a moment speechless with wonder and gratitude, then
-covered his face with his hands.
-
-“I t’ank de Lord fust, and you next, Missy,” he said, when he removed
-them. “I t’ank Him, and bress His name, fur sen’ his little white dove
-to bring His word to ole black Joe. Yes, yes; for sure His promise
-stan’ in all place an’ all time. Missy fin’ it, an’ Joe fin’ it: de ole
-an’ de young, de black an’ de white, de rich an’ de poor,--all who lub
-and trust Him. He hear all, an’ do for all.”
-
-He took the baby hand, and kissed it with a tender reverence that was
-very touching to see, but which the child in her innocence scarcely
-understood.
-
-“Shall I read some more?” she asked.
-
-Joe thankfully assented; and she finished the chapter, and read also
-the fifteenth then, closing the book, placed it in the old black man’s
-hand.
-
-“De Lord know what’s in my heart, but I can’t speak it out no way,” he
-said, as he received it, drawing his rough coat-sleeve across his eyes;
-“but, Missy, I t’ink it a great t’ing to be de Lord’s little messenger
-to bring His word to his poor ole servant, what been thirstin’ for it
-so long.”
-
-Belle had wakened while Bessie was reading, and sat up rather surprised
-at her little friend’s occupation, but did not interrupt it.
-
-“It’s just like my dear Bessie,” she said to herself; “she’s always
-doing somefin’ for somebody.”
-
-She looked about her as she listened to the reading; for every word
-came distinctly in the deep stillness around. Maggie was asleep still,
-and Mr. Travers’ eyes remained closed; but as Belle watched his face
-she said to herself,--
-
-“I guess he’s just pretending. If he was papa, I’d go and wake him up,
-and tell him he is. Maybe he finks Bessie would be too bashful to read
-before him if she fought he was awake.”
-
-Perhaps Belle was right; for Mr. Travers woke or seemed to wake very
-suddenly when Bessie ceased reading; and, looking at his watch, said
-that it was time for the train, and they must rouse the sleeping
-Maggie. This was done; and Maggie woke rather indignant at herself for
-going to sleep at all, and a little ashamed at finding all the others
-awake before her.
-
-“Why! Did you put that there, sir?” she asked, as Mr. Travers picked up
-the hat which had proved such a comfortable pillow, and put it on his
-head.
-
-“Yes,” he answered, “I thought the tree rather a hard resting-place for
-that little head in spite of the mass of curls which came between them,
-so when I saw it going down I popped in the ‘bad hat’ without your
-knowing it.”
-
-“I’m very much obliged to you, sir,” said Maggie. “I _wish_ I could do
-something for you.”
-
-All the children were very grateful to this kind stranger who had
-taken such good care of them, and Belle said,--
-
-“I wish I could too. If I was big I’d ask you when your birfday
-was; and I’d make you a pair of slippers, and a pin-cushion, and a
-watch-case, and every fing nice for a birfday present.”
-
-“And I’d help,” said Maggie.
-
-“And I,” said Bessie.
-
-Here was ground for Maggie to build a new plan upon; and, in the few
-minutes which passed before the train came, she had enough to think
-about to keep her from feeling very impatient for its arrival.
-
-And there it came, rushing up the long line of rail,--yet hardly fast
-enough for the little ones who had been so long away from their dear
-friends,--hailed with clapping of hands, dancing steps, and glad
-exclamations: never was a train more welcome.
-
-The place was alive in a moment. Women and children came out to the
-doors and gates of the cottages, dogs barked, and hens cackled. Half a
-dozen men, white and colored, seemed to spring out of the ground, ready
-to busy themselves on the arrival of the cars; and old Joe drew up his
-wheelbarrow to the side of the track, ready for any chance trunk or
-box which might need to be wheeled away, and bring him a few pennies.
-Joe was a rich man now, to be sure, rich in the wealth which should
-pave with shining gold the path he must tread to the heavenly mansion
-his Saviour had gone to prepare for him: but he must still have a care
-for his few worldly needs; and now that his one great desire had been
-granted, he would yet put by something that he might have a little to
-help along such of his Lord’s work as should be given into his hand.
-
-His hand was shaken, not only by the three children, but also by Mr.
-Travers; and they were gone: but their coming had brought light and
-gladness to old Joe; and, in his own simple language, he “will nebber
-disremember dis day while de Lord remembers me.”
-
-There they were,--mamma, and the two papas, baby, nurse, and
-Daphne,--still at the station at ----, and watching as eagerly for the
-train which was to bring back the sorely missed darlings, as those
-same little darlings were looking for the first glimpse of the dearly
-loved faces of their “own people.” What joy there was! What huggings
-and kissings! some happy tears too; and as for Mr. Travers, if he had
-had six arms to be shaken instead of two, they would all have been
-in use at once. There was some time to spare before the arrival of
-the train which was to carry them on the right route, which had been
-missed that morning; and it would be still longer before kind Mr.
-Travers would be able to proceed on the journey he had so generously
-interrupted, at some inconvenience to himself, for the sake of the
-little fellow-passengers who had so unconsciously attracted his notice
-that morning.
-
-They gathered in the small room, which seemed large enough to hold
-them all now, and Mr. Travers was thanked over and over again, his
-address taken by Mr. Bradford, and a promise drawn from him that he
-would make his house his home when he should come to New York. More
-than this, Maggie privately drew from him the date of his “birfday,”
-which happened to be on the twenty-fifth of December: and you may like
-to know that this “plan” of Maggie’s was successfully carried out;
-and, last Christmas, Mr. Travers received a box containing a pair of
-slippers worked by Maggie, a pin-cushion by Bessie, and a watch-case
-by Belle. I do not believe that Mr. Travers thought the less of them
-because there were some crooked stitches in them,--especially in the
-two last,--and that the pocket of the watch-case was so small that by
-no possibility could a watch be squeezed therein.
-
-But he did not part from the children that day without some token
-of remembrance, for when Maggie inquired about his birthday, and
-repeated,--
-
-“I would so like to do something for you, sir, you was so kind to us,”
-he answered,--
-
-“You can do something for me, Maggie. Give me your little Testament,
-if you will; and when I look at it, it will bring back to me some very
-sweet recollections of this day.”
-
-Dear Maggie, only too happy when she could give or do any thing which
-brought pleasure to another, readily consented, thinking as Bessie had
-done, that “grandmamma wouldn’t mind when she knew the reason;” and the
-second little Testament went forth on its mission of love and life, in
-the hands of a new owner.
-
-And pray what do you think had been that ungrateful baby’s greeting to
-her little sisters’ new friend? Nothing less than that oft-repeated
-“Oh, bad hat!” But being rested and at her ease now, she was not
-fretful, and was more astonished than displeased at its reappearance.
-We ought not to call her ungrateful either. She was glad to see her
-sisters, and offered plenty of “love Maggies’” and “love Bessies’,”
-which meant a tight squeeze of the little arms about the neck; but
-she could not understand the distress and anxiety their absence had
-occasioned on all sides, nor did she know what care had been bestowed
-upon them by the owner of the hat.
-
-But Mr. Travers having taken off the hat and placed it beneath his
-chair, Baby made the most of her opportunities, and, seating herself
-on the carpet behind him, pulled it forth, and turned it over and
-over on her lap. Finding on a closer acquaintance that it was not so
-objectionable as she had thought it, she proceeded to try it on; and,
-nothing daunted by the fact that she was nearly extinguished by it,
-was, greatly to the amusement of all, presently discovered toddling
-blindly about the room, with her small head and dimpled shoulders quite
-hidden; while from beneath the hat came a muffled voice saying, in
-lisping tones,--
-
-“Nice hat! oh, nice hat! Baby on nice hat.”
-
-Bessie almost fell from her mother’s lap, and Belle from her father’s
-knee, with laughing at this joke, and Maggie hopped around and squealed
-in an ecstasy of fun and delight; and even the grown people could not
-help laughing heartily at the little “turncoat,” as nurse called her
-pet.
-
-
-
-
-IX.
-
-_KATE._
-
-
-It would take too long to follow Maggie and Bessie through all their
-travels, or to visit all the places visited by them, going from one
-to another by easy stages, as best suited mamma; and staying a day
-or two, or a week or two, according to the amount of interest and
-pleasure they found in each. Charleston and Richmond, Virginia Springs,
-the famous Natural Bridge, and many another spot, were described in
-Maggie’s letters to her friends at home; but the place of which she
-most delighted to write, because there she found the most to describe,
-was Washington. Here is one of her letters from that city:--
-
- “MY BELOVED UNCLE HORACE,--I think Washington is the most
- interesting city I ever met with. It has so much to see and
- buildings which are quite surprising and such a credit to
- themselves and the people who built them that I am proud of
- the nation to which I belong. But the most interesting place I
- find is the _Pattern_ Office where are to be seen thousands and
- thousands of things one can never be tired of looking at. There
- are jewels and beautiful birds and butterflies, and very nasty
- bugs and spiders and oh! Uncle Horace an awful spider so large
- with his legs out he is as big as a dinner plate, I am thankful
- I do not live in that country, for he bites too and the people
- die, and I don’t see the use of spiders but I suppose some, or
- God would not have made them. And there are machines but we
- children did not care much for those and Indian things very
- interesting and all kinds of curiosities and beautiful toys.
- But the most interesting of all General Washington’s furniture
- and his clothes. But his furniture was very shabby and I think
- his grateful country ought to make him a present of some better
- and his coat--why, Uncle Horace it was all ragged and if it
- was not the father of his country’s I would say it looked like
- an old beggar man’s. But please do not think I am a traitor
- because I say this, for I would not be such a thing I hope,
- nor a Benedict Arnold either, I shan’t call him Mr. for he
- is not good enough, and I think he was the meanest man that
- ever lived not to take his own punishment but to let poor Mr.
- Andre be killed for him. And Bessie and I do think the father
- of his country might have let Mr. Andre off that once if he
- would promise never to do so again and we are afraid he forgot
- that time that Jesus wanted us to forgive one another as He
- forgave us. Papa says he had to make an example of Mr. Andre
- but I think he would have been a better example himself if he
- had showed mercy. And in the Pattern Office are some stufed
- animals some very pretty and some ugly as is in the nature of
- animals to be, for we all know they did not make themselves any
- more than people who are some ugly and some very handsome and
- they can’t help it. And so I don’t see why they have animals
- for patterns for no man nor woman either could make an animal
- but only God, but they are interesting to see though it must be
- disagreeable to stuff them.
-
- “We saw the President and we are very much disappointed for he
- looks just like another man, not a bit better, and we did not
- expect it of him but thought he would be very grand and somehow
- different. I don’t care a bit if I never see another President.
- I think it is real mean. But he has a very grand house and he
- lets people come in and see it which is very kind of him, for I
- would not like people I did not know to come in my house, and
- pass remarks about it; but Papa says Presidents and kings and
- things of that kind have to do a great many things they do not
- like very much, so I hope I will never be a President or his
- wife either and if he asks me to marry him I will certainly
- say no and Bessie will too.
-
- “There are a great many lovely toys in the Pattern Office but
- I will not say I wish they were mine because I cannot have
- them so it is of no use and it might be to break the tenth
- commandment. Papa says they belong to the government, but I
- don’t see what the government which is nothing but a lot of
- big men wants of playthings, and I think they would be much
- more use if children had them to take pleasure in them. If they
- were mine I would give the largest share to my Bessie, and then
- divide them with all my children friends and send some to the
- little cripples’ hospital.
-
- “To-morrow Papa is going to take us to the Smithsonian
- _Institude_ where they say are a great many curious and
- wonderful things and lots of animals dead ones I mean from all
- parts of the world. Which must be very instructif and if I do
- not improve my advantages I ought to be ashamed of myself and
- deserve to be a dunce. Mamma says it is time for us to go to
- bed, which I wish it was not and I wish there was no such place
- as bed but I do not tell dear Mamma so or she might think I
- did not honor her and I hope I may never be such an unnatural
- child. So good night dear Uncle Horace and Aunt May and May
- Bessie the same from your devoted till death do us part friend
-
- “MAGGIE.”
-
-They did not stay long in Washington; for the weather was growing warm
-and oppressive, and our party were anxious to hurry northward, where
-it was cooler and pleasanter. We will not stop with them at Baltimore
-or Philadelphia, where nothing particularly interesting occurred; or
-even in their own city, where they stopped for a few days to rest and
-have a sight of all the dear home-faces, as well as to leave all the
-“curiosities and wonderful memories,” as Maggie called them, which they
-had collected in their southern rambles: but start off with them once
-more on their further journeyings.
-
-They had parted from Mr. Powers and Belle: but Uncle Ruthven and Aunt
-Bessie had joined the party, adding much to the enjoyment of all; and
-they were now on their way to beautiful Trenton and Niagara Falls.
-
-A young lady and two gentlemen were coming up the brass-covered
-staircase of the steamboat which was carrying our friends up the river.
-
-“Hallo!” said one of the latter as some small object fell at his feet.
-“What is this? Who is pelting me with flowers? No: it’s not a flower
-either. What is it, Mary?” and he stooped and picked it up, turning it
-round and round very gingerly, as if afraid it would fall to pieces in
-his fingers. “Looks like a small edition of that thing on your head.”
-
-“Just what it is,” replied his sister. “It is a doll’s hat. Ah! there
-is the little owner, I suppose,” and she looked up at Bessie who was
-peeping over the banisters with watchful, earnest eyes, and holding
-Margaret Colonel Horace in her arms.
-
-“Are you the young lady who has been pelting me with dolls’ hats, and
-trying to make me think they were flowers?” asked the young man as he
-came to the top of the stairs.
-
-“It is only one hat, and I didn’t try to make you think it was a
-flower, and I didn’t pelt you with it, and I’m only a little girl,”
-answered Bessie, demurely. “It fell off my dolly’s head; but I’m very
-glad you came up just then, before any one stepped on it.”
-
-The gentleman put the hat on the forefinger of one hand, and twirled it
-slowly round with the other, while Bessie looked on, rather aggravated.
-
-“Give it to her, George; aren’t you ashamed to tease her?” said the
-young lady.
-
-“What will you give me for it?” asked he.
-
-“I’ll give you ‘thank you,’ sir,” replied the child.
-
-“Nothing else?”
-
-“No, sir, nothing else,” answered Bessie, with as much dignity as any
-young lady could have worn.
-
-He felt the silent reproof of the child’s manner; and, ashamed of
-having teased her, he handed her the little hat, saying, almost without
-intending it,--
-
-“I beg your pardon.”
-
-“I am very much obliged to you, sir,” she said, now smiling again. “I
-was ’fraid it would be spoiled ’fore I could call some one to pick it
-up.”
-
-“Why didn’t you run down, and pick it up yourself?” asked the young
-lady.
-
-“I thought maybe mamma wouldn’t want me to,” said Bessie, putting on
-her doll’s hat. “She told me on the Savannah steamer never to go up and
-down the stairs alone; and I didn’t know if she would like me to here.”
-
-“Here’s a match for Kate’s paragon of obedience and
-straightforwardness,” said the young lady, laughing as she turned to
-the other gentleman who had not yet spoken.
-
-“What is your name, little lady?” he asked.
-
-Bessie looked up at him. Where had she seen that face before? Those
-sparkling black eyes, the roguish curve of the lips, seemed very
-familiar to her; and yet she was sure the gentleman was a stranger, as
-the others were.
-
-But she had a fancy that these same strangers were making rather free
-with her; and she put on her dignified air again as she answered
-slowly,--
-
-“Bessie Bradford, sir,” and turned away. But her steps were again
-checked as she heard her last questioner exclaim,--
-
-“Why, it is Kate’s pet! The paragon herself!”
-
-“Kate’s pet!” The old school-name so often given to her by the older
-girls at Miss Ashton’s, and now uttered by the owner of the black eyes
-which seemed so familiar, made it at once clear to her who it was.
-Perhaps it was just as well that she did not know what paragon meant:
-she only thought it rather an ugly-sounding name, and at another time
-she might have been displeased and thought it was intended to tease
-her; but, as it flashed upon her who he was, vexation was lost in
-pleased surprise.
-
-“Oh!” she exclaimed, in the tone she sometimes used when she was both
-gratified and astonished, and looking up at him with flushed and
-sparkling face.
-
-“Well?” said the gentleman, laughing; as did both of his companions.
-
-“I just believe you are Katie’s brother,” cried the child.
-
-“That is an accusation I cannot deny,” he said, much amused. “Yes; I am
-Charlie Maynard. But how did you know that?”
-
-“’Cause you look a great deal like her, sir,” answered Bessie; “and she
-used to talk about you very often. She thinks you are very nice.”
-
-“That shows her good taste,” he said.
-
-“She is very, very nice herself,” said the little girl, no longer
-feeling as if she were talking to a stranger; “and I am very fond of
-her. But it is a great while since I have seen her. Will you please to
-give her my love when you see her, sir?”
-
-“On one condition,” he answered; “that you come with me now and let me
-show you something. Something I think you will like to see,” he added,
-seeing that she hesitated.
-
-“I must ask mamma first,” she said. “She only gave me leave to wait
-here until Uncle Ruthven and Maggie came up.”
-
-She ran to where her mother sat, and eagerly asked if she might go with
-Katie Maynard’s brother to “see something.” Mamma gave permission; and,
-putting her hand confidingly in that of her new acquaintance, Bessie
-suffered him to lead her to the other side of the boat.
-
-Like what he had brought her to see! Bessie thought so indeed, when she
-caught sight of the “something;” and Margaret Colonel Horace nearly
-fell from her mamma’s arms as the latter sprang into those of Katie
-Maynard herself.
-
-Kate was as much delighted and surprised as the child, and kissed
-Bessie over and over again; while the loving little soul nestled close
-to her, and looked up with eyes which left no need for words.
-
-Then Bessie had to be introduced to Katie’s father and mother, who
-were with her; but her brother said there was no occasion for him to
-go through with this ceremony, since he and Bessie had already made
-acquaintance; and he took a good deal of credit to himself for having
-guessed that the demure little damsel, who was so careful about obeying
-her mamma, might be his sister’s favorite and pet, whose name he had so
-often heard. The other lady and gentleman were friends of the Maynards,
-and travelling with them; and the whole party were, like our friends,
-bound for Niagara.
-
-“And where is the honey-bee?” asked Kate, who had heard Colonel Rush
-call Maggie by that name, and from that time used it for her. “We’ll go
-and bring her too.”
-
-But Maggie,--who had by this time come upstairs, having chosen to go
-down with Uncle Ruthven to buy some papers and “see what she could see”
-below, while Bessie preferred to wait above,--Maggie was by no means to
-be persuaded to join a party consisting of so many strangers. So Kate,
-who was really rejoiced to see her little schoolmates, and wanted to
-talk to both, must needs accept Bessie’s invitation, and stay with them
-for a while.
-
-“For you know you’re not a bit troubled with bashfulness,” said Bessie,
-innocently; “and poor Maggie is;” a speech which made Kate’s friends
-smile, and Kate herself laugh outright.
-
-But Bessie was mistaken; for Kate, in spite of her laugh, was for once
-“a bit troubled with bashfulness” before Mrs. Bradford. For she had a
-little feeling of consciousness in the presence of Bessie’s mother,
-which rose from the recollection of the affair of the clock at school,
-and the knowledge that Mrs. Bradford had heard of it. Mrs. Ashton had
-told Kate that she had thought it only right to tell Mrs. Bradford
-of Bessie’s trial, and her steadfast resistance to temptation; and
-Kate, who had not seen Mrs. Bradford since the day of the giving of
-the prizes, felt a little doubtful how she would be received. But the
-lady’s kind and friendly greeting soon put the young girl at her ease,
-and she felt there was no need for any feeling of embarrassment now
-that her own conscience was at rest. She had a pleasant talk with the
-little girls, hearing of their travels and adventures, and telling them
-in return of all that had taken place at school after they left.
-
-The acquaintance between the young folks brought about one between
-their elders, which gave much pleasure all around; and, during the next
-two or three weeks, the two parties saw a good deal of one another.
-
-The children took a great fancy to the younger Mr. Maynard, Kate’s
-brother, as he did to them; and even Maggie was quite friendly with
-him from the time that he came and took his place near his sister,
-as she sat a little apart with Bessie on her lap, and Maggie close
-beside her, talking of all that had happened since they parted. He
-was very much amused with Bessie’s quaint ways and sayings, and with
-Maggie’s glowing descriptions of all they had seen and done during
-their travels; but he did not let his amusement appear, and they talked
-away without restraint before him. Now and then he would join in the
-conversation, putting a question, or making a remark, as though he were
-interested in what they were saying, but not so as to embarrass them at
-all; and he was so kind and pleasant in his manner to them, that they
-both speedily honored him with their “approval,” and a place in the
-ranks of their friends.
-
-Not so with Mr. Temple, Charlie Maynard’s companion. When, after a
-time, he sauntered up and joined the group, he soon put a check upon
-the merry chatter of the little girls. Not intentionally, for he had
-more to say to them, and asked more questions than Mr. Maynard himself:
-but it was done with a tone and manner which they did not like; in
-a half-mocking way, which irritated Bessie, and brought on a fit of
-shyness with Maggie. Indeed, the latter would not stand it long, but
-moved away to her mamma.
-
-“What is it, dear?” asked her mother, seeing that something had
-disturbed her.
-
-“That hateful man, mamma,” said Maggie, lowering her voice that she
-might not be heard by the object of her displeasure.
-
-“Do not call names, dear,” said her mother. “What has he done to you?”
-
-“He talks disagreeable nonsense, mamma.”
-
-“I thought you liked nonsense once in a while,” said Mr. Stanton.
-
-“Oh! it’s not nice, amusing nonsense like yours, Uncle Ruthven. He
-talks compliments, and compliments he don’t mean either. He is horrid,
-and very silly, too.”
-
-“Perhaps he thinks you like it,” said Mr. Stanton.
-
-“He has no business to think so,” said Maggie, waxing more indignant.
-“We were having a very nice time with Miss Kate, and he made himself
-a great interruption. He teased us about our dolls; and then he asked
-us a great many ridiculous questions, and talked a great many foolish
-things about Bessie’s eyes and my hair. If it was grown ladies he
-talked to that way they would say he was impertinent, and I don’t see
-what children have to stand it for. It is horrid nonsense.”
-
-Mamma thought it horrid nonsense too. She did not like to have such
-things said to her little girls, and was glad that they were too wise
-to be pleased with such foolish flattery, which might otherwise have
-made them vain.
-
-Meanwhile, Mr. Temple was continuing his “horrid nonsense” to Bessie,
-in spite of more than one reproof from Kate and her brother; but the
-little “princess” received it in the most disdainful silence, which
-greatly amused not only the two last, but also the offender himself.
-But at last it became more than Bessie could bear, and she too slipped
-from Kate’s hold and went back to her mother. From this time, the
-children avoided Mr. Temple as much as possible; and, if they could
-help it, would not join the Maynards when he was with them.
-
-“What is the reason you don’t like George Temple?” asked Kate of Bessie
-one day.
-
-“I don’t know,” said Bessie, coloring: for she did not know she had
-made her dislike so plain; and she really found it difficult to put
-in words the cause of her annoyance. “I don’t know, Miss Kate; but I
-_don’t_ like him. I believe I don’t approve of young men,” she added
-doubtfully, as if she were not quite sure of the latter fact.
-
-“But you like Charlie, don’t you?” said Kate, smiling, “and he is a
-young man, younger than Mr. Temple.”
-
-“Yes,” answered Bessie, with an air of deep reflection, “but--then--I
-b’lieve the reason is, that Mr. Temple is not so very gentleman as Mr.
-Maynard. Your brother plays with us, and makes fun for us, but he is
-just as polite as if we were big ladies; but I think Mr. Temple is one
-of those people who seem to think children don’t have feelings. You
-know there is such a kind of people, Miss Kate.”
-
-“She knows the ring of the pure metal,” said Kate afterwards to her
-mother, “and distinguishes the true gentleman in heart and feeling, as
-well, or better than her elders. She did not mean her words for me,
-I am sure; but I could not but remember that it is not so long since
-I was myself one of that “kind of people who seem to think children
-don’t have feelings”;” and Kate laughed at the recollection of Bessie’s
-solemn air, when she had pronounced her opinion of Mr. Temple. “Poor
-Maggie! how I used to tease her.”
-
-“Yes, indeed, Kate,” said Mrs. Maynard, “grown people, I fear, too
-often forget how easily a child’s feelings are wounded; how the word,
-the look, or laugh, which to us is a matter of indifference, or some
-passing moment’s amusement, may mortify and grieve some sensitive
-little heart, and leave there a sore spot long after we have forgotten
-it.”
-
-“Yes,” said Kate, regretfully, “my conscience is not at ease on
-that point. And you may thank darling Bessie, mother, for giving me
-more than one innocent lesson in consideration and thoughtfulness
-for others, both old and young. The honey-bee, too, with all her
-heedlessness,--and she is naturally a careless little thing,--leaves
-no sting behind her, for she never forgets the rule which she calls,
-‘doing unto others.’”
-
-
-
-
-X.
-
-_MAGGIE’S POEM._
-
-
-“Isn’t it a nice day, Maggie?” said Bessie, coming to her sister, who
-was leaning with both arms on the railing which guarded the upper-deck,
-watching the flashing water, the magnificent mountains, the blue sky,
-and all the other beauties around and above her.
-
-“Yes,” answered Maggie; “and we’re having such a nice sail, except for
-that man. Bessie, my head is quite full of poetry about it.”
-
-“Write some then,” said Bessie; “and we’ll send it to my soldier. He’ll
-be so pleased. I’ll ask papa for a pencil and some paper;” and she
-made her request to her father, who let her take his memorandum-book
-for the purpose; and, furnished with this and excited by all the
-beauty around, Maggie broke forth into the following verses, the first
-of which was thought remarkably fine by Bessie and herself, as being
-not only extremely poetical, but also as containing a great deal of
-religious sentiment very touchingly expressed:--
-
-“POEM ON A STEAMBOAT SAIL.
-
- “I have so very many mercies,
- I have to write them down in verses;
- Because my heart in praise goes up
- For such a full and heaped-up cup.
-
- “But, ah! ’tis my unhappy fate
- To see on board a man I hate:
- I know I should not be so mad;
- But he behaves so very bad.”
-
-“‘Hate’ there only means ‘can’t bear,’” said Maggie, when she had
-finished this last verse and read it aloud to her sister: “but you see
-‘can’t bear’ don’t rhyme very well with ‘fate;’ and I want to put that,
-it is such a very poetical word, and sounds so very grown-up-y. I had
-to put that verse about Mr. Temple for a relief to my feelings; and
-‘hate’ must be excused.”
-
-“That first verse is lovely,” said Bessie. “It sounds so very nice;
-and, besides, it is so pious.”
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie. “I thought I’d better begin with a little religion
-and gratitude. Besides, it was that made the poetry come into my ideas,
-Bessie. I was thinking how very good and grateful we ought to be, when
-God gives us such a very beautiful world to look at, and travel about
-in.”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie, putting her head on one side and giving her sister
-a look which expressed as much admiration and affection as a look could
-do, “yes: what a very smart, nice girl you are, Maggie!”
-
-“You think so,” said Maggie; “but everybody don’t.”
-
-“That’s they don’t know any better,” said Bessie, whose praise might
-have spoiled Maggie, if the latter had been at all vain and conceited.
-
-“The second verse isn’t very pious,” said Maggie, looking at it
-doubtfully; “but I guess I’ll leave it in.”
-
-“And you can explain it to Uncle Horace when you write to him,” said
-Bessie. “But make some more, Maggie: your poetry is splendid.”
-
-Thus encouraged, Maggie went on,--
-
- “I look upon the blue, blue sky,
- That spreads above us there on high:
- Below, the water sparkles bright,
- And all around the land is light.
-
- “The sun is shining, too, above,
- And whispers to us, ‘God is love!’
- The moon, also, will shine to-night,
- And pretty stars will twinkle bright.”
-
-“Oh, what lovely description you do make!” exclaimed Bessie, when
-Maggie read these two verses.
-
- “This world is all so beautiful,
- We should be very grateful;
- But then, you know, sometimes we’re not,
- And do forget our happy lot.”
-
-“We’ll have to read gra-te-ful to make it come right with beautiful,”
-said Maggie, “but it sounds good enough.”
-
-“Oh! it’s perfectly lovely,” said Bessie.
-
- “Our father and our mother dear,
- Each sitting in a steamboat chair;
- Aunt Bessie too, the darling dear,
- And Uncle Ruthven sitting near.
-
- “Oh! it doth make my heart rejoice
- To hear each loved and pleasant voice;
- And then I have my sisters sweet,
- Who with kind smiles me always greet.”
-
-“What does ‘greet’ mean?” asked Bessie.
-
-“It means something like welcome,” answered Maggie. “I can’t explain
-exactly; but I know it is a word poetry-writers use a great deal, and I
-thought I had better put it in.”
-
-Maggie wrote on,--
-
- “And then I’ve lots of friends at home,
- From whom just now away I roam;
- I trust they’ll all be safe and sound
- When I again at home am found.”
-
-“That is enough for to-day,” said Maggie “but I am going to make a
-long poem out of it, and I’ll do some more another time. I s’pose
-Niagara will be a good thing to put in it. You know they say it is
-splendid.”
-
-“What is ‘roam’?” asked Bessie, who must always inquire the meaning of
-every word she did not understand.
-
-“To travel about. Just what we’re doing,” answered Maggie.
-
-“Then why don’t you say travel? I think it’s the nicest word.”
-
-“But it is not so uncommon,” said Maggie; “and you know when people
-write poetry they always put in all the uncommon words they can find.”
-
-“Do they?” said Bessie, as if she did not quite approve of this rule.
-
-“Yes, to be sure,” answered Maggie. “You know prose is just common
-talking; but poetry is uncommon talking, and you have to make it sound
-as fine as you can, and put words you don’t use every day.”
-
-“Oh!” said Bessie. “Well, if you have done, I guess we’d better give
-papa back his book.”
-
-Accordingly, the book was carried to papa, who had not had any idea
-that Maggie’s poetical fancy would carry her so far, and who was rather
-surprised to see several pages scribbled over with verses that were
-lined and interlined, scratched out and written over, in a manner which
-did not add to the beauty or neatness of the book.
-
-However, he only laughed, and taking out his penknife carefully cut out
-the scribbled leaves and gave them to the little poetess, who rolled
-them up, and tying them round with a bit of twine, stowed them away in
-her satchel, till such time as she should be ready to copy and add to
-them.
-
-But she did not find leisure for this till they had been at Niagara for
-two or three days; and then, when she looked in her travelling-bag for
-the precious poem, lo! it was gone! In vain did she and Bessie take out
-all the other contents from the satchel, shake it, and feel in each
-corner and pocket: no poem came to light, and great was the sorrowing
-over its loss.
-
-“Then I s’pose I’ll never hear of it again,” said Bessie, regretfully,
-when mamma said she thought Maggie must have pulled it out with some of
-the other things her bag contained, and so dropped it, unseen.
-
-But poor Maggie _was_ to hear of her poem again; to hear a little too
-much of it.
-
-The two parties spent a week or more at Niagara Falls, visiting many
-a point of interest and beauty,--sometimes together, sometimes apart;
-now standing below the level of the Rapids, and looking backward at
-their white foaming crests drawn sharply against the blue sky, as
-the mad waters went whirling and rushing over the slope; now, in the
-early morning, looking up to the top of the Great Fall, which shone
-and flashed like jewels in the rays of the sun, the gray mist curling
-below, and a glorious rainbow stretching from shore to shore; now
-taking the little steamer which plies to the foot of the cataract,
-into the very midst of the thick, blinding spray. Mamma did not think
-it best for Bessie to go on this expedition; but strong, hardy, little
-Maggie was allowed to go, well wrapped in water-proof, and held fast
-in papa’s or Uncle Ruthven’s arms. On the whole, however, Maggie did
-not enjoy this as much as she did the other excursions. In the first
-place, Bessie was not with her, and then she wanted to laugh at the
-droll, miserable-looking figures about her, but would not do so, lest
-she should “hurt their feelings, when they looked so very unhappy, and
-as if they wished they had not come.”
-
-Then again they would pass over to some of the lovely little islands,
-which here and there break the rapids above the American Fall. Two of
-them, Ship and Brig Islands, had a special interest for the children,
-from their resemblance to ships under full sail. Even Bessie, who could
-never be persuaded to imagine any thing which she did not distinctly
-see, noticed this, and said she felt almost sorry for them, for it
-seemed as if they were “real live ships trying to sail out of the
-waters that were hurrying them away so fast.”
-
-Mr. Bradford and Mr. Stanton had gone over to Goat Island one
-afternoon, taking the little girls with them. Here they were lying
-and sitting under the overarching trees, looking at the Hermit’s
-Cascade, and listening to the deep, never-ceasing voice of the great
-cataract, when they were joined by the younger portion of the Maynard
-party,--Kate and her brother, and Mr. and Miss Temple.
-
-Maggie and Bessie had by this time taken Mr. Charlie Maynard into
-special favor, looking upon him with eyes nearly as friendly as those
-with which they regarded his sister; and they were glad to see both
-him and Kate. Miss Temple, too, a quiet, lady-like girl, they liked
-very well, and did not object to her; but they could very well have
-dispensed with her brother’s society. However, he did not on this
-occasion seem at first disposed to prove teasing or troublesome, but
-stretched himself upon the grass, with his head supported on his arm
-and his hat half over his eyes.
-
-But, by and by, Mr. Bradford and Mr. Stanton, seeing an old friend at
-a little distance, went to speak to him; the former telling his little
-girls to remain where they were till he returned. They were scarcely
-out of hearing, when George Temple, turning lazily over so as to face
-Maggie, though he still kept his eyes shaded by his hat, said,--
-
-“This is delightful! One could dream half one’s life away in this
-enchanting place and in such pleasant company. Have we not a poet or
-poetess among us to put it all into verse? What! no answer to the call?
-Then I shall have to try my hand at it.”
-
-“You making verses!” said his sister, laughing, and playfully pulling
-the brown locks which escaped from beneath his hat. “You making
-verses! a lame style of poetry that would be, to be sure.”
-
-“I don’t know,” said George. “Certainly I never appeared to have much
-talent that way; but no one can tell what he may be able to do when a
-fitting time arrives. I feel on the present occasion like the gifted
-authoress who says so touchingly,--
-
- ‘I have so very many mercies
- I have to write them down in verses.’”
-
-Maggie started, and looked up from the little bunch of wild flowers she
-was arranging to carry home to her mother.
-
-Mr. Maynard and the young ladies laughed; and Charlie said,--
-
-“What a gem! Who is your authoress?”
-
-“She is Anon., I believe,” said George, sleepily. “She closes the
-couplet with,--
-
- ‘Because my heart in praise goes up
- For such a full and heaped-up cup.’
-
-Now I am in just such a frame of mind, and quite agree with her when
-she goes on to say,--
-
- ‘This world is all so beautiful,
- We should be very gra-te-ful;
- But then, you know, sometimes we’re not,
- And do forget our happy lot.’”
-
-“George,” said Miss Temple, “how can you be so foolish?” but she
-laughed again, and the others, too, went on laughing and joking him
-about his “nonsense;” while poor Maggie sat,--with downcast-eyes,
-changing color, and beating heart,--listening intently to every word
-her tormentor uttered, and wondering how much more pain he would
-put her through. As for Bessie, she had at first heard in wondering
-surprise those strangely familiar lines; but surprise soon changed to
-sympathy for her Maggie, and indignation against Mr. Temple.
-
-Suddenly Kate turned her eyes towards the two little faces, and the
-expression of both left no room for doubt as to who was the author of
-the unfortunate verses. Maggie was in an agony of embarrassment: too
-well did Kate know the signs, and remember with shame how, not long
-since, she herself had found as much amusement in them as George Temple
-was probably now doing, since he was taking so much pains to excite
-them. But Kate had learned better, and had grown more thoughtful and
-considerate, more careful not to give pain to another for the sake of
-a little passing enjoyment to herself. How cruel Mr. Temple’s teasing
-seemed to her now, and how she felt for Maggie!
-
-For Bessie, too, who she saw was trying to keep down her rising temper,
-she was very sorry. She must come to the rescue in some way.
-
-“I might have known from the first,” she said to herself, “that those
-were Maggie’s verses. They sound just like her,--just like her happy,
-grateful, little heart, always so ready and eager to give praise and
-gratitude where they are due. They are not bad for such a child,
-either; but I must help her out of this. Poor little Maggie!”
-
-“There’s another sentiment of the talented writer, to which I shall
-also say amen,” began Mr. Temple again,--
-
- “‘And then I’ve lots of friends at home
- From whom just now away I roam;
- I hope they’ll all be safe and sound
- When I again at home am found.’”
-
-“I thought you meant to try your own powers of rhyming,” said Kate. “I
-am glad you have not, for I know you could not do nearly as well as the
-writer you quote; and I am sure you have not half as feeling a heart.
-But we have had enough.”
-
-This was an unlucky speech of Kate’s; for it gave Mr. Temple an
-opportunity of doing still worse.
-
-“A feeling heart!” he repeated: “well, I don’t know about that; her
-feelings seem to have been mixed, for she says,--
-
- ‘Alas! ’tis my unhappy fate
- To see on board a man I hate:
- I know I should not be so mad;
- But he behaves so very bad.’
-
-Now, I am in a much more amiable frame of mind; for I do not see in
-this present company a single person whom it is ‘my unhappy fate’ to
-hate. How is it with you, Maggie?”
-
-But Maggie was overwhelmed, and could not possibly have answered if she
-had wished to do so ever so much.
-
-“Maggie,” said Kate, seeing no way to spare the child further confusion
-but by taking her away, “you have not enough green with those flowers.
-Come over there, I see some pretty leaves, and we will gather them.”
-
-Maggie sprang to her feet, letting the flowers fall to the ground, and
-seized eagerly upon the kind hand held out for her relief. The tears,
-which she had been struggling to hold back, flowed freely the moment
-she was beyond the sound of her tormentor’s voice; but she felt better
-for them and for Kate’s sympathy.
-
-“Never mind, dear,” said Kate, soothingly. “I know the poetry is yours,
-Maggie, and it is very nice indeed; but I would not say so before
-Charlie and Mary. I thought you would not like it. George Temple could
-not have written it himself, and he ought to be ashamed to tease you
-so.”
-
-“It’s _too, too_ mean,” sobbed Maggie; “and that man is too horrid. I
-didn’t really mean I hated him; but now I most feel as if I did.”
-
-Meanwhile Bessie, who had lingered a moment to pick up Maggie’s
-flowers, was receiving in dignified silence Mr. Temple’s questions as
-he asked “what ailed her sister?”
-
-“What is the matter, George?” said Miss Temple, seeing something was
-wrong. “Are you teasing Maggie? Are those verses hers?”
-
-“I told you they were Anon.,” replied her brother.
-
-This was a little too much. It was quite bad enough for Mr. Temple
-to torment Maggie so; but that he should give the credit of those
-beautiful verses to another, was more than could be borne, and Bessie
-turned upon him, saying, with the utmost severity, but without
-passion,--
-
-“They’re not. Miss Anon. didn’t write them. My Maggie did; and you know
-it, and you took them out of her bag.”
-
-Mr. Temple laughed with the others at the first part of the speech, but
-looked grave again at its ending.
-
-“Hallo!” he said, rousing himself from the lazy attitude he had kept
-until now, “do you know what you are saying, little lady? That would be
-stealing.”
-
-Bessie stood looking at him for a moment in silence.
-
-“I picked them up off the deck of the steamboat,” said the young
-gentleman, a shade of vexation crossing his face as he noted the
-expression of the child’s.
-
-With grave reproach in her great, serious eyes, she made answer,--
-
-“I don’t see why it’s not just the same.”
-
-“The same as what, as stealing?”
-
-“You knew they were not yours, sir,” answered the child. “I don’t
-suppose it was just stealing, but I think it was”--
-
-“Well,” said Mr. Temple, seeing she hesitated.
-
-“I had better go away,” said Bessie: “I feel pretty saucy and I might
-say something you deserved;” with which she turned away, and ran after
-Kate and Maggie.
-
-Mr. Temple looked, as he felt, uncomfortable. The joke had proved
-more serious than he had intended; and the remarks made by his two
-companions, and their amusement at Bessie’s words, did not tend to make
-him better pleased with the consequences of his own conduct.
-
-Kate added her reproaches when she returned, after leaving Maggie and
-Bessie in their father’s care, saying,--
-
-“I had rather, for your own sake, that you had done this thing to any
-other children than those two, George. They are both so truly just, and
-have such a high sense of honor, which you have rudely shocked.”
-
-“A child’s sense of honor,” repeated George, rather scornfully. “I am
-sorry I teased them, and had no idea Maggie would take it so hardly;
-but I am not troubled in regard to my self. A child’s opinion does not
-signify much.”
-
-“It does with me,” said Kate, “and I can tell you a story to the
-point, and which may show you what a child’s sense of honor is worth. I
-think they sometimes see the right and wrong more clearly than we do.”
-
-“You seem to have great faith in these little friends of yours,” said
-Mr. Temple.
-
-“Yes,” replied Kate, “I have reason. They have been tried and not found
-wanting, as you shall hear;” and Kate told the story of the prize
-composition,--the hopes and fears regarding it, its loss and recovery,
-and the noble way in which our little girls had acted.
-
-“Capital!” said Charlie, as she ended. “They judge others only by the
-rules by which their own conduct is guided; and there is a wise saying
-in an old book we all know of, which we would do well to remember:
-namely, ‘Take heed that ye offend not one of these little ones.’ I
-take that to mean, not only that we are to set a good example to them,
-and that we must so act and speak as not to confuse and disturb their
-ideas of right and wrong; but also, that whoever purposely hurts or
-grieves one of them, commits a sin in the eyes of Him who gave them His
-special care and blessing. Which of us could have calmly borne ridicule
-thrown upon some cherished work of our own, such as you cast, George,
-on the simple verses of that shy, sensitive, little Maggie? Poor little
-poetess! And I honor Bessie, baby though she is, for the way in which
-she struggled with her temper, and removed herself from the temptation
-to give way to it, and ‘say something you deserved.’ Could there have
-been a more severe reproof than that?” and Mr. Maynard laughed again
-at Bessie’s speech and manner, though he felt that this had become no
-laughing matter.
-
-“They have both forgiven him now,” said Kate, dryly; “and Bessie made
-the excuse for him which she usually makes for others who do what she
-considers wrong, that ‘maybe Mr. Temple had never been taught better,
-and so didn’t know what was very true and honest, or he wouldn’t have
-kept Maggie’s verses, when he knew they were hers, for such a very
-unkind purpose as to tease her.’ ‘And maybe he didn’t know how very bad
-I felt, and never thought much about doing unto others,’ added Maggie.
-I cannot believe you meant to be as cruel as you were, George; for you
-did not know how much Maggie dreads notice drawn upon herself. You
-see,” she added, playfully, “I have myself so lately learned the lesson
-how much suffering such thoughtlessness may cause another, that I feel
-entitled to preach on the subject to others.”
-
-Mr. Temple took the preaching in good part. He had a lazy kind of
-good-nature which would not allow him to take offence readily; and,
-besides, he was really sorry and vexed with himself for what he had
-done. Perhaps he would have regretted it still more, had he seen part
-of a letter written that afternoon by Maggie to Colonel Rush:--
-
- “DEAR UNCLE HORACE,--I think there are a kind of people in the
- world who seem to be created only for a very bad business,
- namely, to tease poor children and make their shyness come
- back to them when they have been trying very hard to cure
- themselves of it. Of this nature is a man whose name I will
- not mention, for some day you might know him and say ‘there is
- the trecherous man who was so cruel to Maggie and I will not be
- acquainted with him’ which would be a punishment I would not
- wish even him to bear because I am trying to forgive him but it
- is very hard. He picked up a poem I wrote on the boat to send
- to you, and he kept it and said it before me just to plage me
- and there was a verse in it about him which was not at all a
- compliment and oh! dear Uncle Horace he said that too, and it
- was dreadful I was so frightened. I am quite sure he knew it
- was mine and Bessie is too and I don’t think it was very honest
- not to give it right back do you? but to read it which was not
- like what a gentleman should do. He made believe he thought it
- was nice but he did not and was only making fun of it which
- was a hard distress to bear and I think I shall never recover
- it and feel as pleasant with that man as I would wish to feel
- with all my fellow cretures. Miss Kate was very nice and took
- me away and she is much improved and never teases any more
- and now I love her dearly; but she never teased me so badly as
- that man who I will not name and I pity Miss Temple for having
- such a brother for she is a very nice young lady and deserves
- better. When Harry and Fred are young men which I wish they did
- not have to be I hope they will remember this and take pattern
- by Mr. Maynard and not by M---- that other man I mean. But no
- more on this melancorly subject so sad to think on but I will
- tell you about Niagara Falls.
-
- “N. B. Mr. Temple is a very good looking young man in his
- appearance but I find all is not gold that glitters.”
-
-
-
-
-XI.
-
-_GOOD SEED._
-
-
- “MY OWN DEAR SOLGER,--I do want to see you so much I don’t kno
- wat to do and Ant May too and May Bessie. I did not see you
- ever so long and it is such a grate wile I miss you so. But
- Mamma says some day we will go to your house in that place
- where you live and I will be so glad and my Maggie too. They
- are indians in Nigra Falls and they have pretty things and we
- bort some for all our peple and a baskit for Ant May and a
- rattel for May Bessie and something for you that is a secret.
- Plese dont tell them so they will be surprised and Nigra Falls
- is so fast you cant think. I never saw such fast water and it
- makes such a noise but not so nice as the sea and I like it
- best when we go on the ilans or up the river where it is not so
- much noise or such hie water to fall over. Some ilans are named
- the three sisters and we call one Maggie and one Bessie and
- one Annie don’t you think that is nice. I want to see Belle so
- much. Belle loves me and I love Belle and Maggie does too and
- I love her more that her mama went away to Jesus and she wants
- her but I know she loves her yet and is glad when she is good.
- And Belle is sweet. Don’t you love Belle? I send you forty nine
- kisses and I love you dear Uncle Horace from your pet
-
- “BESSIE.”
-
-It would be hard to tell who took the most pleasure in these letters
-from our little travellers,--those who wrote them, or those who
-received them. One thing is certain,--that they were all carefully
-kept and laid away, and some time, when they are older, Maggie and
-Bessie may find some amusement in looking over these records of their
-childish days. Many a pleasant scene and circumstance will they bring
-back to them, and some not so bright perhaps; for the little ones have
-their trials, as we know, and do not, I fear, forget as readily as
-we grown people would believe. It is strange we do not see that too;
-looking back, as we often do, with a sort of tender pity for our own
-former grieved and mortified _little_ selves, and remembering with
-such distinctness the sharp or quick word of reproof, the thoughtless
-teasing, or the loud, sudden laugh at some innocent speech or action.
-
-Little did Bessie think when she wrote that last letter, how soon her
-wishes to see her dear friends were to be gratified.
-
-It had been intended to take the steamer down Lake Ontario and the St.
-Lawrence to Montreal: but on the day before that on which our friends
-were to leave Niagara, there was a severe storm which tossed and
-roughened the waters of the great lake; and fearing that Maggie might
-have an attack of the old enemy she so dreaded, and knowing that fresh
-water seasickness is even worse than that which comes from the salt
-water, the elders of the party decided not to take the boat down the
-lake.
-
-They therefore went by the cars to Kingston, in Canada, and, after
-passing a day there, took the boat down the river St. Lawrence; for
-here Maggie had nothing to fear from her foe. There was no part of
-their long journey which the children enjoyed more than their passage
-down this beautiful river, so different from any thing they had yet
-seen. The Lake of the Thousand Isles, as the entrance to the St.
-Lawrence is called, full of little islets up to the number that is
-named, a thousand: some larger, and covered with graceful, feathery
-trees; some so small as scarce to afford room for some solitary tree or
-bush; clustering together so as scarce to leave room for the steamer to
-pass, then again separating, with a broad, clear sheet of water between
-them.
-
-Here something occurred which greatly interested not only the children,
-but also the grown people on board. As the steamer was slowly making
-her way between two small islands, the passengers saw a very exciting
-chase before them. A fine stag was swimming across the river, pursued
-by dogs and two boats with men in them. The poor beast was trying with
-all his strength to escape from his cruel enemies, and the sympathies
-of all the passengers were with him. The men in the boats had no guns,
-but a net, which they were trying to throw over his head; but each
-time they neared him, he shot forward beyond their reach. Maggie and
-Bessie were in a state of the wildest excitement, as they watched the
-innocent and beautiful creature panting with terror and fatigue; and
-their elders were hardly less so. Bessie held fast her father’s hand,
-gazing with eager eyes and parted lips, her color coming and going, her
-little frame trembling with distress and indignation; and Maggie seized
-upon Uncle Ruthven and danced up and down in frantic suspense and alarm
-at the danger of the poor beast. His courage seemed giving out, and
-his pursuers cheered in triumph; when, summoning up all his strength,
-he suddenly turned, and, passing almost under the bow of the steamer,
-made for the opposite and nearer shore, thus gaining upon his enemies
-as they took time to turn their boats; and cleaving the water, almost
-like lightning, he reached the thickly wooded bank, bounded up, and
-was lost to sight among the forest trees, and beyond the reach of his
-would-be destroyers. A cheer burst from those on board, as the noble
-creature disappeared in safety,--a cheer in which Maggie joined with
-all her heart, “for I couldn’t help it, and most forgot it was rather
-tomboyish,” she afterwards said. But no one found fault with her:
-indeed no one could. As for Bessie, she fairly cried, but it was only
-with pleasure and the feeling of relief.
-
-Later in the day, they were greatly interested in seeing the shooting
-of the Rapids, as the passage of the steamer over the foaming waters is
-called. It was a curious sight. The water foamed and bubbled around
-the steamer, seeming as though it were eager to draw it down; but the
-vessel glided on, rose a little to the billows, plunged, rose again,
-and was once more in smooth waters. There were several of these rapids
-to be passed; and, although our little girls had been rather frightened
-at the first, they soon became accustomed to it, and enjoyed the swift
-descent. The crew of the steamer were all Canadians; and, as they came
-to each rapid, they struck up some cheery boat-song, which rose sweet
-and clear above the roar of the waves, and put heart and courage into
-the more timid ones among the passengers.
-
-They soon reached Montreal, where they spent a week; and here again the
-opportunity to do a kind act, and leave a blessing behind them, came in
-the way of our little sisters.
-
-They were one day passing through the long upper hall of the hotel at
-which they stayed, when they met the chamber-maid who waited on their
-rooms, crying bitterly. The girl, who was quite young, had her apron
-thrown over her head, and seemed in great distress.
-
-“What is the matter, Matilda?” asked nurse, who was with the children.
-
-“I’ve lost my place,” sobbed Matilda; “and I’ve my mother and my two
-little brothers to take care of. Oh! whatever will I do?”
-
-“Why are you turned away?” asked nurse, who thought the girl attended
-to her duties very well, and was civil and obliging.
-
-Then Matilda took down her apron, showing her face all streaked with
-tears, and told her story.
-
-She had, it appeared, been unfortunate,--perhaps rather careless,--and
-had broken one or two articles, the loss of which had greatly vexed the
-house-keeper, who had told her she should leave her place the next time
-she broke any thing. This had made her more careful; but that morning
-an accident had occurred which might have happened to any one. Turning
-the corner of a corridor, with a pitcher full of water in her hand,
-some one had run against her, the pitcher was knocked from her hold,
-and broken into a hundred pieces. The house-keeper would hear of no
-excuse, and bade her leave the house at once, or pay for the pitcher.
-
-“And I haven’t a penny,” said the girl; “for I sent all my wages to my
-mother yesterday to pay her rent, and there’s nothing for it but I must
-go. And what is to become of us all, if I don’t get another place right
-away?”
-
-Nurse tried to comfort her, by saying she would soon find another
-situation; but Matilda replied that was not so easy, and she feared
-they would all suffer before she found it; and went away, still crying
-bitterly. Maggie and Bessie were very sorry for her.
-
-“I wonder if we haven’t money enough to pay for the pitcher, Bessie,”
-said Maggie. “If we had, then maybe the house-keeper would let her
-stay; and if she won’t we could give Matilda the money to keep her
-mother and brothers from starving.”
-
-“Yes, that’s a good thought of you, Maggie,” said Bessie; “and there’s
-the house-keeper now. Let’s run and ask her quick: may we, nursey?”
-
-Nurse gave permission, though she did not think the children would be
-successful in their errand of kindness; and said low, either to herself
-or baby, whom she carried in her arms,--
-
-“Eh! the little dears will do naught with her. She’s a cross-grained
-creature, that house-keeper, and as short in her way as a
-snapping-turtle.”
-
-Maggie’s courage began to fail her when she and Bessie ran up to the
-house-keeper, and heard the severe tone in which she was speaking to
-another servant. It was true that her manner and speech were apt to be
-rather harsh and short in dealing with those about her, especially to
-the girls who were under her orders; but it must be said in her excuse
-that she led rather a trying life, and had a good deal to vex and
-trouble her.
-
-Maggie and Bessie stood waiting behind the house-keeper’s stout figure,
-till she had, as Maggie afterwards said, “finished up her scoldings,”
-when Bessie said rather timidly:--
-
-“Mrs. Housekeeper?”
-
-“Well, what’s wanted now?” asked the woman, turning sharply round; but,
-when she saw who was speaking to her, her face softened and her manner
-changed.
-
-Now the worst of all this poor woman’s troubles was the long tedious
-sickness of her only child, a little girl about Bessie’s age, but
-not bright and happy, and able to run about and play like our little
-“princess.” This poor child had been ailing for more than six months,
-sometimes suffering a great deal, and always very weak; and her mother
-had not much time to give to her, since she was obliged to attend to
-her duties about the hotel of which she had charge.
-
-When the child was well enough, she was put into a perambulator and
-taken out for fresh air; and she had just returned from one of these
-rides on the day before this, as Maggie and Bessie came in from a
-drive with the elders of their party. They had been to visit an Indian
-encampment just outside the city, and returned laden with all manner
-of pretty trifles purchased for the dear ones at home, and some for
-themselves.
-
-They had each of them also a handful of flowers given to them by some
-friend; and, as they passed the sick child lying in her wagon, and
-turned towards her with a look of sympathy, Bessie saw her eyes fixed
-longingly on the sweet blossoms she held.
-
-She stopped and turning to Maggie said,--
-
-“I think I’ll give my flowers to that sick child, she looks as if she’d
-like them,” and then going to the child she put the flowers in her
-hand, and said, “Here are some flowers for you, and I am sorry you are
-sick.”
-
-“And here’s a basket for you,” said Maggie, coming forward with her
-offering too; and she gave a pretty little basket, the work of the
-Indians, which she had bought for her own use: “you can put Bessie’s
-flowers in it, and it will look lovely. See, let me fix them for you,”
-and in two minutes her skilful little fingers had arranged the flowers
-most tastefully, greatly to the child’s delight.
-
-“And am I to keep the basket?” asked the sick child.
-
-“Oh, yes! for ever and ever if you like,” said Maggie; “and when the
-flowers are faded you can take them out and put some more in.”
-
-“I don’t often have flowers,” said the child; “but I love them so: only
-I don’t like to take all yours,” she added, looking at Bessie.
-
-“Oh! she is going to have half mine,” said Maggie; “you needn’t be
-troubled about that. Good-by now,” and she and Bessie ran after their
-parents, leaving the sick child brightened and happy.
-
-[Illustration: Bessie’s Travels. p. 268.]
-
-Her mother had been standing near enough to hear and see all that had
-passed; and so you will not wonder that now, when she turned and saw
-Maggie and Bessie, her harsh look and tone became gentle and pleasant.
-
-“Oh! it’s you, you little dears,” she said. “Now, is there ever a thing
-I can do for you?”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie. “We are so sorry for Matilda, and we wanted to know
-if you would let us pay for the pitcher she broke if we have money
-enough, and try her just once more?”
-
-“I like to please you,” said the woman; “but Matilda is so careless I
-cannot put up with her.”
-
-“But it really wasn’t her fault this time,” pleaded Bessie; “she says
-a man ran against her, and knocked it out of her hand when she was
-carrying it so carefully.”
-
-“And we’ll pay for it if we have enough,” said Maggie.
-
-“And her mother is sick,” said Bessie; “and you know we ought to be
-sorry and kind to sick people; and you know, too, we ought to forgive
-as we want to be forgiven. Couldn’t you do it for the sick mother’s
-sake? And maybe this will be a good lesson to Matilda.”
-
-“I’ll keep her for your sake, and strive to be more patient with her
-too,” said the house-keeper; “and I think you’ll never lack for comfort
-and kindness when you’re sick yourselves: at least, not if the Lord
-repays what’s done for Him, as the good book says He does.”
-
-“And how much must we pay for the pitcher?” asked Bessie.
-
-“Not a penny. I don’t know as Matilda was to blame this time, and I
-didn’t listen to her story as I should, I own; but I’ve been so put
-about this morning. You go your ways, you little dears; and Matilda
-shall stay for your good word.”
-
-Now the children did not know it, but probably the good word of the
-two little strangers would have gone but little way with the angry
-house-keeper, had it not been for the kindness done to her sick child
-the day before; but so it was, and so the one good thing sprang from
-the other.
-
-They left Montreal the next morning, and then came two long days of
-railway travelling, ending in Boston. Here they stayed only a few
-hours, and then started afresh about six o’clock in the evening, bound
-“for Narragansett Bay,” papa said, when he was asked where they were
-now going. Bessie was so thoroughly tired that she was soon glad to
-nestle her head against her father and go to sleep: a very comfortable
-sleep it was too, from which she did not wake even when she was carried
-from the cars to a carriage, and from the carriage into a certain
-house. Maggie, too, after refusing similar accommodation from Uncle
-Ruthven, and holding herself very upright, and stretching her eyes very
-wide open, at last gave in, and accepted the repeated offer of his arm
-as a pillow.
-
-But they both roused up at last when they were brought into that house.
-Where were they now? and whose voices were those, so familiar and so
-dear, but not heard for many weeks?
-
-Maggie opened her eyes with a start, wide-awake on the instant, and,
-immediately understanding all, gave a shriek of delight, sprang off the
-sofa where Uncle Ruthven had placed her, and was fast about Mrs. Rush’s
-neck, exclaiming,--
-
-“It’s Newport! it is Newport! and this is Aunt May’s house, and papa
-has surprised us. Oh! lovely, lovely! Bessie! Bessie! wake up, and hear
-the good news.”
-
-Bessie slowly opened her eyes at the call, not yet understanding; but
-as she saw the face that was bending over her, and knew that here was
-her “own dear solger,” whom she had so longed to see, she gave a long
-sigh of intense satisfaction, and, after her usual manner when her
-heart was full of love and tenderness, let two words speak for her,--
-
-“Uncle Horace.”
-
-There was no surprise in the tone, only unspeakable pleasure and
-affection; and she laid her head against his shoulder with an
-expression of utter content.
-
-“This is the very best thing in all our travels,” said Maggie. “Where
-is May Bessie, Aunt May?”
-
-“Fast asleep in her cradle, and I can’t let you peep at her to-night,”
-said Mrs. Rush. “We’ll keep that for the morning.”
-
-Mamma said all other pleasures must be kept for the morning, save that
-of following May Bessie’s example; and Bessie, who could scarcely keep
-her eyes open, even for the purpose of looking at her beloved Colonel
-Rush, was quite ready to obey; but Maggie thought she had had sleep
-enough for one night, and would like at once to make acquaintance with
-all her new surroundings.
-
-“But we are all going to rest, for it is nearly midnight,” said the
-colonel; which caused Maggie to change her mind, as she had no fancy
-for staying up alone; and she was now eager to go to sleep at once,
-so that “morning might come before she knew it,” and she went off
-saying,--
-
-“I never saw children who had such heaps and heaps of happiness as we
-do. I don’t know how I’m ever going to make up enough gratitude for it.”
-
-Perhaps her gratitude to the kind hand which showered so much happiness
-upon her was best shown in the sunny spirit with which she took both
-trials and blessings, and in her readiness to share the latter with all
-whom she met.
-
-
-
-
-XII.
-
-“_HAPPY DELIGHTS._”
-
-
-“Woof! woof! woof! woof!”
-
-Was it possible Flossie knew who was in that pretty room where Maggie
-and Bessie had been snugly tucked away last night? Certain it is that
-these sounds, accompanied by a violent scratching at the door, as if he
-were in a great hurry to have it opened, awakened our little sisters in
-the morning.
-
-“Why!” said Maggie, in great surprise, “if that don’t sound like--why,
-Janie!” as her eyes fell upon the smiling face of Jane, looking at her
-over the foot-board of her bed.
-
-“Why, Janie!” repeated Bessie in her turn. “Who is barking?” she added,
-as a fresh burst of scratching, and “woof, woof”-ing, came from the
-door.
-
-“Shall I open it and see?” asked Jane; and she opened the door, when
-in rushed Flossie, who, jumping on the bed, went into an ecstasy of
-delight and welcome that fell little short of speaking. He wriggled
-and twisted and barked, and nearly wagged his tail off, and behaved
-altogether as if he were half frantic. His little mistresses almost
-smothered him; but he did not object, and put his cold nose in their
-faces, and wagged and wriggled harder than ever. Never was such a
-delighted little dog.
-
-Before the children had time to ask any questions, Frankie came running
-in, exclaiming,--
-
-“Hi! Maddie and Bessie. Flossie and me and Janie found you. All the
-peoples is downstairs to brekwis.”
-
-Maggie was dismayed. All the people down to breakfast! and she had
-meant to be awake with the first streak of daylight. Frankie had to be
-squeezed and kissed of course; and then Jane and nurse were begged to
-wash and dress them as fast as possible.
-
-“Why, what’s that noise?” asked Bessie while nurse was busy with her.
-“It sounds just like the sea.”
-
-“The wind is high this morning,” said nurse, who had had her orders.
-
-“How much it sounds like my dear sea,” said Bessie, unsuspectingly, as
-she glanced up at the window and saw the branches of the trees waving
-about in what was, as Mammy said, rather a high wind. “Can’t we have
-the window open, so we could hear it plainer? I could most think it was
-the sea.”
-
-“It’s cool this morning. Wait for open windows till you’re dressed and
-downstairs,” said nurse.
-
-Bessie said no more; but she kept turning her head and listening to the
-sound, which seemed to her to be distinct from that of the wind, and
-which sounded so very much like her beloved sea.
-
-Meanwhile, Maggie was quite taken up with asking questions; hearing
-how grandmamma, Aunt Annie, the boys, Jane, and Flossie, had come to
-Newport by last night’s boat, reaching there early in the morning,
-before she had been roused from that ridiculously long sleep. Nothing
-less than having the whole family beneath their hospitable roof, would
-satisfy Colonel and Mrs. Rush; and they had contrived to carry their
-point.
-
-Maggie’s “heaps of happiness” were rising higher and higher. When they
-were ready, Jane took them downstairs; but she led them by a back
-corridor, and seemed to take pains to keep them away from windows and
-doors which opened upon the outside of the house. Certainly she and
-nurse acted in a rather strange and “mysterious” manner that morning.
-But at last she had them safely at the door of the breakfast room,
-where she left them.
-
-The whole party were still seated round the table, though the meal was
-about over when they entered; and they were going from one to another,
-offering kisses, smiles, and welcomes, when Bessie’s eyes fell through
-the open sash of a large bow-window, drawn there by that same sound she
-had heard upstairs.
-
-For an instant she stood speechless with astonishment and delight;
-then, stretching out her hands towards the window, with her whole face
-lighting up, she cried,--
-
-“It is, it is, it is the very, very sea! my own true sea!”
-
-Yes: there it was, the “true sea,” as she called it, or more properly
-the seashore she loved so much. Her friends watched her for a moment
-with smiling interest. They had expected to see her so pleased; and,
-wishing to be present when she first beheld it, Mrs. Rush had so
-arranged that she and Maggie should be on the other side of the house
-on the first morning, and nurse and Jane had been told to keep them as
-much as possible from the sight and sound of the sea.
-
-The Colonel rose, and, taking her hand, led her out upon the broad
-piazza, where she might see the whole extent of land and water which
-the magnificent view afforded.
-
-The house stood on very high ground, overlooking a cliff in front,
-which fell sheer down to the water. To the left, was a broad, sweeping
-curve of beach, on which the waves were breaking; the long white
-rollers, with their curling tops, following one another in grand
-procession, and making beautiful and solemn music as their march was
-ended. Away to the right lay a wilder, but hardly a grander, scene.
-Here were great, rugged rocks, among and over which dashed and foamed
-the waves, whose course they barred. Some were hidden beneath the
-surface of the water, and the feathery foam which boiled and bubbled
-over their jagged faces, alone told where they lay. Beyond, and far
-away, stretched the boundless ocean, the sea Bessie so loved; the white
-crests of its waves flashing and sparkling in the glorious sunshine of
-that bright morning; the blue and cloudless sky, overhead. And the hymn
-which the grand old king was sounding in Bessie’s ear, was still that
-she had so loved two summers ago, the chant of praise which bids all
-who can hear, “remember our Father who made it.”
-
-She stood holding the Colonel’s hand, gazing and listening, as though
-eye and ear could not take their fill; breakfast was unheeded, and it
-was not till grandmamma reproachfully asked if she was to be forgotten
-for the sea, that Bessie could be persuaded to turn away.
-
-Maggie, too, was delighted to be once more at the seashore; but she
-had not the longing for it that Bessie had, and all places were about
-equally pleasant to her, provided she had those she loved with her.
-
-But now May Bessie was brought, and even the sea was for the time
-forgotten in the pleasure of seeing her and noticing how much she had
-grown and improved. When a little life is counted by months, two of
-these make a great difference, and it was as long as that since Maggie
-and Bessie had seen Mrs. Rush’s baby. She was a sweet, bright, little
-thing; and it might have been thought that she had seen the children
-every day, so speedily did she make friends with them. Indeed, Bessie
-was sure the baby recognized them, and intended to show she was glad to
-see them; and no one cared to disturb this belief, in which she took
-great satisfaction. It was funny to see the patronizing airs which
-little Annie put on towards the younger baby, and the care which she
-showed for her. She called her “Dolly,” and seemed to think it hard and
-strange that she was not allowed to pull and carry her about as she
-would have done a real doll. Aunt Patty, who had taken a great fancy to
-Mrs. Rush, had made several toys and pretty things for her baby’s use,
-and among them was a worsted doll, in all respects like the lost Peter
-Bartholomew.
-
-May Bessie had not the same objections to this gentleman that little
-Annie had to hers, but opened great eyes, and cooed and crowed at him;
-and altogether showed more pleasure in him than in any other plaything
-she possessed. Not so Annie, when he was introduced to her.
-
-“See here, baby. Who is this?” said Mrs. Bradford, wishing to see if
-she would recognize it, and she held up the doll before the eyes of her
-by no means gratified baby daughter.
-
-The pet drew up her rose-bud of a mouth into the most comical
-expression of astonishment and disgust at the sight of the old object
-of her dislike; for, as was quite natural, she took it to be the very
-same Peter Bartholomew. Then, taking him from her mother’s hand, she
-gravely marched with him to the hearth-rug, and, tucking him beneath
-it, sat down upon it, saying, “Tit on Peter,” in a tone of triumph,
-as though she thought she had now altogether extinguished the unlucky
-offender. Great was her indignation when, later in the day, she was
-brought in from her drive, and found Peter Bartholomew No. 2 had
-reappeared. Finding the hearth-rug was not a safe hiding-place, she
-was from this time constantly contriving ways and means for putting
-him out of sight; but only to find that he as constantly turned up
-again. In vain did she throw him out of windows, and behind doors; poke
-him through the banisters, and let him fall in the hall below: tuck
-him behind sofa-cushions, and squeeze him into the smallest possible
-corners, with all manner of things piled on top of him: he still proved
-a source of trouble to her. The other children found great amusement in
-this, and in pretending to hunt for Peter, while they knew very well
-where he was.
-
-But on the third day they really hunted in vain. Peter Bartholomew the
-second seemed to be as thoroughly “all don,” as his namesake who had
-been left on the far-away Southern railroad; and the nurses joined in
-the search with no better success. Annie seemed to have accomplished
-her object this time; and the little one herself could not be persuaded
-to say where she had put him. Her mother tried to make her tell; but
-the child seemed really to have forgotten, and the matter was allowed
-to rest.
-
-However, Peter came to light at last, to light very nearly in earnest.
-In Mrs. Rush’s nursery was a large, open fireplace, where wood was
-always laid ready for lighting when a fire should be needed for the
-baby. One cool morning, about a week after Peter’s disappearance, May
-Bessie’s nurse lit the fire, when Annie, who sat upon Mammy’s knee,
-suddenly exclaimed, as the smoke began to curl up the chimney,--
-
-“Oh, dear, dear! Peter ’moke.”
-
-“You monkey,” said nurse, “I believe you’ve put him behind the wood;”
-and the two nurses hastened to scatter the fire, when, sure enough,
-Peter Bartholomew was drawn forth, slightly scorched and smelling
-somewhat of “’moke,” but otherwise unhurt. Annie took it hard, however,
-and was so grieved at his reappearance that Mrs. Rush, who was in the
-nursery, said he had better be put away while she stayed. Probably the
-lighting of the fire recalled to baby’s mind where she had put the
-lost Peter.
-
-But we must go back to the first morning of their stay at Newport. The
-ladies were all rather tired with their journey and were disposed to
-rest; but the children, refreshed by a good night’s sleep, were quite
-ready to start out with the gentlemen for a ramble on the beach.
-
-“Do you like this as well as Quam Beach?” asked the Colonel of Bessie,
-as she sat beside him on a rock, with his arm drawn close about her, as
-in the old days of two summers since: those days when she had come, a
-little Heaven-sent messenger, across his path, to guide his wandering
-feet into the road which leads to Eternal Life. Was it any wonder that,
-thinking of this, he looked down with a very tender love on the dear
-little one, over whose work the angels of Heaven had rejoiced?
-
-They had both sat silent for some time, the rest of the party having
-wandered to a short distance, when the Colonel asked this question,--
-
-“Do you like this as well as Quam Beach, Bessie?”
-
-“Oh, yes, sir! better,” said Bessie. “I never _did_ see such a lovely,
-lovely place as this, or feel such nice air. It’s the best place we
-went to in all our travels; and then we have you and most all the
-people we love here. I am so very contented.”
-
-She looked so indeed, as she sat smiling and happy, looking out over
-the sapphire blue waters, and watching the white-capped waves which
-broke almost at her feet.
-
-“Yes,” said the Colonel, smiling. “I thought it would add to your
-contentment to have all your people here to meet you, if I could bring
-it about.”
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie, who came dancing up in time to hear these last
-words. “It was so very considerate of you and Aunt May. Oh! this is
-the very happiest world I ever lived in. I wish, I _wish_, I could live
-a thousand years in it.”
-
-“But Maggie,” said Bessie, “then you’d be so very long away from
-heaven.”
-
-“Well, yes,” said Maggie; “but then I’d hope to go to heaven after the
-thousand years, and I’d try to be very good all the time.”
-
-“But long before the thousand years were past, all whom you love
-would have gone away to that still happier home our Lord has prepared
-for us,” said the Colonel, “and then you would be lonely and wish to
-follow, would you not, Maggie?”
-
-“Yes,” answered Maggie, a shade of thoughtfulness coming over her sunny
-face. “I’m sure I would if all my dear friends went to heaven, and
-maybe some of them wouldn’t want to live a thousand years.”
-
-“And it’s so hard always to be good,” said Bessie, “and sometimes even
-_we_ have troubles, and are sick, even though we are so happy ’most all
-the time.”
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie, “so we do. I’m not sick much ’cept when I have the
-earache: but maybe I’d be lame and deaf and blind and hump-backed, and
-all kind of things, before I was a thousand years old; and that would
-be horrid. I wouldn’t like to have a great many troubles either; so I
-guess it’s better it is fixed for me just as God chooses.”
-
-“We may be sure of that, dear,” said the Colonel. “God knows what is
-best for us, and rules our lives for our good and His glory.”
-
-“I’m not sure I mind so very much about the being naughty now and
-then,” said Maggie. “I know I ought to, but I’m afraid I don’t. I
-s’pose when I have so much to make me happy I ought to be full of
-remorse all the time for ever being naughty, but somehow I can’t be.
-And I do have afflictions sometimes. Oh!” she added, as the thought of
-her last severe trouble came over her, “we forgot to give Uncle Horace
-the things we prepared for him. You see, Uncle Horace, one day I found
-such a very nice proverb, ‘though lost to sight to memory dear;’ and
-Bessie and I thought we would like to practise it on you; so I finished
-up that poem I began, and Bessie drew a picture for you, and here is
-the poem,” and Maggie drew from her pocket the poem, nicely finished
-and copied out.
-
-“Thank you very much, dear,” said the Colonel. “I am very much pleased;
-but I thought that the poem was lost, or that you had been robbed of
-it.”
-
-“Papa got it back for me,” said Maggie.
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie; “and I was with papa when he asked Mr. Temple for
-it; and I was sorry for Mr. Temple, even though he did tease you so,
-Maggie.”
-
-“Why, papa didn’t scold him, did he?” asked Maggie.
-
-“No,” answered Bessie; “he only said, ‘Mr. Temple, may I trouble you
-for that paper belonging to my little girl;’ but he _mannered_ him, and
-I wouldn’t like papa to have such a manner to me, and Mr. Temple looked
-ashamed. He is a very unpleasant gentleman; but I was sorry for him.”
-
-“But where is the picture?” asked Colonel Rush.
-
-“Here,” said Bessie, and in her turn she produced a paper from her
-pocket and unfolded it before the Colonel’s eyes. “It is Adam and Eve
-in the garden of Eden,” she went on to say: “here they are, and there
-is the tree with the serpent on it, and there is another with birds and
-squir’ls on it. The squir’ls are eating nuts, and the birds are pecking
-peaches, and they are having a nice time.”
-
-“This is very interesting,” said the Colonel, not thinking it necessary
-to tell her that peaches and nuts did not usually grow on the same
-tree; “and what is this in the corner, Bessie?”
-
-“That is the bower they made for a home to live in,” said Bessie; “and
-there is Adam’s wheelbarrow and Eve’s watering-pot. I s’pose she helped
-Adam take care of the garden: don’t you, sir?”
-
-“And this?” asked the Colonel, pointing to another object which he had
-vainly been endeavoring to make out. “It is a pigeon house, I think.”
-
-“Oh, no, sir!” said Bessie, rather mortified. “It is a flag, the flag
-of England. I was going to put the ’merican flag: but I thought it
-would be more a compliment to you to put your own country’s; and so
-I did. There’s the lion;” and she pointed out something which looked
-rather more like a spider than a lion; feeling the while, poor little
-soul, rather hurt that her compliment had not been appreciated without
-explanation.
-
-Now Maggie had had her doubts as to whether a flag was altogether a
-suitable ornament for the garden of Eden, but she had not chosen to
-say so to Bessie, who had taken great pains with her picture; and she
-watched the Colonel’s face closely to see if she could find any sign of
-amusement or surprise.
-
-Not the slightest. He sat gravely smoothing down his moustache, as
-Bessie explained the picture to him, not a smile disturbing the lines
-of his face, not a twinkle breaking into those black eyes, looking only
-interested and pleased; and Maggie dismissed her fears and satisfied
-herself that the flag was not at all out of place.
-
-“This is a compliment, indeed,” said the Colonel with the utmost
-gravity. “You were very, very kind to think of it, Bessie; and Adam and
-Eve were, as Maggie says, extremely considerate to allow the flag of my
-country to be planted in the garden of Eden. I must show this to Aunt
-May, and shall certainly keep it for May Bessie when she is old enough
-to understand it. But see, who is coming here?”
-
-The children followed the direction of his eye. Two figures were coming
-down the beach,--a tall one, and a little one. Was it possible? Yes;
-it really was Mr. Powers and Belle, dear little Belle, whom Bessie had
-been longing to see.
-
-A shriek from Maggie, who went tumbling over a rock in her haste to
-reach them, but picked herself up and rushed on, regardless of grazed
-knees and elbows; an exclamation, less noisy, but quite as full of
-pleasure, from Bessie,--and the three little friends had met again.
-There was Frankie too, who had been carting sea-weed, but had dropped
-spade and wagon-tongue at sight of Belle, of whom he was very fond; and
-then there was such a hugging and kissing, such an interlacing of heads
-and arms and feet, that it would have been difficult to tell to which
-little person each set belonged. Belle did not object to the smothering
-she received; on the contrary, she seemed to enjoy it, and Frankie soon
-relieved her from his share, saying in a tone of great importance,--
-
-“I have bis-er-ness to ’tend to,” and marched off to his sea-weed.
-
-“I shall call Newport the ‘Country of Happy Delights’ when I write
-about it in the ‘Complete Family,’” said Maggie. “I never _did_ see
-such a place. Did you happen here, Belle, or did you know you were
-coming?”
-
-“We happened,” said Belle, “least Daphne and I did; but I think papa
-knew we were coming when he brought us.”
-
-“That was just the way with us,” said Bessie: “all the big people knew
-we were coming; but Maggie and I were so glad and surprised. How long
-have you been here, Belle?”
-
-“Oh! about half a year,” said Belle.
-
-“Why, no,” said Maggie; “for it’s only a month since we left you in New
-York.”
-
-“Is it?” said Belle. “Well, we came last Friday; and then papa brought
-me here to see Aunt May. We live in the hotel; but Aunt May says I must
-come over every day and play with you. It was so lonesome wifout you,”
-and Belle put an arm about the neck of each of her little playmates,
-looking from one to the other with loving, satisfied eyes. “You see,
-Bessie, I grew to love you and Maggie so much, I can’t very well stay
-away from you; and so I wasn’t very patient till you came.”
-
-“Did you know we were coming?” asked Maggie.
-
-“Yes, Aunt May told me I was so homesick for you; and papa said he
-brought me here so I could see you sooner. Wasn’t it good of him?”
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie. “Now let’s go and have a good play. Aunt May gave
-us pails and spades to play in the sand with, Belle, and I will lend
-you mine.”
-
-But there proved to be no need of this; for Belle had been furnished
-with a spade and pail of her own, and Daphne now appeared with them; so
-the little girls joined Frankie.
-
-“What are you doing, Frankie?” asked Belle.
-
-“Helpin’ Dod,” said Frankie.
-
-“Why, Frankie!” said Bessie, rather shocked: “it’s not respectful for
-you to say you’re helping God. He can do every thing Himself, without
-any one to help Him.”
-
-“Well,” said Frankie, taking up another spadeful of sea-weed and
-tossing it into his wagon, “maybe so; but I dess He has too much
-trouble to make so much waves, and keep pushing dis sea-weed up all de
-time; so I jest putting it a little way farder for Him,” and away he
-went with another wagon-load of sea-weed, which he was carting higher
-up the beach.
-
-The three little girls did not know whether to laugh or not; but,
-presently, Maggie said,--
-
-“I guess we need not be shocked at him. He thinks he’s doing something
-right, and we won’t disturb his mind about it. He’s such a funny child.”
-
-He was a droll fellow, to be sure, that Frankie; always making odd
-speeches; and like Maggie in one thing, that one never knew which way
-his ideas would turn. Like Maggie, also, he would never allow that he
-could not reply to any question which might be put to him; but, if
-he had not the right answer, would contrive one which would fit the
-occasion more or less well.
-
-He now came running up to his father, who, with the other gentlemen,
-had joined Colonel Rush, and exclaimed eagerly,--
-
-“Papa, papa, tome quit. I taught a nassy lobster; let’s tate him to the
-house and eat him.”
-
-This was not a very inviting proposal, certainly; but the little boy
-was so anxious that some one should see his “nassy lobster,” that Mr.
-Bradford and Mr. Stanton went with him; the little girls also running
-to see.
-
-The “nassy lobster” proved to be one of those ugly shell-fish called
-horseshoes, which had been left there by the tide, and which Frankie
-had contrived to turn over on its back. He was rather disgusted with
-his prize, however, now that he had captured it; and, in spite of his
-request that it should be taken home and cooked, looked very scornfully
-at it, and pronounced it “degusting as any sing.”
-
-Talking of cooking his fish had put him in mind that he was hungry,
-after his play in the fresh sea-air; and now, coming back and standing
-at his father’s knee, he said rather plaintively,--
-
-“I wish Jesus was here.”
-
-“Why, Frankie?” asked Mr. Bradford.
-
-“’Tause He would dive me some fish and bread lite He did all those many
-people,” replied Frankie, who had lately heard the story of Christ
-feeding the multitude with the five loaves and two fishes. He was very
-fond of Bible stories, this little boy, and liked to apply them to
-himself and those about him.
-
-“Tell me about that, Frankie, while Daphne goes to the house for some
-biscuits for you,” said the Colonel; and Frankie repeated in a droll,
-but still sweet and simple way, the story of the grand miracle.
-
-“But how was it that there was enough for so many people when there was
-so little food, Frankie?” asked Mr. Powers, wishing to hear what the
-child would say.
-
-The little fellow looked thoughtful for a moment, and stood rubbing
-up his hair with his hand; but he was not to be conquered even by
-a question hard as this, and presently, seeing a way out of his
-difficulty, his face lighted up as he exclaimed,--
-
-“Betause our Lord did not dive ’em dood appetites. You ought to know
-dat yousef, sir;” and, with this, he ran away to meet Daphne, whom he
-saw coming with his wished-for biscuits.
-
-
-
-
-XIII.
-
-_LITTLE ACTS OF KINDNESS; LITTLE DEEDS OF LOVE._
-
-
-Aunt May’s invitation to come every day and play with Maggie and Bessie
-was never once lost sight of by Belle, who was only too glad to accept
-it, and be with her beloved little playmates as much as possible.
-
-It was surprising to see how much Belle had improved during these
-months she had been so much with Maggie and Bessie: no, not surprising
-either to any one who knew how much a good example can do; at least
-when it shines before eyes which are willing and ready to profit by its
-light.
-
-And this was so with dear little Belle. She was not naturally an
-obstinate or selfish child; and her faults had come chiefly from
-the over-indulgence of her father and Daphne, who seldom or never
-contradicted her, but allowed her to think that she must always have
-her own way. She had never been taught the duty and pleasure of
-yielding to others, until she was thrown so constantly with our little
-girls; and then the lesson came to her almost without words. She could
-not have better teaching than she found in the grave surprise in
-Bessie’s sweet eyes when she worried her father, and fretted herself
-for some forbidden pleasure, or when she was wilful and imperious with
-her devoted old nurse; or in her gentle, “You wouldn’t tease your
-father when you’re his little comfort: would you, Belle?” She could not
-but learn ready obedience, generosity, and thoughtfulness for others,
-when she saw them put in daily practice even by Maggie, who had so much
-natural heedlessness to struggle with; and, almost without knowing
-it, she strove to copy her little friends, and to put away the old
-self-will and impatience.
-
-“Why! how obedient and good my little daughter is growing,” said her
-father, one day, surprised at her ready submission when he was obliged
-to refuse her some pleasure she had begged for.
-
-“’Cause Bessie says mamma and Jesus will be glad when I’m good,” Belle
-answered, laying her cheek against her father’s; “and she said that was
-the best way to make you happy too, papa. She says when we love um we
-try to please um. Isn’t that true, papa?”
-
-“Very true, my darling. Bessie is a dear little girl, and I am glad
-that you remember when she tells you what is right.”
-
-“She _does_ it more than she _tells_ it, papa: that’s why I ’member so
-much. It makes me feel ’shamed when Maggie and Bessie see I am naughty.”
-
-“I won’t go to Aunt May’s this morning, papa,” she said another day
-when her father told her to go and be made ready.
-
-“What! stay away from your dear Maggie and Bessie?” said Mr. Powers.
-“How is that?”
-
-“Daphne is sick, papa: she has such a hegget”--Belle meant
-headache--“she could hardly dress me this morning, and had to lie right
-down. If she has to get up again, I’m afraid she will be more worse, so
-I will stay home to-day.”
-
-But Belle’s voice shook as she proposed this, for it was a great
-sacrifice for her. Six months since she would not have thought of
-denying herself any thing for the sake of her old nurse, and her father
-was both pleased and touched.
-
-“Then papa’s unaccustomed fingers will see what they can do,” he said,
-unwilling that his little girl should lose her day’s pleasure; and, if
-Belle were not quite as neatly dressed as usual, no fault was found,
-and “Aunt Margaret” soon remedied all that was wrong.
-
-But another bit of self-denial came in Belle’s way that day, and that
-she carried out.
-
-Coming in with two or three bunches of fine hot-house grapes,--the
-first of the season,--in his hand, Colonel Rush found the children on
-the piazza, playing “party” with their dolls’ teacups and saucers.
-Two other little girls, the children of a neighbor, were playing with
-them. He stopped and gave Maggie a bunch to divide amongst them. They
-were greatly pleased with this little treat; but Maggie and Bessie
-were rather surprised to see Belle put hers aside on one of the doll’s
-plates, as if she did not intend to eat, or even play with them.
-
-“Are you not going to play with yours?” asked Maggie, rather
-reproachfully.
-
-Belle colored a little, and said with some hesitation,--
-
-“I wanted to save them.”
-
-Belle was not like some children who would rather enjoy a nice thing by
-themselves, and the others were surprised.
-
-Now Belle would have been ready enough to tell Maggie and Bessie why
-she wanted to keep the grapes, but she did not care to do so before the
-young visitors; lest as she afterwards said, they should think she was
-“proud of herself for doing it.”
-
-“She thinks we’ll give her some of ours, and then she’ll eat up her own
-afterwards,” said Minnie Barlow, one of the little guests.
-
-“I don’t either,” said Belle, flushing angrily: “I wouldn’t eat one of
-your old grapes, not if you begged and begged me to.”
-
-“No,” said Bessie, putting her arm about Belle’s neck: “Belle never
-does greedy things. I know she has a very excellent reason if she don’t
-eat them. Are you sick, Belle?”
-
-“No,” said Belle; and then she whispered in Bessie’s ear, “but poor
-Daphne is sick, and I am going to keep my grapes for her. She likes
-them very much.”
-
-“And I’ll give you mine for her too,” said Bessie, “yours make only a
-few for her when she is sick.” Then she said aloud: “I’m going to keep
-my grapes too; and Maggie, I think you’d keep yours, if you knew the
-circumstance.”
-
-“Then I will,” said Maggie; and turning to the little strangers she
-added, “Bessie knows what’s inside of my mind most as well as I do
-myself; so if she tells me I would do a thing, I just know I would.”
-
-So Maggie, too, put by her share of the grapes, till the company had
-gone, and Belle felt free to tell what she wanted to do with them; when
-she agreed that Bessie was right, and she was quite ready to save her
-grapes for such a “circumstance.” It was but a small act of self-denial
-for these little girls to make out of their abundance; but who can tell
-the pleasure the gift gave to old Daphne. And verily Belle had her
-reward.
-
-“Now Heaven bress my child,” said the old woman, when Belle offered
-the grapes, and told that she and her young friends had kept them from
-their play: “if she ain’t growin’ jes like her dear mamma, who was
-allus thinkin’ for oders.”
-
-Nothing could have pleased Belle more than to be told she was like her
-dear mother; but she said,--
-
-“I didn’t used to think for ofers much, Daphne; not till I saw Bessie
-do it, and Maggie too. They taught me.”
-
-“Never min’ who taught ye, so long as you’re willin’ to learn,” said
-Daphne. “But I say Heaven bress them dear little girls too, as I knows
-it will.”
-
-Pleased as Daphne was, she would have been better satisfied if her
-little mistress had taken back her gift for her own use; but Belle
-insisted that she should eat the grapes herself, and indeed climbed on
-her lap and stuffed them one after the other into her mouth, refusing
-to taste one herself.
-
-“What is that, Uncle Horace?” asked Maggie, one afternoon when she and
-Bessie were out driving on the Avenue with Colonel Rush, Aunt Bessie,
-and the boys.
-
-The object of her interest was certainly of a nature to excite
-curiosity. It was a round building of stone, supported by eight
-pillars, with open arches between. In the wall, above the pillars, were
-three narrow loop-holes or openings. It could scarcely have been told,
-however, that it was built of stone; for pillars and round walls were
-alike covered with beautiful green vines, just now in all their summer
-glory. It stood in the centre of a small park or common, where children
-and nurses were playing and wandering about.
-
-“That,” said Colonel Rush, “is the old stone mill.”
-
-“I don’t think it looks much like a mill,” said Bessie: “it don’t have
-any things to go round.”
-
-“Probably it had things to go round, as you call them, once upon a
-time,” said the Colonel.
-
-“I thought it was a tower built by the early settlers to defend
-themselves from the Indians,” said Harry. “Willie Thorn told me so.”
-
-“Many people think so,” said the Colonel, “and some still believe that
-it was built by the Danes, hundreds of years ago.”
-
-“Oh!” said Fred, “this is the tower Longfellow wrote about in his
-‘Skeleton in Armor,’ isn’t it, sir?”
-
-“The very same,” said the Colonel; “but, I believe, Fred, that it has
-been pretty well proved, from old papers, that it had no such romantic
-beginning, but was really and truly a windmill.”
-
-“Tell me about the skeleton, Fred,” said Maggie.
-
-So Fred told how a skeleton in armor, having been found in a place
-called Fall River, some miles from Newport, the poet, Longfellow, had
-written a ballad about it; telling how a viking, or Norwegian sailor of
-the olden time, had fallen in love with the daughter of a prince, who
-refused to give his child to the roving sailor; but they had run away
-together, and crossing the sea had come to this spot, where the viking
-had built this tower for his wife to live in.
-
- “Here for my lady’s bower
- Built I the lofty tower,
- Which to this very hour
- Stands looking seaward,”
-
-chanted Fred, stretching out his hand with a magnificent air towards
-the old tower.
-
-“That’s nice,” said Maggie, with a satisfied nod of her curly head. “I
-shall just believe that. It’s a great deal nicer than to think it was
-just a common old windmill for grinding up corn.”
-
-“I shan’t,” said matter-of-fact Bessie, “not when Uncle Horace says
-it’s not true.”
-
-“I don’t see that any one can be very _sure_ what it was,” said Maggie,
-determined to have faith in the most romantic story, “and I shall make
-up my mind it was the lady’s bower. But what about the skeleton, Fred?”
-
-“Oh! Mr. Longfellow goes on to say how the lady died, and her husband
-could not bear to live without her; so he went out into the woods and
-killed himself, and the skeleton in armor which was really found is
-supposed to be his.”
-
-“He oughtn’t to kill hisse’f. He ought to wait till Dod killed him,”
-said Frankie, who had been listening with great interest to the story.
-“He could play with all these nice chillen, if he’d ’haved hisself.”
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie, who had received the story with as much displeasure
-as she had done that of the “Chief’s Head,” last summer, at Chalecoo,
-“if God chooses people to stay here, they ought to do it, even if they
-are having very hard times.”
-
-“So they ought, Bess,” said Fred; “but I guess those old vikings did
-not care much about playing with children. They were very brave, daring
-fellows.”
-
-“People can be brave and like children,” said Bessie, slipping her
-little hand into that of her own hero. “Uncle Horace likes children and
-plays with them, and no one could be braver than he is. And besides,
-Fred, if people have very good courage, I should think they would be
-brave to bear the trouble God sends them, and not go kill themselves
-out of it.”
-
-“Well reasoned, little one,” said the Colonel, bending his tall head
-to kiss her; “that man is certainly a coward who cannot bear what God
-sends to him, but takes the life his Maker has given.”
-
-“And I shall think it is a windmill,” said Bessie, quite as resolved to
-stick to facts as Maggie was to believe the poet’s story.
-
-“And I shall think it the viking’s tower, and write a story-book about
-it when I’m grown up,” said Maggie. “I’ll put it down for a subject.”
-
-If Maggie lives to write a book on each “subject” she has put down for
-that purpose, she will be very old indeed.
-
-Bessie said no more; for if she and Maggie differed on something which
-was not important, she never argued about it, and this was probably one
-reason why they never quarrelled; for each was content to let the other
-be of her own way of thinking, so long as it did no harm. If we could
-all learn that lesson it would save many hard words and thoughts, and
-the trouble which arises from such.
-
-They all now went back to the carriage, which they had left for a
-closer view of the old mill, and drove on to what is called the Point,
-and around the north-western side of the island, from which road they
-gained a beautiful view of the harbor and bay.
-
-“What is that over there, Uncle Horace?” asked Fred, “it looks like an
-old fort.”
-
-“Just what it is, my boy,” replied Colonel Rush. “That point is
-called the ‘Dumpling Rocks,’ and that ruin is old Fort Lewis, or Fort
-Dumpling.”
-
-“What a funny name,” said Maggie.
-
-They now crossed the long stone causeway which leads to Coaster’s
-Harbor Island; and, as they went over this, the children were all
-greatly delighted with the number of pretty little birds which went
-whirling round them on every side, darting almost under the horses’
-feet, and in their very faces; passing round and round, above and
-beneath the carriage. They were sand-martins, the Colonel said, and
-being disturbed by the rolling of the wheels, were probably trying to
-draw attention from their nests, which were built in the crevices of
-the stones that formed the causeway.
-
-On this island stood the poor-house which they had come to visit; and
-here another carriage, containing several of the elders of the party,
-had arrived before them. Papa was there and took the little girls out
-of the carriage when it stopped.
-
-“What a nice place for the poor people to be in, when they don’t have
-any house of their own!” said Bessie: “I s’pose they’re very grateful
-for it.”
-
-“Well, I don’t know about that,” said Maggie. “I find poor people in
-this world are not always grateful when they ought to be. Don’t you
-remember Mrs. Bent, Bessie?”
-
-“Yes, I do,” said Bessie, in a tone which told that Mrs. Bent’s
-ingratitude, as she and Maggie thought it, was not to be easily
-forgotten. Indeed, the way in which Mrs. Bent had received the gift
-of the hospital-bed for her lame boy, had left a very disagreeable
-impression on the minds of our two little girls.
-
-“But I s’pose rich people are not always so grateful as they ought to
-be, either,” added Bessie.
-
-“No,” said Maggie, thoughtfully: “maybe some are not, but I think _we_
-are, generally. I think I feel my blessings, Bessie,--I think I do,
-’specially being in Newport.”
-
-“There can be no doubt about that,” said Uncle Ruthven, who had
-overheard this short conversation, to his wife: “if ever there was a
-grateful, contented, little heart it is that of our sunny Maggie.”
-
-Certainly a more comfortable home, or one more beautifully situated,
-could scarcely have been found for those who could furnish none for
-themselves. The grown people, as well as the children, were greatly
-pleased with the order, neatness, and quiet of the whole place. This
-visit having been planned, the ladies had come provided with little
-parcels of tea, fruit, and other small delicacies, as a treat for some
-of the sick and old people. There were a few toys and books also for
-such of the children as had behaved well, and these things Maggie and
-Bessie were allowed to present.
-
-“I b’lieve I’ll change my mind about poor people being grateful,” said
-Maggie, when she had witnessed the pleasure these trifles gave; “and
-I’m glad I can, for an ungrateful person is ‘sharper than a serpent’s
-tooth,’ ’specially if it’s an old woman.”
-
-Bessie looked at her sister in great admiration, as she always did when
-Maggie made any of these fine speeches; but Harry turned away lest she
-should see him laughing. For as Maggie was so careful of other people’s
-feelings, Harry felt bound not to trouble her in that way when he could
-avoid it.
-
-“The band plays at Fort Adams to-morrow afternoon,” said the Colonel,
-as they drove homeward: “who will be for a drive over there?”
-
-There was no want of assenting voices; and, the next afternoon, the
-whole family went over to the fort,--some driving, some on horseback,
-Mr. Powers and Belle being of the party this time.
-
-Maggie and Bessie had never in their lives been inside of a fort,
-so that this was quite an event to them. Harry and Fred had visited
-several; but they were all much smaller than Fort Adams, which indeed
-is the second in size in the country, only Fortress Monroe being
-larger. Passing around the road, which runs between the water and the
-immense earthworks which rise above it, they entered the fort beneath
-a stone arch, and over a stone pavement on which the horses’ feet rang
-with a loud clatter. Just without this gateway, was the guard-house,
-a low stone building, with grated door and loop-holes, where drunken
-soldiers, and those who have broken the rules, are confined. Two or
-three sullen-looking men were peeping through the iron bars of the
-door, for whom Bessie’s tender little heart was much moved; but Maggie
-was afraid of them, and turned her face away, though they could not
-possibly have hurt her, and probably had no will to do so.
-
-Within the fort, the children were much astonished at the number
-of enormous cannon, and at the great black balls and shells piled
-together in pyramids upon the green in the centre, and beneath the
-casemates. The side of the fort next the water was entirely taken up
-with these warlike-looking arrangements; while on the inner side were
-the officers’ quarters, or little houses where they lived, and the
-soldiers’ barracks and mess-rooms. All was neat, clean, and orderly;
-and, in spite of the purpose for which it was intended, the whole
-place had a bright, cheerful look. The band were playing delightful
-music on the green, and the drive was filled with gay equipages. The
-handsome carriages, fine horses, and beautifully dressed ladies and
-children, made it a pretty and lively scene, and it was all so new to
-the children, that each moment some exclamation of pleasure or wonder
-escaped them. Some of the officers were sauntering about, talking to
-their acquaintances; and the general who commanded the fort, being
-a friend of Colonel Rush, came and asked the ladies and children to
-alight from the carriages, and he would show them over the works. They
-were glad to accept his invitation, and the general took them over the
-fort, and explained all that was interesting.
-
-But in spite of the many new and curious things she saw, in spite of
-the lovely music, and the merry crowd, Bessie’s mind was full of the
-“poor, naughty soldiers in the prison;” and when her older friends were
-resting in the general’s quarters, while she with the other children
-stayed without and watched the gay scene, she went quietly to Belle and
-said,--
-
-“Belle, dear, don’t you feel rather bad about those soldiers shut up in
-that prison place?”
-
-“Not when I don’t see ’em,” answered Belle. “I guess they were pretty
-naughty to be put in there.”
-
-“May be so,” said Bessie; “but wouldn’t you like to be kind to them?”
-
-“No,” said Belle. “I b’lieve not. One of them looked so cross.”
-
-“Maybe it makes him cross to be shut up there when the music is
-playing, and every thing is so nice out here,” said Bessie. “Let’s go
-and ask them if they will promise to be good if they are let out.”
-
-“We can’t let them out,” said Belle.
-
-“No; but we’ll tell some one they have repented and ask for them to
-be let out. You know that soldier with a gun, that was walking up and
-down there? well, I guess he’s a kind of soldier-policeman and we’ll
-ask him. The prison is just outside of that gate-hole,” said Bessie,
-pointing to the archway by which the fort was entered; “and we will be
-back in a moment.”
-
-“Shall we ask Maggie to go?” said Belle.
-
-“No, Maggie was so frightened at them. She is over there with Harry,
-looking at those ugly black balls; so we won’t ’sturb her, but just go
-by ourselves.”
-
-So, hand in hand, the two little things ran out under the archway,
-and over to the guard-house beyond. Not unnoticed, however; for
-though they were not seen by their own friends, they were by some
-acquaintances, who were driving past at the moment, and who, fearing
-that they might be run over by the constantly passing carriages, or
-fall into some other mischief, told Colonel Rush’s servants to see
-after the children. One of the men called his master, and the Colonel
-speedily followed the little runaways.
-
-They made for the grated door, with what purpose Bessie hardly knew
-herself, save that there was kindness in her heart for the poor
-prisoners; but, as they reached it, the guard or “soldier-policeman,”
-as Bessie called him, stopped them by crossing his musket in their way.
-
-Belle was frightened,--partly by this, partly by the two or three
-astonished faces that peeped at them through the bars,--and would have
-drawn back, but Bessie stood her ground, and, looking up at the guard
-with her innocent, serious eyes, said,--
-
-“We only want to speak to the poor shut-up soldiers.”
-
-The man shook his head.
-
-“It’s against the rules, miss,” he said.
-
-“But I’m not in rules,” said Bessie. “I don’t live here you know, and I
-think I might do it. If you were in prison you would like some one to
-coax you to be good: wouldn’t you?”
-
-The soldier looked at her in astonished silence; but his gun still
-barred the way.
-
-“You’ll let them out, won’t you?” she went on with pleading voice and
-eyes: “you’ll let them out so they can come in there where there is
-such sweet music, and it is all nice and bright? I think they are sorry
-now.”
-
-“Yes,” said Belle: “see that poor fellow sitting on the floor with his
-head down. I’m sure he is sorry, and will be good, and the ofers will
-too.”
-
-While the little girls were speaking, two more soldiers had come round
-from the other side of the guard-house. One of them was the corporal;
-and, hearing what the children said, he answered for the sentry.
-
-“He can’t let them out, little ladies,” he said: “if he did he’d be put
-there himself.”
-
-As he finished speaking, Colonel Rush stood behind the children. The
-corporal and the soldiers, even the men behind the grating, saluted the
-brave English officer, whom they knew by sight, and whom they greatly
-admired; for the story of his daring and courage were known to the
-garrison. But the third man, who was hardly more than a lad, still sat
-with his arms folded, and his head sunk upon his breast.
-
-“My dear children,” said the Colonel, “this is no place for you. What
-brought you here?”
-
-“Oh! Uncle Horace,” said Bessie, seizing upon his hand; “won’t you ask
-these policemen-soldiers to let out those poor prisoners? We feel so
-badly about them.”
-
-“My darling,” answered the Colonel, “they cannot let out these men.
-They are under arrest, and shut up here because they have done wrong,
-and the guard are here to keep them from getting out.”
-
-“But see that poor soldier sitting down there,” said Bessie: “he looks
-so sorry. Maybe, he’s thinking of somebody of his, far away, who will
-hear he has been in prison, and feel badly about it.”
-
-In her earnestness, she was using every argument she could think of;
-but she had innocently touched almost the only soft spot in the man’s
-heart. If he was not at the moment thinking of “somebody of his”
-who was far away, her words brought the thought of that one to his
-mind,--that “somebody,” his poor young sister, who would be grieved at
-his disgrace, hurt at his obstinate wrong-doing, if it ever came to her
-ears.
-
-He raised his head, and gave a quick glance at the innocent little
-pleader; and a softened look came over the hard, sullen face.
-
-“He’s not sorry, but just sullen, little lady,” said the corporal:
-“that fellow has been in the guard-house four times in the last week,
-for insubordination, and they’ll have to try some harder measures to
-take it out of him, I’m thinking. Your pity is only wasted.”
-
-“Oh, no!” said Bessie; “for you know Jesus said we must be sorry with
-people when they are in trouble, and happy with them when they are
-glad. I’m _very_ sorry for him and the other men too. Who can let them
-out, Uncle Horace?”
-
-“Only their officers, Bessie; and I fear they must stay here now till
-their time is up: but we will hope they will do better in future,
-and not deserve punishment again. Come away now: your mother will be
-anxious.”
-
-Bessie obeyed; but both she and Belle cast backward pitying looks at
-the poor prisoners. The man they had noticed most, still sat silent;
-but the other two, as well as the soldiers without, talked with
-pleasure and amusement of their pretty ways and innocent simplicity.
-
-But the man who had seemed to pay little or no regard to their words
-was the one who remembered them the longest, and to whom they brought
-the most good. He had been hard, obstinate, and disobedient, and, as
-the corporal said, had been punished four times during the last week.
-Punishment and persuasion had alike proved useless in bringing him to
-do better; but he was softened now. He could not resist that sweet
-little face, the pitying eyes and gentle tones that asked for his
-release. He thought of them, and of that “somebody of his,” all that
-night as he lay upon the hard floor of the guard-house; and, when he
-was set free in the morning, went to his commanding officer whom he
-had disobeyed and insulted; asked forgiveness, and promised that he
-would try not to offend again. And he kept his word, striving hard
-with himself for he always felt, from this time, as if there were two
-“somebodies” who would be grieved to hear of his bad behavior and
-disgrace.
-
-“Who could let them out, Uncle Horace?” repeated Bessie as the Colonel
-led her and Belle away.
-
-“Only the officer who ordered them to be shut up, dear,” said the
-Colonel.
-
-“And couldn’t we ask him?” said Bessie.
-
-“Not very well, dear: the rules in the army must be strictly kept;
-and if these men were let out without good reason, it would be a bad
-example for the other soldiers, who might think they would not be
-punished if they were disobedient.”
-
-“But what had that man on the floor been doing?” asked Belle.
-
-“I do not know, dear. Misbehaving in some way which deserved
-punishment.”
-
-“The soldier-policeman said he had been shut up four times
-for--for--in--su--such a long word I can’t remember it, Uncle Horace,
-and I didn’t know what it meant,” said Bessie.
-
-“Insubordination?” said the Colonel.
-
-“Yes, sir: what does it mean?”
-
-“Disobeying orders, or being impertinent, and so forth,” said the
-Colonel.
-
-“And we’d better not ask the General to let them come out of that dark
-house?” said Belle.
-
-“No, I think not,” said the Colonel. “They would not have been shut up
-if it had not been necessary, and we had better let the matter rest. We
-can do no good by interfering.”
-
-So thought the Colonel, believing and knowing that discipline must
-be sternly kept up; knowing nothing the while of the good which had
-already been done,--of the tiny seed unconsciously dropped upon the
-hard and stony ground of an obstinate heart, but which had brought
-“forth fruit meet for repentance.”
-
-This was by no means Bessie’s last visit to Fort Adams; but she never
-saw the prisoner soldiers again, at least she did not recognize them;
-but they saw and knew her, the innocent little fairy, so she seemed to
-these rough men, who had stood outside the prison bars, pleading so
-pityingly for their release.
-
-
-
-
-XIV.
-
-_WATER-LILIES._
-
-
-One great object of delight and interest to the children was the
-immense number of robins around Newport. These pretty, saucy, little
-birds were constantly to be seen hopping about the soft, velvety
-lawns for which this place is famous; picking up whatever crumbs fell
-in their way, or such unwary worms and caterpillars as had ventured
-forth for air and exercise; swinging on the branches of the trees, or
-perched with an independent, look-at-me sort of an air, upon the fences
-and railings; shaking down showers of diamond dew-drops from slender
-sprays, in the early morning; charming all ears with their sweet notes;
-welcome guests whenever and wherever they came.
-
-The first thing done by the children after breakfast, was each morning
-to beg for crumbs and bits of bread to feed the robins, who would come
-hopping close to the piazza to receive the welcome gift. Even Baby
-Annie must throw out her share, and would hold up her tiny little
-finger to keep off any one who, she feared, would disturb the birds,
-saying,--
-
-“Ss, ss, badie fy,” which meant, “Hush, hush, birdie fly.”
-
-Then there was the bathing in the sea, now as formerly, such a source
-of pleasure to Bessie. Maggie, too, enjoyed it, for she had lost all
-fear of the waves while she was at Quam Beach. It afforded endless
-amusement, too, to Maggie, to see the droll figures presented by the
-bathers when they were dressed for their dip in the sea. Her merry,
-ringing laugh provoked smiles not only from lookers-on, but from the
-very wearers themselves; for there was no rudeness or unkindness in
-that laugh, and she was quite as much diverted at her own appearance as
-she was at that of others.
-
-From nine to twelve, the beach was generally crowded with bathers; some
-coming from the water, others going from the line of bathing-houses
-towards it; others still, in every color and style of dress, bobbing up
-and down in the waves. There were carriages driving back and forth over
-the yielding sand; many walkers, too,--people who came only to look at
-the bathers, or who were moving about after their own bath. The beach
-was a merry, lively place, where there was never a lack of “something
-to do;” for the children always brought their little pails and shovels
-with them, and when their frolic in the water was over, they would
-dig in the sand, or pick up small shells. Sometimes they would watch
-the clam-fishers turning over the sea-weed with their long-pronged
-instruments, or sail bits of wood and light scallop-shells down the
-pretty, shallow stream of fresh water; which, running from the pond
-beyond, and crossing the beach near its upper end, mingles its pure
-waters with the salt waves of the sea.
-
-There was a story connected with this beach, told by Mr. Bradford to
-his children,--a story strange and romantic enough to satisfy even
-Maggie’s love of the marvellous, yet perfectly true.
-
-One fine, bright morning, more than a hundred years ago, a vessel
-was seen coming down directly towards the beach, where no vessel had
-ever been known to venture before. Her sails were all set, her colors
-flying; and the alarmed spectators watched her with the most painful
-interest, expecting each instant to see her dashed to pieces upon the
-rocks. But no: on she came safely; past craggy points and over hidden
-reefs, and struck her keel into the soft sand of the beach. No person
-was seen on board; and, when the anxious townspeople reached her decks,
-the only living creature there was a dog. A cat was found in the cabin,
-where coffee was boiling, and other preparations made for breakfast;
-but not a sailor was to be seen. What became of her crew was never
-known: but it was supposed, that, finding themselves too near the
-rocks, they took to the life-boat, which was missing, and were lost;
-while the vessel came safely to land, without hand or eye to guide her.
-
-Beyond this beach, a most lovely drive, with the ocean in view all the
-way, leads to Purgatory and Paradise. The former is a great gulf or
-chasm in the solid rock of the point or bluff which separates the first
-from the second beach; a dark, gloomy-looking place, from which Maggie,
-Bessie, and Belle drew back in alarm, without the least desire to look
-down. Neither did they like to hear the stones which the boys threw
-into the cleft, and which went bounding with a dull sound, from side to
-side, till they plunged sullenly into the dark waters below.
-
-Reckless Fred ventured too near the edge, where a slip upon the short
-grass, or a stray pebble would have sent him down into the dark
-abyss. The Colonel drew him back with no gentle hand, and a sharp
-reprimand, all of which made the little girls still more ready to seek
-a pleasanter spot.
-
-“For,” said Maggie, in a tone of great wisdom, “I don’t think it is
-at all prudent to come into places where one can be killed with such
-felicity.”
-
-Maggie meant facility.
-
-Paradise, as might be supposed, proved much more attractive. This is
-a succession of lovely groves and mossy glades lying below and on the
-sides of a rocky hill, and as great a contrast as can be imagined to
-its neighbor, Purgatory.
-
-But the place which the children loved the best, and where they spent
-the most of their time, was the lovely little beach lying just below
-the bluff on which stood Colonel Rush’s house. Here, too, they often
-bathed, instead of driving over to the larger and more frequented
-beach; and here they might be found at almost every hour of the day.
-Here Bessie would sit, forgetting her play, as she watched the blue
-billows with their crests of white foam, rolling up one after the other
-on the smooth sands, and listening to the chiming sound of the waves,
-the grand music of old ocean sounding ceaselessly, and speaking to all
-hearts, that will hear, of the power and goodness of the Almighty hand
-which holds it in its place.
-
-Even in bad weather, when she could not go out, the sea afforded
-endless pleasure to Bessie; for she could sit at the window watching
-it, as the waves, lashed into fury by the wind, rushed foaming and
-dashing over the rocks and reefs, and sometimes even flung their spray
-above the edge of the cliff on which the house stood.
-
-And sitting here one day, looking out from her perch over the stormy
-waters, the leaping waves, and foam-covered rocks, she was the first to
-observe, and call all the family to see a spectacle which they had long
-desired to witness.
-
-This was the famous Spouting Rock in full play.
-
-At a little distance from Colonel Rush’s house was a ledge of rocks,
-the under side of which has been worn into deep caverns by the
-constant fretting of the waves. One of them has an open shaft, or
-sort of natural chimney, which ends on the surface of the rock. In
-stormy weather, when the wind has blown for some time in a particular
-direction, the sea rushes with great power into these caverns, and
-forces itself up through the spout or chimney, often to a great height.
-But this does not happen very often, and one may spend months, perhaps
-years, at Newport, without ever seeing it.
-
-All of Mr. Bradford’s children, and indeed the grown people of the
-party as well, had been very anxious to see this singular sight; and
-when Bessie, sitting by the window, and looking over towards these
-rocks, saw a jet of water forcing itself above them, she knew at once
-what it was, and called out eagerly,--
-
-“Oh, the horn is horning! it is really horning; come and see,
-everybody.”
-
-The horn spouted all that day, and the children never tired of
-looking at it; and Frankie, when he was asked if he knew what it was,
-answered,--
-
-“I dess it is Dod’s fountain,” than which no answer could have been
-truer.
-
-Not very far from Colonel Rush’s house, lay a calm, lovely lake, called
-Lily Pond, separated from the ocean only by a narrow belt of land, and
-making a striking contrast to the rolling billows of the ocean so near.
-
-As may be supposed, the lake is named from the number of water-lilies
-with which it is covered during the season when these exquisite flowers
-are in bloom. They fill the air with their delicious fragrance; and
-the delicate, pearly, white blossoms are seen by all the passers-by,
-resting among their green leaves on the surface of the water.
-
-Bessie’s mother, and Bessie herself, were both extremely fond of these
-lovely flowers; and when Harry came in one day with two which he had
-fished up from their watery bed with some trouble to himself, great was
-the rejoicing over them.
-
-The next afternoon, Maggie and Bessie were out driving with Mrs. Rush
-and Aunt Bessie, when they came upon a boy and girl, perched upon a
-fence at the side of the road, and having a basket half-filled with
-water-lilies.
-
-“Water-lilies! oh, water-lilies!” cried Bessie; “where did they gather
-so many I wonder. Could we find some for dear mamma, do you think, Aunt
-May?”
-
-“I think those children have them for sale: we can buy some from them,”
-said Mrs. Rush; and she ordered the coachman to stop.
-
-“But we have left all our money at home,” said Maggie, in a tone of
-regret.
-
-“Well, I will buy them, and you may give them to mamma,” said Mrs. Rush.
-
-“But that is not at all the same, Aunt May,” said Bessie: “it would
-only be pretend our present.”
-
-“Suppose I lend you the money. You may give it back to me if you like,
-as soon as you go home.”
-
-So Maggie and Bessie each bought a bunch of water-lilies from the boy
-and girl, who had come down from the fence and now stood beside the
-carriage, and Aunt May purchased the rest, leaving the basket empty.
-
-The girl tossed her basket above her head, and, after thanking the
-ladies, bounded across the road and over the fence on the other side,
-making for Lily Pond as if she were after a fresh supply. The boy
-followed more slowly.
-
-“I wonder why they sell lilies,” said Maggie: “they do not look so very
-poor. At least they’re not ragged and dirty, though the girl has a
-pretty ugly frock.”
-
-“If I was poor and had to make some money, I would choose to be a
-water-lily girl,” said Bessie; “and I would try to be so polite, and
-ask so nicely, that people would like to buy of me.”
-
-“I do not think people would be very apt to refuse you, my lily girl,”
-said Aunt Bessie, with a loving look at the sweet little face before
-her, which was bent over the lovely white blossoms, not purer than
-itself.
-
-“I would like to paddle in and pick the lilies,” said Maggie; “but I
-would not like to sit on top of a fence, waiting for people to come and
-buy my flowers: it must be so stupid.”
-
-“The boy looks as if he were better able to do that than to pick the
-lilies,” said Mrs. Rush. “He has an interesting, thoughtful face, but
-looks delicate.”
-
-“My anxiety is all upsidedown about him,” said Maggie. “Maybe he
-wants money to pay a doctor. Bessie, when we go out to walk to-morrow
-morning, let’s ask nurse to come this way, and see if we can find these
-children. Maybe we could help them a little. We must have a whole lot
-of charity money, for you know we have not had much use for it on our
-travels.”
-
-Accordingly, the next morning the children waited for Belle; and,
-as soon as she came, the whole flock started with Mammy and Jane on
-the road towards Lily Pond, the little girls having taken care to be
-provided with money. They found the boy and girl, not sitting on top of
-the fence this time, but near the lake; the boy lying flat upon a rock
-with a book in his hand, the girl sitting beside him, busy shelling
-pease.
-
-They looked up as our party drew near, and the girl said with a pleased
-look,--
-
-“Oh! it’s the little girls who bought all the lilies yesterday.”
-
-“Yes, it is us,” said Maggie. “Have you more to sell us to-day? We
-meant to buy a whole lot, and have brought a basket in baby’s wagon.”
-
-“We haven’t picked any to-day,” said the boy: “we don’t generally
-gather them till later, when it’s time for the gentle-folks to come
-riding this way; but we can get some for you right away. In a few days,
-when they’re more plenty, there’ll be lots of fellows up here after
-them; but they mostly take them down to the beach and around the town
-to sell.”
-
-“We have a little pond of our own, where there are a few,” said the
-girl; “but we get most off of this one.”
-
-“Where do you live?” asked Belle.
-
-“Over yonder,” said the girl, pointing to a small farm-house standing
-among its out-buildings on the other side of the road. “Now, Johnny,
-I’m ready.”
-
-Johnny went a few steps off, where the bushes grew thickly, and drew
-from among them two long, hooked sticks. One of these he gave to
-the girl, and kept the other in his own hand. While they had been
-talking, the girl had pulled off her shoes and stockings; and now, to
-the surprise of all the children, she waded into the water, while her
-brother stayed upon the rock, without offering to follow.
-
-Sallie, so he called her, stepped out till the water touched her knees;
-and having gathered such lilies as she could reach with her hand, drew
-others towards her with the hooked stick. The long, slender stems
-yielded easily; and, as she plucked one after another, she tossed them
-towards her brother, who drew them in with his own stick.
-
-How lovely and delicious they were, just fresh from their watery
-bed, with the drops still glittering like diamonds on the rich,
-creamy-white petals! how they filled the whole air with their fragrance!
-
-“I think if I could carry flowers to heaven, I would like to take
-these,” whispered Bessie to Maggie and Belle, as all three hung
-delighted over their prize. “They look as if they were very large stars
-fallen down out of God’s sky, to tell us how sweet every thing is
-there.”
-
-“O Bessie, you darling!” said Maggie. “What a lovely idea! That’s good
-enough to put in a book. Bessie, do you know that is talking prose?”
-
-“What is prose?” asked Belle.
-
-“You know what rhyme is,” said Maggie.
-
-“Yes,” said Belle: “it means cat and hat, and mouse and house, and mean
-and queen.”
-
-“That’s right,” said Maggie. “Well, if you say a nice thing in rhyme,
-that’s poetry; but if you say it in unrhyme, then it’s prose.”
-
-“Oh!” said Belle, quite satisfied with Maggie’s explanation. “I wish I
-were as smart as you two. You write poetry, Maggie; and Bessie can talk
-prose: and I can’t do either.”
-
-“Never mind,” said Maggie, consolingly. “Maybe you’ll be able to some
-day.”
-
-“And you’re just good enough for us, any way,” said Bessie, with an
-affectionate kiss to her little friend; an example which was followed
-by Maggie.
-
-“Why don’t you go in the water, and let your sister stay out?” said
-Belle to Johnny, rather reprovingly.
-
-Johnny, who was a gentle-looking boy, colored a little, but answered
-quietly,--
-
-“They say I ought not to wet my feet, and I want to keep well very
-much.”
-
-“Yes,” said Sallie, who had just stepped out of the water, and was
-wringing out her dripping skirts: “it don’t hurt me to go in the water;
-but it’s not good for him.”
-
-“Are you sick?” asked Bessie.
-
-“No,” said Johnny, looking as if he thought the little girls were
-blaming him in their own minds for not taking the wetting himself, as
-indeed they were.
-
-“He’s not just sick,” said Sallie; “but he’s not just strong, and we’re
-bound he shall go to school this winter, at least for one quarter. He’s
-an awful fellow for his books and learning.”
-
-“Will one quarter make him too sick to go any more?” asked Bessie.
-
-“Oh! I didn’t mean that,” said Sallie, sitting down on the rock, and
-spreading out her wet feet and dress to dry in the sun; “but, you see,
-we’re not sure we’ll put by enough money even to pay for one quarter.
-Shall I tell you about it?” she added, seeing her little customers
-looked interested.
-
-“Yes,” said Bessie.
-
-“Well, as I said, Johnny’s such a fellow for book learning, and he’s
-smart too; and these two winters he’s tried hard for going to the
-Common School down in the town; but it’s a terrible long walk, and so
-cold; and both years he’s been taken down sick, and had to give it up;
-and the doctor told father he was not to try it again. But there’s a
-young man lives just round the turn of the road who is learning to be
-a minister, and he’s ready to teach a few boys if they pay him for it;
-and father said he couldn’t afford to pay a dollar this winter, for
-it’s been a bad year with him; but he said we might keep all we could
-make ourselves to pay for Johnny’s schooling; but I don’t know as we’re
-likely to put by even enough for one quarter. So that’s the reason, you
-see, why I go in the water. I’m hearty, but Johnny takes cold easy, and
-then he coughs.”
-
-“Yes, ‘one man’s meat is another man’s poison,’” said Maggie. “Well,
-you’re a good girl and a dutiful sister.”
-
-“We’ll buy water-lilies of you every day,” said Bessie, “so we can help
-along. But we don’t come this way every day,” she added, thoughtfully.
-
-“We could bring them to you, if you liked,” said Johnny. “We do take
-them every day to a lady down yonder,” and he pointed in the direction
-of the bluff on which Colonel Rush’s house stood, with several others.
-
-This was agreed upon; and the nurse, saying they must be moving
-homeward, as it was time to go to the beach and bathe, they said
-good-by to Johnny and Sallie.
-
-“I’ve a plan in my head,” said Maggie; “but then, I’ve learned
-experience by a very bad lesson, so I thought I’d better not mention it
-till I’ve advised with mamma.”
-
-Maggie’s bad lesson was this,--
-
-One day, just before they left home for the Southern trip, Maggie was
-standing on the front stoop, waiting for her mother and Bessie, with
-whom she was going out, when a poor-looking man spoke to her. He told
-a most pitiful story; and Maggie, full of sympathy, emptied her little
-purse into his hand. But this did not satisfy the beggar; and he asked
-“if the little lady had not an old coat to give a poor soldier.”
-
-“I’ll ask mamma,” said Maggie, and off she rushed upstairs, leaving the
-beggar-man standing on the stoop by the open hall-door.
-
-Mamma said she could not give old clothes away, unless she was sure the
-man was deserving: for she knew of many such who needed them; and told
-Maggie to go back at once and tell Patrick to shut the door, and she
-would see the man when she came down.
-
-But when Maggie reached the foot of the stairs, the beggar was gone. So
-far from waiting for the old coat, it was soon found that he had walked
-off with a new one of papa’s, which lay on the hall table.
-
-Poor Maggie was excessively mortified, and much distressed, not only
-at the loss of the coat, but at that of her little stock of spending
-money. Mamma made the last good to her; but told her she should not do
-so again if she acted without thought; and begged her to take counsel
-of some older person when she felt inclined to help those she did not
-know.
-
-So Maggie had “learned experience,” and since that time had been
-careful to ask advice before she allowed her sympathies to run too far
-with her.
-
-
-
-
-XV.
-
-“_OF SUCH IS THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN._”
-
-
-They all bathed on the little beach near home that morning; and, as
-soon as they had gone back to the house, Maggie called Bessie and
-Belle, and they went together to mamma’s room to unfold Maggie’s plan
-and ask her consent to it.
-
-What a pretty room that was! Mrs. Rush had taken a fancy to call it the
-“Lily Room,” and to furnish it accordingly. The carpet was green, and
-the furniture painted the same color, and ornamented with water-lilies
-wherever they could be put,--on the head and foot boards of the bed, on
-each drawer of the dressing bureaus, on the panels of the wardrobe and
-the backs of the chairs, in short, wherever there was room for them.
-Over the mantelpiece hung an oil-painting of the same lovely flowers;
-and now the room was filled with the natural blossoms brought in by the
-little girls that morning.
-
-Mamma lay upon the couch,--this was covered with chintz printed with
-water-lilies, too,--resting after her salt-water bath. Her long hair
-was spread over the cushions to dry; and Maggie and Bessie were busy at
-it in a moment: it was their great delight to comb it and thread their
-fingers through it; and dearly mamma loved to feel their little hands
-twisting it into all manner of fantastic braids and loops.
-
-Maggie told her story about the water-lily boy and girl, and then,
-saying that she thought there must be a good deal of “glove money” due
-the little box at home, asked her mother if she did not think it would
-be a “reasonable charity” to pay for Johnny’s schooling next winter.
-
-Bessie looked surprised at this; but Belle clapped her hands, saying,--
-
-“You’ll let me help too, won’t you?”
-
-“But,” said Mrs. Bradford, “I thought you were saving that money for
-another purpose.”
-
-“Oh, so we _were_,” said Maggie, biting her underlip; “if I didn’t
-forget it. What a child I am! always forgetting one thing in another.”
-
-“What is it?” asked Belle.
-
-“To buy a warm cloak and a pair of better _spetacles_ for good Mrs.
-Granby, who is always being kind to other people, and never thinks
-about herself,” said Bessie.
-
-“And I suppose it wouldn’t be fair to put by a person we’ve known
-for so long for people we’re hardly acquainted with, only through
-water-lilies,” said Maggie. “Oh! I wish, I wish, I wish I had the
-greatest lots of money that ever were seen, so I could give every one
-every thing they wanted.”
-
-Maggie was always wishing for lots of money; but it is only justice to
-her to say that it was generally for the benefit of others, and not for
-herself.
-
-“Did you promise Mrs. Granby?” asked Belle.
-
-“No, we did not promise, not with words,” said Bessie; “but then, we
-made up our minds to do it, and we wouldn’t like not to. I think it
-would seem a little like not being very true in our hearts to Mrs.
-Granby.”
-
-“Oh, dear!” said Maggie, “there are such lots of things one wants to
-do; but somehow, one can’t seem to do every thing.”
-
-“Mamma,” said Bessie, “don’t you think papa would like to help this
-boy? He has enough of money.”
-
-“My dear child,” said mamma, laughing: “you must not think there is
-no end to papa’s money. He has a good many people to help now, and he
-cannot do for every one, you know.”
-
-“Well, then,” said Maggie, “we’ll tell Uncle Ruthven and the Colonel,
-and see what they will do. I don’t mean we’ll ask them to help the lily
-boy; but we’ll just let them know about him, and then leave it to their
-own conscience.”
-
-“Uncle Ruthven has a good deal of conscience about poor people; and so
-has Uncle Horace too,” said Bessie.
-
-But somehow the children could not find an opportunity to tell their
-uncle and Colonel Rush about the “lily boy.” For the next few days
-there was a good deal of company coming and going, and they did not
-care to talk about it before strangers; then papa, Uncle Ruthven, and
-the Colonel went off yachting, and stayed a week.
-
-Meanwhile, Johnny and Sallie came to the house every morning, bringing
-their basket of lilies; and when the little girls had bought as many
-as they wanted for their daily gift to their mother, Mrs. Rush and the
-other ladies would purchase the remainder. So Maggie and Bessie knew
-that they were helping Johnny towards his heart’s desire in this way,
-even if they had devoted their “charity money” to another object.
-
-Early on the morning after the gentlemen had returned, the children had
-gone down to the sands, and were playing happily together, when Belle
-came on her daily visit. Belle considered herself almost as much at
-home in Mrs. Rush’s house as Maggie and Bessie did.
-
-“You live at the Ocean House, don’t you?” asked a little girl one day.
-
-“Oh, no!” said Belle; “I don’t live there. I only sleep there, and eat
-my breakfast there. I live at Aunt May’s, even when it rains, Maggie
-and Bessie and I can’t do wifout oneanofer.”
-
-She now came running swiftly over the beach towards Maggie and Bessie;
-and, as soon as she had kissed them for good-morning, said eagerly,--
-
-“O Maggie and Bessie! what do you fink? It is my birfday next week, and
-papa told me to choose what he should give me, and I can’t think of any
-thing I want. Do you know any thing I want?”
-
-“Well, no,” said Maggie. “I think you have about every thing a
-sensible child could want. I can’t remember a single thing; and that
-is rather a bad business not to have some thing you _want_ for your
-birthday present. I think, after all, maybe it is a better economy not
-to have all you want; but to save up your wishes, so you can think of
-something when any person tells you to choose a present.”
-
-Maggie said this with her wiseacre air, and Belle and Bessie listened
-with solemn admiration, believing it to be a speech containing a great
-deal of wisdom; nor, indeed, do I know that they were far wrong.
-
-“How much is your father going to cost for your present?” asked Bessie.
-
-“I asked him that,” said Belle; “and he said that ’pended on what
-I wanted. He said if it was a locket or necklace, or any thing that
-would keep till I was a big girl, he would not mind giving a good deal
-of money for it, he had to give me a present from mamma and himself
-too; but if it was only a toy I could break or be tired of in a little
-while, it would not be right to frow away much money on it. That is
-just what he said. I ’member it very well. But I don’t want a locket
-or those kind of things, there’s a whole lot of my own mamma’s pretty
-things I can have when I’m a big girl. Papa is keeping them for me,
-and I like those best. And I can’t think of a toy, not one;” and Belle
-looked quite melancholy over her want of wants.
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie again, “I b’lieve you have every thing in the world
-a child could want.”
-
-“Not my mamma,” said Belle, with the touch of sadness which always came
-over her when she thought or spoke of her dead mother.
-
-“Dear Belle,” said Maggie, tenderly. “But then God gives us our mammas;
-and I only meant things that earth people could give you.”
-
-“And, Belle, darling,” said Bessie, “your mamma is yours yet, even if
-she has gone to Jesus! It is only that she is more of Jesus’s, and He
-is more of hers now she is in His home with Him.”
-
-Belle wiped away the tears which had gathered in her eyes; and then,
-with Bessie’s arm about her neck, and Maggie holding her hand, sat
-gazing up into the cloudless, blue sky, almost as if she expected to
-see the face of her “angel-mother” looking down with tender love upon
-her.
-
-They all three sat silent for a few moments. The waves--they were
-hardly more than wavelets, on this still, calm day--came up with their
-gentle murmur upon the beach; and there was a sort of golden haze upon
-the sea, and far off on the horizon, telling, perhaps, of a coming fog
-later in the day: but the sky was clear above them now, and all was
-bright and fair around.
-
-The quiet and the peace stole into all three little hearts,--God’s
-peace, which He gives to those who love and trust in Him, and who
-strive to do His work, and bear His will, with simple faith that He
-knows best, and will order all things right.
-
-Old Daphne and Jane, each with her work, sat at a little distance, but
-did not interfere with the children more than to see they did not
-run into any danger; and were occupied with their own conversation,
-the burden of which, on Daphne’s side, was the extreme loveliness and
-sweetness of her young mistress; while each story that she told of
-Belle’s goodness and smartness was immediately matched with one from
-Jane of the wisdom and droll sayings of her particular young charge.
-Each bird sang loud in praise of her own nestling; but the little birds
-themselves neither heard nor heeded.
-
-“Belle,” said Bessie, after a little, “a thought came into my mind just
-now; no, not into my _mind_ either. I guess it was into my _heart_, it
-was such a thought of love.”
-
-“What was it?” asked Belle, looking as if all thoughts of love were in
-_her_ heart towards the dear Bessie.
-
-“About your mamma,” said Bessie. “You know your papa said he had to
-give you a present from her. I just thought if maybe you wouldn’t like
-to have her present something that by and by would be fit to go back to
-heaven like a jewel for our Father.”
-
-“Yes, I would,” answered Belle, to whom the oft-repeated,
-oft-referred-to story was nearly as familiar and as dear as it was to
-Maggie and Bessie. “Yes, I would; but what thing could I ask for that
-would be like that? If you want any thing or Maggie, I’ll ask papa for
-it, and give it to you, liever than to have it myself, you’re so dear
-and good to me. I would, Bessie.”
-
-“Oh, no, Belle!” said Bessie. “I never would _hint_ you to give me a
-thing. Mamma says that is not a nice thing to do; and I was thinking of
-something better than that, something that would be a great, great help
-to some one, and last a great, great while, maybe for ever.”
-
-“Well,” said Belle, “why don’t you tell me what it is? You know I
-don’t have a great deal of _think_ in me to find out how to do good for
-ofers; but I b’lieve I have some _do_ in me when I know how.”
-
-“Yes, you have,” said Maggie, “and some day you’ll learn how to think
-for yourself. You see you have not been quite so much brought up to it
-as we have. That’s the mercy of having such a papa and mamma as ours.”
-
-“Well,” said Belle rather hurt, “my papa is very such too, and I’d
-rafer have him than any papa.”
-
-“Oh, yes!” said Maggie quickly, seeing that she had made a mistake,
-and hastening to heal the wound she had unintentionally given; “to be
-sure you would, and I didn’t mean the least discompliment to your papa,
-Belle; but you know he has had a great deal of trouble, and so has not
-had time to teach you so much as our papa and mamma have taught us.”
-
-“Yes, I know it,” said Belle, quite satisfied with this apology; “but
-tell me now, Bessie, I can’t think what you mean.”
-
-“Water-lily boy,” said Bessie, willing to give Belle the credit of
-thinking out the matter for herself.
-
-Belle looked puzzled.
-
-“Lily boy, Johnny, school,” said Bessie, helping her along.
-
-“Oh!” said Belle, as Bessie’s meaning came to her, “do you mean I could
-ask papa to give the money for Johnny to go to school next winter?”
-
-“Yes, dear,” said Bessie; “and it’s partly your mamma’s present it
-would seem as if you and she were doing good together, and as if the
-help for Johnny came from heaven.”
-
-“Bessie! oh, you precious love!” burst forth Maggie. “You need never
-say another word about my having good ideas. If I have ideas about
-compositions and things, you have a great deal better ones about
-living. I never did see such a child as you are,--no, never; and I hope
-I never will: one of such a kind as you are is quite enough for _me_;”
-and Maggie, after gazing at her sister with an air of the most intense
-pride and satisfaction, threw her arms about her neck and kissed her.
-“Don’t you think that is lovely, Belle?” she said; “and don’t you want
-to do it?”
-
-But little Belle sat silent for a moment, her eyes raised again towards
-her dear mother’s home, her hands clasped, and a gentle, happy smile on
-her lips.
-
-Then she spoke, with that same, soft smile, and with a peaceful light
-in her eyes.
-
-“I was just saying a little prayer inside of my mouf,” she said, “to
-ask Jesus to make papa feel like doing it, so dear mamma and I can do
-some work for Him togefer. And papa will be helping too, all fee of us
-togefer,” added the dear little thing, to whom no thought could bring
-more happiness than the one that mamma in heaven, waiting for papa and
-Belle, would know and be glad when she tried to please Jesus and to do
-His work.
-
-“I shall tell your papa Johnny is an honest boy,” said Maggie. “You
-know we know he is, that day when the lilies were six cents a bunch,
-and he had no pennies change for the ten cents I gave him, he would not
-keep it, but pulled four lilies out of another bunch to make it even
-with me. I told him he could keep it all, too.”
-
-“I guess he is a pretty good boy,” said Bessie. “Sallie says he is.”
-
-“I’ll tell papa all about him,” said Belle, which she did as her father
-drove home with her that evening in the starlight. The fog which the
-morning haze had foretold had lasted but a few hours, and all was now
-again fair and clear.
-
-“Has my pet thought of what she wants me to give her on her birthday?”
-said Mr. Powers.
-
-“Yes, papa.”
-
-“Ah! Maggie and Bessie helped you to it, I suppose. I thought they
-would,” said Mr. Powers.
-
-“Papa,” said Belle, leaning her head upon her father’s breast, and
-gazing upward at the stars, “if a present comes from mamma, it must
-come from heaven, and so it ought to be somefing very, very good: don’t
-you think so?”
-
-“It shall be what my darling pleases, if papa can bring it about,” said
-Mr. Powers, drawing her closer to him as she sat upon his knee.
-
-“The fought of it came from heaven, I know papa,” Belle went on.
-“Bessie gave it to me; and I am sure Jesus gave it to her.”
-
-“What is it, dearest?” asked her father.
-
-So Belle told her father of the “lily boy” and his desire to go to
-school, and of what she wanted for her birthday gift from him and dear
-mamma.
-
-“And you would really rather I should do this than to have any thing
-for yourself, my little girl?” said he.
-
-“Yes, papa, really, really I would; and then you know, papa, if the
-present comes from mamma and you, it will be as if she and me and you
-did a little work for Jesus, all fee togefer,” and she put up her
-little soft hand caressingly against his mouth.
-
-He took it in his and kissed it, but no more was said for a little
-while, as they drove slowly home in the still summer night.
-
-“Will you promise, papa?” said Belle at last.
-
-“Yes, darling, I will promise; that is, you shall send the boy to
-school if I find he is steady and good, and his parents are deserving
-people.”
-
-“And if not, papa?” questioned his little daughter, fearful lest this
-plan, which seemed to bring her nearer to her mother, should fail her
-at the last.
-
-“If not, or if I find any reason why this thing is not wise, I will set
-aside the sum of money it would have taken, and we will soon find some
-way in which mamma’s gift may do work for Jesus.”
-
-Belle was satisfied.
-
-“I am so glad my darling is learning to be unselfish, and to take
-thought for others,” continued Mr. Powers.
-
-“It’s all Maggie’s and Bessie’s fault, papa, all their fault. It never
-came to me, myself; but they taught me how. And it makes me want to be
-good when I see them good, even when they don’t tell me a word.”
-
-“Yes,” said her father: “I think it has been a great blessing to you to
-know Maggie and Bessie.”
-
-“They’re the best of all my blessings, ’cept only you, papa. I’m a
-great, great deal happier since I knew them, and I guess gooder too.
-I don’t slap Daphne now; and I don’t fret so much when you tell me a
-thing can’t not: do I papa?”
-
-“No, my darling,” said her father: “my little Belle is becoming very
-good and obedient, and I see she takes pains with her quick temper too.”
-
-Mr. Powers felt as if he could not bear to part from his darling that
-night, and when Daphne had undressed her and laid her in her bed, he
-went and sat beside her, and held her little hand.
-
-“Put out the light, and leave the window open, papa,” she pleaded;
-“so we can look up at dear mamma’s home. See how bright the stars are.
-Bessie says the water-lilies are like the stars come down here, so we
-can think the stars are heaven’s lilies; but they do not fade like the
-lilies; do they, papa?” She rambled on half sleepily, without waiting
-for an answer. “And Jesus never fades, nor the angels He takes up to
-His heaven. Papa, I’ll try to be like a little water-lily, and then
-when Jesus has done wif me on earf, He will gafer me up to His home
-where mamma is.”
-
-So she talked on about mamma and Jesus and heaven till sleep came, and
-she forgot alike the joys and sorrows of her young life.
-
-But her father sat there, long after she fell asleep, and thought
-with more pleasure than any thing had given him since his wife’s
-death, of the work which “all fee togefer” might do for Jesus. And
-as he remembered the many mercies which God had still left to him,
-especially the blessing of this loving little child, he took shame to
-himself that he had allowed his own great grief to make him forget the
-wants and troubles of others; and he resolved that on each Christmas
-and birthday, from this time forth, Belle’s gift from her “mamma in
-heaven,” should be the means of doing good to some one who needed it.
-
-He was as good as his word respecting the water-lily boy; and the very
-next day went to work to find if Johnny Howe and his parents were
-worthy of the help his little daughter wished to offer them.
-
-All was satisfactory. Johnny’s parents proved to be industrious,
-deserving people, with whom the world had gone rather hardly for the
-last year or two. Johnny himself, a bright boy, eager to learn, and
-who made the most of all his opportunities. His father and mother
-thankfully accepted the offer Mr. Powers made to provide for his
-education as long as they should need such help; and dear little Belle
-was made happy in this “birfday present.”
-
-Belle’s were not the only young eyes which gazed upward at the starry
-sky that night with sweet thoughts of the heaven beyond.
-
-Maggie and Bessie had gone out with Colonel Rush to see Mr. Powers and
-Belle drive away; and the evening was so soft, and warm and lovely,
-that after they had gone the Colonel sat down upon the steps of the
-piazza to enjoy it, with one of his pets on either side of him.
-
-It was very quiet: only two sounds broke the stillness; the ceaseless
-song of the sea,--very low and gentle it was to-night,--and mingling
-with it came the sweet tones of Mrs. Rush’s voice, as she sang her baby
-to sleep in one of the upper rooms. They all sat listening to the two
-hymns; so different, yet with no discord between them; the music of the
-one blending so perfectly with the music of the other.
-
-For a moment the sweet singer above paused; then, unconscious of the
-listening ears below, began,--
-
- “I was a wandering sheep.”
-
-It carried the Colonel back, back to that time, now nearly two years
-since, when on just such a night as this, with those same mingling
-voices sounding in his ears, peace and rest had flowed in on his
-troubled soul; when striving to reach the light pointed out by the
-beloved little messenger beside him, he had laid hold upon the cross,
-and felt its brightness all about him. Its rays had beamed clearly
-for him ever since; for he knew from whence they shone, and that they
-should never fail him.
-
-The baby slept, and the young mother’s voice ceased as she laid it
-in its cradle: but its father sat on, with the music still sounding
-in his heart; and, as if the holy spell were on them too, his little
-companions sat as motionless and silent,--Maggie leaning on his knee,
-Bessie with her hand nestled in his, her head laid lovingly against his
-arm.
-
-Suddenly, some one threw back a blind from the library-window, and a
-stream of light was thrown from within upon the sunny, brown curls
-which lay against the Colonel’s shoulder. He looked down at her.
-
-“Bessie, what were you thinking of, darling?” he asked, as he saw the
-wistful face and earnest eyes, which seemed as if they saw beyond the
-stars.
-
-“A good many things, Uncle Horace,” answered the little one. “I
-thought about Belle, and how glad her mamma must be to see how hard she
-tries to be good, and I know it is hard for Belle to be good sometimes;
-and about heaven and Jesus. And then I thought about our travels, and
-how good our Father in heaven has been to us, and how I wished I could
-do something very much for Him; and then--and then--Uncle Horace, I
-don’t know what made me, I think it was the sound of the waves--I
-thought about one night at Quam Beach, when I lay awake a great while,
-and looked out at the stars and heard the waves making just such a soft
-sound--and--and--I was saying a good many little prayers about you,
-Uncle Horace: it was the night before the next morning when you told me
-you had found Jesus, and was going to be His soldier.”
-
-There was no answer in words; but his arm found its way around her, and
-clasped her closer, and when the brave soldier could steady his voice,
-it was to Maggie he spoke.
-
-“And what was my honey-bee thinking of, to keep her so quiet?”
-
-“I was thinking of our travels too, Uncle Horace,” answered Maggie;
-“but not in such a very superior manner as Bessie. I was thinking what
-a lovely time we have had all these months; and now how glad I am that
-papa and mamma have come to decision to stay in Newport till it is time
-to go home in the autumn. I like Chalecoo; but I’d rather stay in this
-lovely place than to go anywhere else. And now our travels are done.”
-
-“For the present, yes,” said the Colonel; “but we have all still one
-road to keep, one journey to go, dear Maggie: that journey that shall
-end at last in our Father’s house.”
-
-“Yes,” said Maggie, with grave sweetness: “the narrow road, where the
-golden letters and the silver thread shall guide us, and where our
-Brother will help us where it is too hard for us to go alone.”
-
-“And where our Father has let us find a few jewels for Him, I b’lieve,”
-chimed in Bessie’s soft voice. “I hope we may find some more, but He
-knows best.”
-
-“‘They that seek shall find,’ if they search by the light of God’s Holy
-Word,” said the Colonel, laying a loving hand on each little head; “but
-we may not know what treasures are ours, till the day when he shall
-make up His jewels.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-And now go forth on your travels, my Maggie and Bessie, followed by
-the earnest prayer that you may be the means of drawing other little
-pilgrims to journey beside the green pastures and still waters of the
-way of salvation, led by the hand of the gentle Shepherd, who has
-said, “Suffer little children to come unto me;” and who will guide them
-at last to that perfect home, prepared for such as are of “the kingdom
-of heaven.”
-
-
-
-
- ROBERT CARTER & BROTHERS’ NEW BOOKS.
-
- 530 Broadway, New-York.
-
- =NOBODY.= A story by the author of the “Wide, Wide World.” 12mo. $1.75
-
- “Her style is felicitous, her humor delicate, her
- pathos sincere. If we must have novels, commend us to
- such a story as “Nobody,” which leaves in the lips of
- the reader a taste of sweetness, and upon his breath an
- odor of fragrance.”--_Morning Star._
-
- UNIFORM WITH AND BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- 1. =MY DESIRE.= A Story. 12mo. $1.75
- 2. =THE END OF A COIL.= A Story. 12mo. 1.75
- 3. =THE LETTER OF CREDIT.= A Story. 12mo. 1.75
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- The Say and Do Series. 6 vols. $7.50
- Story of Small Beginnings. 4 vols. 5.00
- King’s People. 5 vols. 7.00
- Stories of Vinegar Hill. 3 vols. 3.00
- Ellen Montgomery’s Bookshelf. 5 vols. 5.00
- =THE OLD HELMET.= 2.25
- =MELBOURNE HOUSE.= 2.00
- Pine Needles. 1.50
-
- =Fifteen; or, Lydia’s Happenings.= By Mrs. Jennie M. Drinkwater
- Conklin. 12mo. 1.50
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- Tessa Wadsworth’s Discipline. 12mo. $1.50
- Rue’s Helps. 12mo. 1.50
- Electa. A Story. 12mo. 1.50
-
- =Under the Shield.= A Tale. By M. E. Winchester. 12mo. 1.50
-
- =The Red and White.= An Historical Tale. By Emily Sarah Holt.
- 12mo. 1.50
-
- =At Ye Grene Griffin.= By Emily Sarah Holt. 16mo. 1.00
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- Isoult Barry. 12mo. $1.50
- Robin Tremayne. 12mo. 1.50
- The Well in the Desert. 16mo. 1.25
- Ashcliffe Hall. 16mo. 1.25
- Verena. A Tale. 12mo. 1.50
- The White Rose of Langley. 12mo. 1.50
- Imogen. 12mo. 1.50
- Clare Avery. 12mo. 1.50
- Lettice Eden. 12mo. 1.50
- For the Master’s Sake. 16mo. 1.00
- Margery’s Son. 12mo. 1.50
- Lady Sybil’s Choice. 12mo. 1.50
- The Maiden’s Lodge. 12mo. 1.25
- Earl Hubert’s Daughter. 12mo. 1.50
- Joyce Morrell’s Harvest. 12mo. 1.50
-
- =Decima’s Promise.= By Agnes Giberne. 1.25
-
- =Twilight Talks=; or, Early Lessons on Things about us. By
- Agnes Giberne. 16mo. .75
-
- =Jacob Witherby=; or, The Need of Patience. By Agnes Giberne.
- 16mo. .60
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- =The World’s Foundations=; or, Geology for Beginners. Illus.
- 12mo. 1.50
- =Sweetbriar=; or, Doings in Priorsthorpe Manor. 12mo. 1.50
- =Through the Linn.= 16mo. 1.25
-
- Aimee. A Tale of James II. 16mo. $1.50
- The Day Star; or, Gospel Stories. 1.25
- The Curate’s Home. 16mo. 1.25
- Floss Silverthorne. 16mo. 1.25
- Coulyng Castle. 16mo. 1.50
- Muriel Bertram. 16mo. 1.50
- The Sun, Moon, and Stars. 12mo. 1.50
- Duties and Duties. 16mo. 1.25
-
- =Nearer to Jesus.= Memorials of Robert Walter Fergus. By his
- mother. With an introduction by Rev. J. Oswald Dykes, D. D. .75
-
- =Little Bullets= and Seven Perils Passed by A. L. O. E. 16mo.
- Illustrated. 1.00
-
- =The Wondrous Sickle.= By A. L. O. E. 16mo. .75
-
- =Cared For.= By C. E. Bowen. 18mo. .50
-
- =The Orphan Wanderers.= Containing “Cared For” and “How a
- Farthing made a Fortune.” Illus. 16mo. 1.00
-
- =Heroic Adventure.= Chapters in recent Exploration and
- Discovery. Illustrated. 12mo.
-
- =Only a Cousin.= By Catharine Shaw. 1.25
-
- =Lonely Jack and his Friend.= By Emily Brodie. 1.25
-
- =Seeketh Not Her Own.= By M. Sitwell. 1.25
-
- =Cripple Jess, the Hop-Picker’s Daughter.= 1.00
-
- =Jill and Jack.= A Story of To-Day. 1.00
-
- =A Little Wild Flower.= .60
-
- =Bennie, the King’s Little Servant.= .50
-
- =The Story of a Shell.= By the Rev. J.R. Macduff, D.D.
-
- =Rex and Regina.= By Mrs. Marshall. 1.50
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- Dew Drops and Diamonds. $1.50
- Stories of Cathedral Cities. 1.50
- Ruby and Pearl. 1.25
- Framilode Hall. .50
- Stellafont Abbey. 1.00
- Between the Cliffs. 1.00
- The Primrose Series. 6 vols. 3.00
- The Violet and Lily Series. 6 vols. 3.00
- Chip of the Old Block. .50
- Little Brothers and Sisters. 1.25
- Matthew Frost. 1.00
-
- =BITS FROM BLINKBONNY=; or, Bell o’ the Manse. 12mo. 6
- illustrations. 1.50
-
- =THE CHURCH IN THE HOUSE=; or, Lessons on Acts. New Edition.
- 12mo. (In Dec.). 1.50
-
- =THE HUMAN MIND.= A Treatise on Mental Philosophy. By Edward
- John Hamilton, D. D. 8vo. 3.00
-
- =MOSES AND THE PROPHETS.= A Review of Robertson Smith and
- Kuenen. By Professor Green, of Princeton. 12mo. 1.50
-
- =GOD’S LIGHT ON DARK CLOUDS.= By Theodore L. Cuyler, D. D. Very
- neat. Limp. .75
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- FROM THE NILE TO NORWAY. $1.50
- THOUGHT HIVES. With Portrait. 1.50
- POINTED PAPERS. 12mo. 1.50
- THE EMPTY CRIB. 24mo. Gilt. 1.00
- STRAY ARROWS. 18mo. .60
- CEDAR CHRISTIAN. 18mo. .75
-
- HUGH MILLER’S WORKS. The 12 volumes in 6. Neat cloth. 9.00
-
- “Was there ever a more delightful style than that in
- which his works are written? His essays wed the elegance
- of Addison with the strength of Carlyle.”--_Rev. Dr.
- W. M. Taylor._
-
- =GLEAMS FROM THE SICK CHAMBER.= Macduff. .75
-
- =MANIFESTO OF THE KING.= An Exposition of the Sermon on the
- Mount. By Rev. J. Oswald Dykes, D. D. 2.00
-
- =SERMONS.= By J. Oswald Dykes, D. D. 12mo. 1.50
-
- =COVENANT NAMES AND PRIVILEGES.= A series of Discourses. By the
- Rev. Richard Newton, D. D. Portrait. 1.50
-
- BY THE SAME AUTHOR.
-
- =The Jewel Case.= 6 vols. 7.50
- =The Wonder Case.= 6 vols. 7.50
- =Rays from the Sun of Righteousness.= 1.25
- =The King in His Beauty.= 1.25
- =Pebbles from the Brook.= 1.25
-
-
- NEW AND CHEAP EDITIONS.
-
- =MORNING BY MORNING.= Daily Readings. By Rev. C. H. Spurgeon.
- 12mo. $1.00
-
- “We have carefully read this book, and we say,
- advisedly, that we know not where to look for another
- such store of rich experimental religion within the
- same compass.”--_Freeman._
-
- =EVENING BY EVENING=; or, Readings at Eventide. By Rev. C. H.
- Spurgeon. 12mo. 1.00
-
- =TYPES AND EMBLEMS.= By the Rev. C. H. Spurgeon. 12mo. 1.00
-
- =JOHN PLOUGHMAN’S TALK.= By the Rev. C. H. Spurgeon. 16mo. .75
-
- =GLEANINGS AMONG THE SHEAVES.= By the Rev. C. H. Spurgeon. 18mo.
-
- =THE PROGRESS OF DOCTRINE IN THE NEW TESTAMENT.= By Bernard.
- 12mo. 1.25
-
- =*D’AUBIGNE’S REFORMATION IN THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY.= 5 vols. in
- one. 8vo. 1.00
-
- =KRUMMACHER’S SUFFERING SAVIOUR.= 12mo. 1.00
-
- =MACDUFF’S SUNSETS ON THE HEBREW MOUNTAINS.= 12mo. 1.00
-
- =MACDUFF’S FAMILY PRAYERS.= 16mo. Reduced to 1.00
-
- =PRIME’S FORTY YEARS IN THE TURKISH EMPIRE.= Life of Goodell.
- 12mo. 1.50
-
- =Dorothy Cope.= Containing the “Old Looking-Glass” and the
- “Broken Looking-Glass.” By Miss Charlesworth. 12mo. 1.50
-
- =The Claremont Series.= By A. L. O. E. 10 vols. 16mo. In a box. 8.50
-
- Eddie Ellerslie. $0.90
- Claremont Tales. .90
- Christian’s Mirror. .90
- Crown of Success. .90
- Christian Conquests. .90
- Christian’s Panoply. .90
- Cortley Hall. .90
- Idols in the Heart. .90
- Needle and Rat. .90
- Stories on Parables. .90
-
- =The Golden Library, A.= 10 vols. 16mo. 8.50
-
- =The Golden Library, B.= 10 vols. 16mo. 8.50
-
- =*THE OLIVE LIBRARY.= 40 vols. 16mo. Wooden Case. Net. 25.00
-
- _A MARVEL OF CHEAPNESS._ DR. HANNA’S LIFE OF CHRIST. Pica type,
- fine paper, 3 vols. 12mo, 2182 pp., neat cloth. 2.50
-
-
- NEW AND VERY NEAT EDITIONS OF
-
- =MIND AND WORDS OF JESUS.=
-
- By Macduff. Limp, red edges, 50 cents. Gilt edges, 60 cents.
- Superfine paper, _red line_ edition, round corners, gilt edges,
- $1.00. In full calf, gilt edges, $2.50.
-
- =MORNING AND NIGHT WATCHES.=
-
- By Macduff. Limp, red edges, 50 cents. Gilt edges, 60 cents.
- Superfine paper, _red line_ edition, round corners, gilt edges,
- $1.00. In full calf, gilt edges, $2.50.
-
- =MIND AND WORDS AND MORNING AND NIGHT WATCHES. In One Volume.=
-
- Red line edition, gilt edges, $1.50. Full calf, gilt edges,
- $3.50.
-
- =HANNAH MORE’S PRIVATE DEVOTION.=
-
- 32mo. Limp, red edges, 50 cents. Gilt edges, 60 cents.
-
- =DICKSON (REV. ALEXANDER, D.D.)=
-
- ALL ABOUT JESUS. 2.00
- BEAUTY FOR ASHES. 2.00
-
- “His book is a ‘bundle of myrrh,’ and will be specially
- enjoyed by those who are in trouble.”--_Rev. Dr. W. M.
- Taylor._
-
- “Luscious as a honeycomb with sweetness drawn from
- God’s word.”--_Rev. Dr. Cuyler._
-
-
- THE BEST COMMENTARY.
-
- =*MATTHEW HENRY’S COMMENTARY ON THE BIBLE.= 5 vols., quarto,
- sheep, $20.00. In cloth. 15.00
-
- Another edition, 9 volumes, 8vo, cloth. 20.00
-
- =Rev. C. H. Spurgeon= says: “First among the mighty
- for general usefulness we are bound to mention the man
- whose name is a household word--MATTHEW HENRY.”
-
- =Rev. Dr. Wm. M. Taylor= says: “Among the valuable
- homiletical commentaries is Matthew Henry’s, which
- sparkles with jewels of wisdom and incisive humor.”
-
- =Rev. T. L. Cuyler, D. D.=, says: “Next to wife and
- children has lain near the minister’s heart the
- pored-over and prayed-over copy of his Matthew Henry,
- king of all Bible explorers yet.”
-
- =Rev. Dr. Archibald Alexander= says: “Taking it as a
- whole, and as adapted to every class of readers, this
- Commentary may be said to combine more excellence than
- any other work of the kind that was ever written in any
- language.”
-
- =GUIDE TO FAMILY DEVOTION.= By the Rev. Alexander Fletcher, D.
- D. Royal quarto, with 10 steel plates (half morocco, $7.50;
- Turkey morocco, $12), cloth, gilt, and gilt edges, $5.00.
-
- “The more we look over the volume the more we admire
- it, and the more heartily feel to commend it to
- families and devout Christians. It is emphatically
- a book of devotion, from the standpoint of an
- intelligent, broad-minded Christian minister, who has
- here expressed many of the deepest emotions and wants
- of the soul. The selections of Scripture and the hymns
- are all admirably adapted to increase devotion; and
- the prayers are such as can but aid the suppliant,
- even when not uttered from his precise standpoint, and
- are especially valuable to many heads of families who
- find it difficult to frame words for themselves in
- conducting family worship.”--_Journal and Messenger._
-
- =RYLE ON THE GOSPELS.= 7 vols., 12mo. 10.50
-
- _Matthew_, $1.50. _Mark_, $1.50. _Luke_, 2 vols.,
- $3.00. _John_, 3 vols., $4.50.
-
- “Those who are engaged in teaching others will find
- in them a treasury, full of edifying and instructive
- suggestions.”--_Episcopal Register._
-
- =KITTO’S BIBLE ILLUSTRATIONS.= 8 vols., 12mo, in a box, with
- complete index. 7.00
-
- “I cannot lose this opportunity of recommending, in
- the strongest language and most emphatic manner I can
- command, this invaluable series of books. I believe for
- the elucidation of the historic parts of Scripture,
- there is nothing comparable with them in the English or
- any other language.”--_J. A. James._
-
- =DR. HODGE’S COMMENTARIES.= 4 vols. 7.00
-
- _Corinthians_, 2 vols., $3.50. _Romans_, $1.75.
- _Ephesians_, $1.75.
-
- “Dr. HODGE’S Commentaries ought to be in the hands
- of all readers of the Bible, in families, in
- Sabbath-schools and Seminaries.”--_Observer._
-
- =HODGE’S (DR. A. A.) OUTLINES OF THEOLOGY.= 8vo. 3.00
-
- =*DR. McCOSH’S WORKS.= 5 vols., 8vo, uniform. Brown cloth. 10.00
-
- =*MURDOCK’S MOSHEIM’S ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY.= 3 vols, in one. 3.00
-
- =*POOL’S ANNOTATIONS UPON THE HOLY BIBLE.= 3 vols., 8vo. 7.50
-
- =*THE WORKS OF PRESIDENT EDWARDS.= 4 vols., 8vo. 6.00
-
- =THE BOOK OF JOB.= Illustrated. With fifty engravings after
- drawings by JOHN GILBERT. In morocco, $7.50; half calf, $6.00;
- cloth, gilt. 4.50
-
- =COWPER’S TASK.= Illustrated. With sixty superb designs by
- BIRKET FOSTER. Printed on fine tinted paper; elegantly bound in
- cloth, gilt. 3.50
-
- =GRAY’S ELEGY.= Illustrated pocket edition. Gilt edges. .50
-
- =VOICES OF HOPE AND GLADNESS.= By RAY PALMER, D. D.
- Illustrated. 12mo, gilt. 1.50
-
- =SONGS OF THE SOUL.= By Dr. PRIME. Quarto, gilt. 5.00 Cheaper
- edition, 12mo. $2.00
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's Bessie on Her Travels, by Joanna H. Mathews
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 52214-0.txt or 52214-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/2/1/52214/
-
-Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/52214-0.zip b/old/52214-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index cd117a6..0000000
--- a/old/52214-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h.zip b/old/52214-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index a616b13..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/52214-h.htm b/old/52214-h/52214-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index ce2b0a7..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/52214-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11599 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of Bessie on Her Travels, by Joanna H. Mathews.
- </title>
-
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
-
-<style type="text/css">
-
-a {
- text-decoration: none;
-}
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {
- width: 45%;
- margin-left: 27.5%;
- margin-right: 27.5%;
-}
-
-hr.chap {
- width: 65%;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: 0.5em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-p.dropcap {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-p.dropcap:first-letter {
- color: transparent;
- visibility: hidden;
- margin-left: -0.9em;
-}
-
-img.dropcap {
- float: left;
- margin: 0 0.5em 0 0;
-}
-
-table {
- width: 90%;
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-table.small {
- margin: 1em auto 1em auto;
- width: 20em;
-}
-
-td {
- padding-left: 0.25em;
- padding-right: 0.25em;
- vertical-align: top;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-.booklist {
- margin: 2em 10% 1em 10%;
-}
-
-.booklist b {
- font-size: 115%;
-}
-
-.booklist .title {
- margin-top: 1em;
- padding-left: 4em;
- text-indent: -4em;
-}
-
-.booklist .bysame {
- padding-left: 2em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.bysame b {
- font-size: 100%;
-}
-
-.booklist .center {
- margin-top: 1em;
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.booklist .review {
- font-size: smaller;
- text-indent: 1em;
-}
-
-.booklist .price {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4%;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.caption {
- text-align: center;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-size: 90%;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.center {
- text-align: center;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.frontmatter {
- margin: auto;
- width: 35em;
-}
-
-.noindent {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-.larger {
- font-size: 150%;
-}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- right: 4%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {
- text-align: center;
- margin: 1em;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza {
- margin: 1em 0em 1em 0em;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse {
- text-indent: -3em;
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-.right {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.signature {
- margin-left: 2em;
-}
-
-.smaller {
- font-size: 80%;
-}
-
-.smcap {
- font-variant: small-caps;
- font-style: normal;
-}
-
-.tdr {
- text-align: right;
-}
-
-.titlepage {
- text-align: center;
- margin-top: 3em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-
-@media handheld {
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- width: auto;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-img.dropcap {
- display: none;
-}
-
-.poetry {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
-}
-
-.blockquote {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 5%;
-}
-
-.booklist .price {
- position: static;
- text-align: justify;
-}
-
-p.dropcap:first-letter {
- color: inherit;
- visibility: visible;
- margin-left: 0;
-}
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Bessie on Her Travels, by Joanna H. Mathews
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-
-
-Title: Bessie on Her Travels
-
-Author: Joanna H. Mathews
-
-Release Date: June 1, 2016 [EBook #52214]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center larger">BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="center larger"><i>BOOKS BY JOANNA H. MATHEWS.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">I. THE BESSIE BOOKS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">6 vols. In a box. $7.50.</p>
-
-<table summary="Books" class="small">
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Seaside</span></td><td class="tdr">$1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">City</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Friends</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Mountains</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">School</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Travels</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- </table>
-
-<p class="center">II. THE FLOWERETS.<br />
-A SERIES OF STORIES ON THE COMMANDMENTS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">6 vols. In a box. $3.60.</p>
-
-<table summary="Books" class="small">
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Violet’s Idol.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Daisy’s Work.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Rose’s Temptation.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Lily’s Lesson.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Hyacinthe and her Brothers.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Pinkie and the Rabbits.</span></td>
- </tr>
- </table>
-
-<p class="center">III. LITTLE SUNBEAMS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">6 vols. In a box. $6.00.</p>
-
-<table summary="Books" class="small">
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Belle Powers’ Locket.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Dora’s Motto.</span> 16mo.</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Lily Norris’ Enemy.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Jessie’s Parrot.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Mamie’s Watchword.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Nellie’s Housekeeping.</span></td>
- </tr>
- </table>
-
-<p class="center">IV. KITTY AND LULU BOOKS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">6 vols. In a box. $6.00.</p>
-
-<table summary="Books" class="small">
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Toutou and Pussy.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Kitty’s Robins.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">The White Rabbit.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Rudie’s Goat.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Kitty’s Visit.</span></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td><span class="smcap">Kitty’s Scrap-Book.</span></td>
- </tr>
- </table>
-
-<p class="center">V. MISS ASHTON’S GIRLS.</p>
-
-<table summary="Books" class="small">
- <tr>
- <td>1. <span class="smcap">Fanny’s Birthday</span></td><td class="tdr">$1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>2. <span class="smcap">The New Scholars</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>3. <span class="smcap">Rosalie’s Pet</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>4. <span class="smcap">Eleanor’s Visit</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>5. <span class="smcap">Mabel Walton</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- </table>
-
-<p class="center">VI. HAPS AND MISHAPS.</p>
-
-<p class="center">6 vols. In a box. $7.50.</p>
-
-<table summary="Books" class="small">
- <tr>
- <td>1. <span class="smcap">Little Friends</span></td><td class="tdr">$1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>2. <span class="smcap">The Broken Mallet</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>3. <span class="smcap">Blackberry Jam</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>4. <span class="smcap">Milly’s Whims</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>5. <span class="smcap">Lilies and Thistledown</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td>6. <span class="smcap">Uncle Joe’s Thanksgiving</span></td><td class="tdr">1.25</td>
- </tr>
- </table>
-
-<p class="center smaller">ROBERT CARTER AND BROTHERS,<br />
-<i>New York</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus1.jpg" width="450" height="650" alt="Maggie suffering from seasickness" />
-
-<p class="caption">FRONTISPIECE. Bessie’s Travels.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="frontmatter">
-
-<p class="titlepage">BESSIE<br />
-ON<br />
-HER TRAVELS.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">BY<br />
-JOANNA H. MATHEWS.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“Glad hearts, without reproach or blot,</div>
-<div class="verse">Which do thy work, and know it not.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="titlepage">NEW YORK.<br />
-ROBERT CARTER AND BROTHERS,<br />
-530, <span class="smcap">Broadway</span>.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1870, by<br />
-<br />
-ROBERT CARTER AND BROTHERS,</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">In the Clerk’s Office of the District Court of the United States for the
-Southern District of New York.</p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">CAMBRIDGE:<br />
-PRESS OF JOHN WILSON AND SON</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span></p>
-
-<p class="titlepage">DEDICATED<br />
-TO<br />
-LITTLE FLORENCE GUERNSEY,<br />
-<br />
-AS<br />
-<br />
-A SMALL TOKEN OF APPRECIATION OF HER FATHER’S LONG AND
-FAITHFUL FRIENDSHIP; AND WITH THE HOPE THAT
-THIS LAST MAY NOT PROVE TO HER THE
-LEAST OF THE “BESSIE BOOKS.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span></p>
-
-<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-<table summary="Contents">
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">I.</td><td><a href="#I"><span class="smcap">Packing up</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_9">9</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">II.</td><td><a href="#II"><span class="smcap">At Sea</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_33">33</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">III.</td><td><a href="#III"><span class="smcap">Lucy</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_54">54</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IV.</td><td><a href="#IV"><span class="smcap">An Old Enemy, but New Friend</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_80">80</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">V.</td><td><a href="#V"><span class="smcap">Belle’s Home</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_101">101</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VI.</td><td><a href="#VI"><span class="smcap">Letters</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_127">127</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VII.</td><td><a href="#VII"><span class="smcap">A “Real, Real Adventure”</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_157">157</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">VIII.</td><td><a href="#VIII"><span class="smcap">Old Joe</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_184">184</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">IX.</td><td><a href="#IX"><span class="smcap">Kate</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_211">211</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">X.</td><td><a href="#X"><span class="smcap">Maggie’s Poem</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_232">232</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XI.</td><td><a href="#XI"><span class="smcap">Good Seed</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_256">256</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XII.</td><td><a href="#XII"><span class="smcap">“Happy Delights”</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_275">275</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIII.</td><td><a href="#XIII"><span class="smcap">Little Acts of Kindness</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_301">301</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XIV.</td><td><a href="#XIV"><span class="smcap">Water-Lilies</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_330">330</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class="tdr">XV.</td><td><a href="#XV"><span class="smcap">“Of Such is the Kingdom of Heaven”</span></a></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_351">351</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a><br />
-<a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch1-and-9.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h1>BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS.</h1>
-
-<h2 id="I">I.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>PACKING UP.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-w.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">What a twitter and flutter and chirping
-there was in the pretty nest
-which Maggie and Bessie Bradford
-called their own room; for there were four
-little girls, who were to start together the next
-day on their travels, and there was so much
-to be talked over. All the new places they
-were to visit, all the wonderful things they
-were to see and do; and, more than all, that
-sea voyage of three or four days. For none
-of them but Belle had ever been to sea, and it
-would be quite a new thing to all the rest.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then there was the packing, about which
-both Maggie and Bessie, especially the former,
-had been greatly concerned for the last week;
-for it seemed impossible to them that nurse
-and Jane could make all the necessary preparations
-for this important journey on the day
-before that on which they were to start.</p>
-
-<p>That morning Maggie’s excitement and impatience
-had overflowed. Waking at a very
-early hour, and finding Bessie still sleeping,
-she lay a few moments thinking of all that
-was to be done that day, and wondering that
-the household should still be so quiet, with the
-prospect of such important business before
-them.</p>
-
-<p>“I just expect the end of the matter will be
-that every one in the house, even poor mamma,
-who is not so very well yet, will have to
-turn to and help to make up for their pro-cras-to-na-tion!”
-said she to herself, indignantly;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>
-“and I’ve just a great mind to begin packing
-up myself, to set them a good example, and
-make them ashamed of a little girl like me
-taking time by the forelock so much better
-than they do.”</p>
-
-<p>No sooner said than done; and Maggie
-scrambled out of bed and into her dressing-gown
-and slippers quite forgetting to pause
-and think whether or no mamma would approve
-of her running about the house in such
-a guise, and if she would not be giving more
-trouble than help by meddling with what she
-did not understand.</p>
-
-<p>Upstairs she trotted to the topmost story,
-where was a room which Fred called the “put-all-room,”
-and which held, not only trunks
-and boxes of all shapes and sizes, but a couple
-of great, old-fashioned presses, and many
-another article not in common daily use, and
-stored there to be out of the way. The
-children thought it rather a treat to go in now
-and then with mamma or nurse, to rummage
-there and see what they could spy out: but
-none of them had ever gone there alone or
-without permission; and if Maggie had taken
-time to reflect, I think she would have known<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span>
-that her mamma would not wish her to
-do so, though she had never positively forbidden
-it.</p>
-
-<p>But just now the busy little head was too
-full of plans for making herself useful, to take
-heed of any thing else; and finding what she
-had hoped for, that the door was unlocked,
-she opened it, and went in. The trunks were
-not piled together at one end as they usually
-were, but stood singly, here and there about
-the room, just as Patrick had left them the
-day before, when he had examined them to
-see if they were in good order; and this Maggie
-observed with great satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p>“It just seems as if it was fixed to be convenient
-for me,” she said to herself; “and now
-I can try which is the heaviest one I can pull.
-I know I could not take those largest downstairs,
-but I think I could one of the middlings.”</p>
-
-<p>But, after various trials, she found to her
-great disappointment, that she could by no
-means move even one of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span> “middlings;”
-and was at last forced to content herself with
-a small black leather trunk, in which she
-thought she would put some of her own
-and Bessie’s clothes.</p>
-
-<p>“For a pack in time saves nine,” said Maggie
-to herself; “and even if it does not hold
-much, this little trunk is a better beginning
-than nothing.”</p>
-
-<p>Having fixed upon this prize, she contrived
-with some trouble to drag it from the room,
-and push and pull it to the head of the stairs.
-But here a new difficulty arose. She could by
-no means lift the trunk and carry it down:
-small as it was for the amount of packing she
-wished to do, it was quite too heavy for her
-little strength; and though for one moment
-she thought of pushing it over the edge of the
-top stair, and allowing it to slide down by its
-own weight, she soon reflected this would not
-do.</p>
-
-<p>“For it will just go and smash itself all to
-pieces, I suppose, and then make a horrid
-noise to wake the people all up,” she said<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
-again, feeling rather vexed with the innocent
-trunk. “Oh! I know what I’ll do: I’ll go in
-front of it and pull it down very gently, one
-step at a time.”</p>
-
-<p>But in spite of all the pains she took, the
-trunk seemed to Maggie to make the most outrageous
-noise, sliding over each stair with a
-grating sound, and coming down from the
-edge of one to another with a thump and a
-bang, which all her efforts could not silence.
-She was soon heartily sorry that she had ever
-touched it; but she must go on now, for she
-could not possibly pull it up again, and if she
-left her hold of it, it would go tumbling headlong
-to the bottom.</p>
-
-<p>However, she took heart of grace again by
-the time she had reached the foot of the top
-flight, for no one seemed to have been disturbed;
-the servants having all gone down
-stairs, and the boys, who slept in the third
-story, being sound sleepers. So she concluded
-to go on and not have all her pains thrown
-away; but she had gone only two or three<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span>
-steps on the second flight, her troublesome
-prize bumping after her, when she heard her
-father’s voice from below.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you busy with there, Patrick?”
-he said. “You are disturbing Mrs. Bradford,
-and will wake the children. Leave it till later
-in the day.”</p>
-
-<p>“O papa!” said Maggie, feeling rather
-guilty, and very much mortified, “it’s not
-Patrick, but me;” and as she spoke, she appeared
-round the turn of the stairs, while her
-attention being for the moment diverted, the
-trunk slid after her with a bang which seemed
-to jar the house.</p>
-
-<p>“You, my daughter!” said Mr. Bradford,
-coming up to where Maggie stood; “and what
-<em>are</em> you doing here at this time in the morning?”
-and he looked down in great surprise
-at the small figure whose cheeks matched her
-scarlet dressing-gown, and whose curls were
-tossed and tumbled in the wildest confusion.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s this mean old trunk, papa,” said Maggie,
-pettishly;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span> “the more I try to make it go
-softly, the more it won’t, but just squeaks and
-bumps all it can, the horrid thing!” and now
-she gave up the trunk very willingly into her
-father’s strong grasp.</p>
-
-<p>“What were you doing with it?” asked
-Mr. Bradford.</p>
-
-<p>“Taking it downstairs, so I could pack it
-with my things and Bessie’s, papa. I wanted
-to take mamma by surprise to see how useful
-I could be.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have taken mamma rather too much
-by surprise,” said her father, unable to help
-smiling; “for you have wakened and startled
-her. It is well to try to be useful, but one
-should try to be thoughtful and considerate at
-the same time, or our pains will be quite
-thrown away, as yours are now. You must
-go back to your bed, my daughter, and let this
-trunk alone;” and lifting the trunk he carried
-it to the third-story hall, Maggie looking on
-with a very crestfallen feeling.</p>
-
-<p>“It may stay there till we see if it is
-needed,” said Mr. Bradford, soothingly, as he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span>
-saw her disturbed face; “and by and by, at the
-proper time, you may ask mamma if you can
-help her;” and taking the little hand which
-was trembling with cold and over-exertion, he
-led her back to her own room. Papa had
-been very kind, and could scarcely be said to
-have found fault with her; but Maggie, who
-began to feel that she had been somewhat to
-blame, would rather have been scolded than
-hear him laugh as he did when he told mamma
-how and where he had found her. She
-did not hear what he said, but she knew very
-well what he was talking about, and drew the
-bed-clothes over her head that she might shut
-out the sound of his laughter.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s too bad,” she thought:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span> “most always
-when I try to be very superior, I make a mistake
-and people laugh at me about it. I feel
-as if I’d like to be mad at some one, but I
-can’t be mad at papa, and I don’t want to be
-mad at myself, ’cause I didn’t mean to do
-wrong; and it’s no use to be mad at the
-trunk, but I b’lieve I do feel a little provoked
-at it, it has made my hands hurt, and my arms
-do ache so. I’m real tired too.” And coming
-to the surface for air, Maggie turned over on
-her side, and presently dropped off into a
-sound morning nap; so that when nurse came
-to tell her she might get up, she found her
-still sleeping instead of wide awake as usual,
-and was bidden by Mrs. Bradford to let her
-sleep as long as she would after her exertion.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie was rather subdued and quiet all the
-first part of the morning, and more than ever
-grateful to papa, when she found that he had
-not told the boys, and so given them the
-opportunity to tease and laugh at her.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose you couldn’t let me help you
-after my <em>unconsiderate</em> unusefulness this morning:
-could you, mamma?” she said, when she
-saw her mother gathering together the articles
-Jane was to stow in the trunks.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, yes: I think I can find something
-for you and Bessie to do,” said mamma: “you
-may take all these tapes, needles, spools, and
-so forth, into your own room, and see how<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span>
-neatly you can put them into this box; and all
-these ribbons may go into that one.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! thank you, mamma: I will let Bessie
-do the ribbons, ’cause they are the prettiest;”
-and away ran generous Maggie with her sister
-to begin the pleasant task.</p>
-
-<p>That done, mamma gave them leave to pack
-the clothes belonging to Miss Bessie Margaret
-Marian, and Miss Margaret Colonel Horace
-Rush Bradford, in another box; saying that
-since she did not feel as if she could do without
-her own little daughters, she would not ask
-them to leave the whole of their large family
-behind, and thought the dolls might prove a
-great diversion when they were tired, or perhaps
-shut up in some hotel on a rainy day.</p>
-
-<p>They were busy deciding what dresses
-should be taken and what left, when Mrs. Norris
-came round to see Mrs. Bradford for a few
-moments, bringing Lily with her; and while
-the ladies talked in one room, the little girls
-chattered away in the other, Belle coming in
-about the same time.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Lily, “is your mamma going
-to let you take your large dolls? my mamma
-will only let me take a tiny, weeny one that
-can go in a travelling-bag.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wouldn’t take any then,” said Belle.
-“I’m going to take my largest, biggest one of
-all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not Belle Maggie Bessie?” questioned
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes: Belle Maggie Bessie!” repeated
-Belle, in a tone of determined obstinacy and
-snappishness, which showed that the subject
-was a sore one with her.</p>
-
-<p>“But your papa said last night that you
-could not take her, ’cause such a large doll
-would be too much trouble,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, anyhow, I’m going to: he said I
-could this morning,” answered Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“Then you cried and cried and bothered
-him, till he said yes: I know you,” said Maggie,
-reproachfully.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t care,” said Belle; but she did
-care, and now was ashamed that her little<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
-playmates should guess how she had worried
-her too indulgent papa.</p>
-
-<p>“You might repent yet and tell him you
-won’t take her,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, do, and make a Rip Van Winkle of
-her,” said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t make her that ugly thing, and I
-shall take her,” said Belle, indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“You needn’t be so cross,” said Maggie:
-“Bessie and I made all our other dolls Rip
-Van Winkles and William Tells, and it was
-good fun. Don’t you want to see them,
-Lily?”</p>
-
-<p>Lily assented; and, opening a deep drawer
-in the bureau, Maggie showed her all the various
-dolls belonging to herself and Bessie, lying
-with bandages on their eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see what you call them William
-Tells and that other name for,” said Lily.
-“William Tell was the man Miss Ashton told
-us about, who shot an apple off his son’s
-head.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Maggie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span> “and we told
-Harry and Fred about it, but they knew before,
-and told us that the Swiss people believe
-that he and his companions went fast asleep
-in a cave for a great many hundred years, and
-some day they would wake up and rule over
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>“And who was the Winkle man?” asked
-Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“He was another old fellow who went up
-into the mountains and went to sleep for ever
-so many years; and when he woke up nobody
-knew him, and he did not know anybody.
-Harry told us about him. I don’t see how
-people can be so foolish as to sleep for so
-long; but it came into my head to make our
-dolls Rip Van Winkles and William Tells till
-we came back, and then we wouldn’t feel as
-if they were so lonely when they were asleep
-all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s only pretend, you know, and one can
-make b’lieve about dolls even better than about
-people,” said Bessie. “And it’s a great relief
-to suffering to go to sleep and forget it,” she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>
-added, as gravely as though there were no
-“pretend” about it, and the dolls were real
-children, feeling deeply the separation from
-their little mammas.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s a very nice thing to do. You do
-make such nice plays, Maggie,” said Lily, admiringly.
-“I shall do it with my dolls: you’d
-better too, Belle.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I don’t know; but I’m going to think
-about it,” said Belle, in whose little heart
-Maggie’s reproach had awakened a feeling of
-remorse for the selfishness and obstinacy she
-had shown about her doll. “I b’lieve Belle
-Maggie Bessie <em>is</em> most too large. I can’t
-carry her much myself, and papa did say she’d
-be in everybody’s way. I guess I’ll make a
-William Tell of her, if Maggie and Bessie
-will let me put her with theirs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, we will; and you can take a doll of
-moderation,” said Maggie, meaning that Belle
-could take a doll of moderate size.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think you’ll be seasick on the
-steamer?” asked Lily.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Pooh! no, I shan’t. I won’t be,” said
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps you can’t help it,” said Belle.
-“I’m sure I didn’t mean to be seasick when
-I came here in the steamer, but I couldn’t help
-it; and oh dear!&mdash;it’s&mdash;it is horrid.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is being seasick any thing like being
-homesick?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Not exactly; but the two things very often
-go together, darling,” said Aunt Bessie, laughing,
-and speaking from the next room.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I’m more determined than ever not
-to be it,” said Maggie, meaning seasick by
-“it.” “But then I couldn’t be homesick
-either, when I have so many of my own home
-people with me.”</p>
-
-<p>But, in spite of her determination, Maggie
-had privately a great dread of this same seasickness.
-She could not bear to be sick; not
-that she was impatient or cross when this was
-the case with her, but that she thought sickness,
-like sleep, was “a great waste of being
-alive.” She wanted to be able to run about<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
-and amuse herself all the time; and it was
-“such fun” to go to sea, that she was very
-much afraid lest any thing should interfere
-with her enjoyment of it.</p>
-
-<p>“They give people sour things when they
-are seasick,” said Belle, who, having once suffered
-in this way, thought herself entitled to
-give all necessary information on the subject.
-“That’s the only nice thing about it. They
-gave me lots of sour oranges and lemons.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Bessie and I don’t like sour things,
-so that won’t make it any better for us,” said
-Maggie, soberly. Nevertheless, she treasured
-Belle’s remark; and not seeing her way clearly
-to a private stock of oranges and lemons,
-she watched her opportunity when her little
-playmates were gone, and taking Patrick into
-her confidence, begged him to give her “two
-pickles and a whole lot of vinegar,” not to eat
-herself, because mamma would not allow that,
-but to be prepared, when all the rest of the
-family were seasick and she had to take care
-of them.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The good-natured Irishman, expressing
-great admiration at the “forethought of her,”
-furnished her with what she wanted; and
-Maggie went off, rejoicing in her spoils.</p>
-
-<p>The pickles were stowed away in the soup-tureen
-belonging to her doll’s dinner-set; and
-she contrived, when nurse and Jane were not
-looking, to slip them into a corner of one of
-the trunks. The vinegar she poured into a
-vial she had also obtained from Patrick; and
-as the cork did not fit very tightly, and she
-feared the liquid might run out if she put it
-into the trunk, she hid it in her bosom, heroically
-enduring the smell of the vinegar, which
-was exceedingly disagreeable to her, “for the
-sake of my family,” as she told Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>For Bessie’s quick little nose soon smelt out
-the vinegar, which she also disliked very
-much; and after several sniffs and exclamations
-of disgust from her, and much wondering
-as to where that “horrid, vinegarish
-smell did come from,” Maggie felt forced to
-tell her the secret which she had meant to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>
-keep until they were safely on board the
-steamer.</p>
-
-<p>But Bessie was by no means so struck with
-admiration as Patrick had been, and for once
-did not think Maggie’s plan a good one; at
-least not unless she could be persuaded to tell
-her mamma of it.</p>
-
-<p>“For you know, dear Maggie,” she said
-with a doubtful shake of her head, “mamma
-does not like us to keep secrets from her; and
-don’t you think she will know what is best to
-take?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I don’t know,” said Maggie, unwilling
-to give up her cherished plan; “maybe
-she won’t think about sour things, and I’m
-sure she’d be very thankful when she’s seasick,
-and finds an unexpected pickle just on
-hand.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think she’ll like it just as well if she
-knows about it before,” said Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span> “And I
-don’t believe it is quite right; and, besides, it
-is such a very bad-smelling secret to have.
-Tell her, and see what she will say.”</p>
-
-<p>But even as they were talking, they found
-that the “bad-smelling secret” had betrayed
-itself; for nurse, going to finish the packing of
-the trunk where the pickles were concealed,
-also perceived the scent of vinegar.</p>
-
-<p>“What have you been putting in here that
-smells so of vinegar?” she said to Jane.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing,” was the answer. “I’ve had no
-vinegar.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it’s here, surely,” said nurse, sniffing
-around in her turn: “it’s about this trunk,
-spilled on something I suppose: that’s some of
-your carelessness, Jane.” And Mammy, who
-was rather apt to snub her younger helpmate,
-lifted several articles in turn to her nose.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh dear! I’ll have to tell: she’s scolding
-poor Janey for it,” whispered Maggie, in great
-dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s this?” exclaimed nurse, when,
-having pulled out half a dozen things, she
-came upon the tiny tureen.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span> “Pickles! and the
-vinegar dribbled out of them on the master’s
-clean shirts. Well! that naughty Frankie!
-he’s gone beyond himself in such a trick as
-that. He’s been busy with your doll’s china,
-Maggie, my honey; but where in the world
-did he lay his mischievous hands on pickles?
-I’ll just speak my mind to Patrick for leaving
-them in the child’s reach. Pickles indeed!
-but he’s a pickle!”</p>
-
-<p>This was too much for Maggie. She could
-not hear her little brother and Patrick blamed,
-and she spoke out at once.</p>
-
-<p>“It was not Frankie who put them there,”
-she said: “it was I, and I want them to stay
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, they’ll not then,” said nurse.
-“Ye know your mother never lets ye touch
-them; and what a way would that be to take
-them anyhow? What ails ye the day, Maggie?
-I think the spirit of mischief has hold
-of ye.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie was displeased in her turn, and, as
-usual, was dignified and made use of all the
-long words she could think of, which were
-suitable to the case.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“If you interfere with my pickle arrangements,
-I shall not be responsible for the seasickness,”
-she said solemnly.</p>
-
-<p>“Responsible for the seasickness! I should
-think not,” said nurse, forgetting her vexation
-in her amusement, and bursting into a hearty
-laugh, in which she was joined by Jane; while
-Maggie stood swelling and indignant; “responsible
-for the seasickness! and what put
-that into your head, my lamb, and what do
-you think pickles stuffed into trunks have to
-do with it?”</p>
-
-<p>But Maggie was too much hurt and disappointed
-to answer, and could only reply
-with a nod to Bessie’s plea that she would let
-her explain.</p>
-
-<p>This was soon done; and nurse, sorry to see
-Maggie so grieved, said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The pickles would have done ye little good
-packed away in the trunk which ye will not
-see till we come to land again, honey; and
-don’t ye fret your little soul about it, for your
-mamma has provided all things needful; and I
-promise you if all the rest are taken down but
-yourself, ye shall play nurse to your heart’s
-content, and wait on everybody. Ye did
-mean to be considerate and thoughtful, I’m
-sure; but it’s always best for such young
-heads to take counsel of those that are wiser
-and older in such things.”</p>
-
-<p>Having allowed so much to be confessed,
-Maggie thought she might as well make a
-clean breast of the whole affair; and produced
-the bottle of vinegar, with many entreaties
-to be allowed to keep it. Nurse
-shook her head; but Mrs. Bradford came into
-the room just then, and she turned the matter
-over to her.</p>
-
-<p>Mamma laughed too when she heard the
-story, and told Maggie to give up her pickles
-and vinegar, and she would provide her with
-something better; so taking both the little
-girls into her own room, she delighted them
-by presenting each with a beautiful morocco
-satchel, just of a right size for small travellers,
-and with lock and key all complete, to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span>
-say nothing of a light chain by which they
-could be hung over the shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie was farther consoled by a bottle of
-smelling salts, one of hartshorn, and three
-lemons; and this she appeared to think a
-sufficient safeguard against seasickness for
-all the passengers and crew of the steamer.
-For the rest of the day her restless energies
-found satisfaction in locking and unlocking,
-arranging and rearranging this satchel and
-its contents, and the busy head and fingers
-were kept from farther mischief or hindering
-“help.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch1.jpg" width="200" height="111" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch2.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="II">II.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>AT SEA.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-a.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">“Are we at sea now, papa?” said Maggie,
-holding by her father’s hand as
-she jumped up and down on the
-deck of the steamer; “are we really at sea?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hardly at sea yet, little daughter: we are
-still going down the bay. When we are fairly
-at sea we shall lose sight of our own great
-city, where we have left grandmamma and
-the boys, and all the other dear ones.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie, who was by no means
-in such overflowing spirits as Maggie; “it’s
-rather sorrowful to leave so many of our own
-people behind us. I wish everybody could
-have come with us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then we’d have no one to write to,” said
-Maggie, who found consolation in all partings<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>
-in the thought of letter-writing, in which she
-delighted.</p>
-
-<p>“But, papa, will you tell us when we are
-really and truly at sea?”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll be apt to know that without telling,
-little maiden,” said a gentleman who was
-passing: “we have had high winds the last
-three days, and shall find it rough enough outside,
-I take it;” and he passed on.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s that, papa?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“That is the captain,” said Mr. Bradford.</p>
-
-<p>“What a nice face he has,” said the little
-girl.</p>
-
-<p>“What did he mean by ‘outside’?” asked
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“He meant outside of the bay or harbor.
-We are going now through what is called
-the Narrows, then we shall pass Sandy Hook,
-where the light-house is, and be fairly out at
-sea.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what did he mean by ‘rough’?”
-asked Maggie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, he meant the waves might be rather
-high, and toss and roll the ship about more
-than you would find quite comfortable.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I shan’t mind it,” said Maggie. “It
-will be fun.”</p>
-
-<p>“He meant you’d be seasick,” said Belle,
-with a wise shake of her head.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t believe he ever meant that,” answered
-Maggie, in a tone which said she considered
-the idea almost an insult. “He must
-see how well and strong I look.”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope you may be able to keep to your
-determination, my little girl,” said her father,
-smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, is this what people make such a fuss
-about?” said Maggie, when some time after
-the threatened rolling and pitching began: “I
-think it is lovely. But, then, papa,” she
-added presently, “perhaps it would be nicer
-if you would ask that good-natured-looking
-captain not to let the ship do it quite so much.
-It seems to make my head so very <em>bobbly</em>.”</p>
-
-<p>“The captain cannot help it, dear,” said
-her father, looking half in pity, half in amusement,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span>
-at the face which Maggie was making
-such desperate efforts to keep smiling and unconcerned.
-“The waves roll the vessel about
-in this way, and you know the captain does
-not rule them. We must bear it as we can;
-but I hope by and by you will become used to
-it, and not mind it so much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I don’t <em>mind</em> it, papa,” said Maggie,
-still determined that these rolling waves
-should not conquer her; “at least not so very
-much, and I’m not a bit seasick; only&mdash;only&mdash;I
-don’t think the sea is quite so very comfortable
-to be on as the land: do you?”</p>
-
-<p>Hapless little Maggie! Half an hour more,
-and the “bobbly” head lay in mamma’s lap,
-hands and feet hung helplessly, chattering
-tongue was still, save for an occasional piteous,
-“O mamma!” and the merry dancing
-eyes, usually so wide-open and quick to notice
-all around them, were closed as though they
-never cared to lift their lids again. Even the
-new satchel had lost its charm, and hung unheeded
-at her side. Its cherished contents,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span>
-which she had intended to be of so much use
-to others, proved of none to herself. Lemons,
-smelling salts, hartshorn, and many other
-remedies, were tried without success; and it
-would have been hard to find a more wretched
-little girl than was poor Maggie, for the next
-twenty-four hours. Belle and Lily were too
-ill themselves to feel at all inclined to triumph
-over the failure of Maggie’s “determination;”
-though I do not think they would have been
-unkind enough to do so, had they been ever
-so well.</p>
-
-<p>As for Bessie, she made what the captain
-called “a capital little sailor,” and to her fell
-the part of nurse, which Maggie had intended
-to fill. And never was a more gentle, tender,
-thoughtful young nurse than our little “princess,”
-handy and knowing enough for seven-and-twenty
-instead of seven years old. Now
-she was rubbing Maggie’s cold hands, now
-bathing Belle’s dizzy, aching head with such
-soothing fingers; now coaxing Lily to take
-one of those oranges which were to work such<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span>
-wonders; now amusing baby, for Mammy was
-in a bad way too, and mamma’s attention was
-pretty well taken up with her poor Maggie;
-now showing a picture-book to some fretful
-child whose mother was too ill to attend to it.
-Always ready not only to do, but to see where
-and how she could do, some small service for a
-sufferer, she went about from one to another
-like some dainty little fairy, with a mission of
-healing and kindness. So long as she could
-keep her feet, which was not always possible,
-the rolling of the ship only troubled her by
-the distress it brought to others, especially
-Maggie; but all her pleasure in her beloved
-sea was lost in her sympathy for her sister.
-It was so strange and unusual to see Maggie
-lying helpless and subdued, with no thought
-or care for any thing about her, that it made
-Bessie herself very miserable; and she could
-scarcely believe her father’s assurances that
-Maggie was not going to die, and would probably
-soon feel better.</p>
-
-<p>But she thought despair and misery could<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span>
-go no farther upon the following morning,
-when, having dressed Margaret Bessie Marion
-and Margaret Colonel Horace Rush in
-the new travelling suits Aunt Annie had made
-for them, and combed their “real live hair,”
-she brought them and placed one on each side
-of Maggie, as she lay among the pile of pillows
-and shawls papa had arranged for her
-upon the deck.</p>
-
-<p>“Maggie dear,” she said coaxingly, “would
-it not comfort you a little to hold Bessie
-Margaret Marion? She looks so sweet.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” moaned Maggie, without opening her
-eyes: “I never want her again, Bessie, never.
-You can have her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no!” said Bessie, cheerily: “you’ll
-want her when you feel better, and I hope that
-will be pretty soon.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Maggie again: “I’ll never be
-better. And, Bessie, I think I’d better tell
-you my will. I’m too sick to write it myself,
-but you can remember.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you’re not going to die,” answered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span>
-Bessie, dropping the doll upon her lap and
-looking at Maggie in fresh dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I feel it,” said Maggie, with a tragic
-whisper and shake of her head.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, dear! Papa said not, and the
-doctor said so too. They said people hardly
-ever died of seasickness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I’m one of the ‘hardly evers,’ Bessie,”
-persisted Maggie, seeming, poor child, to
-find some relief in the idea; “and I’d better
-make my will, and tell you who I want my playthings
-and other <em>possessings</em> to go to.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie did not know whether to be most
-alarmed at Maggie’s words, or consoled by her
-belief that her father and the doctor must
-know best; and she listened in silence while
-Maggie went on, speaking slowly and with
-many pauses.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You can have all my dolls, Bessie, ’cept
-Josephine Matilda, and she’ll be good for
-Baby, ’cause she’s Indian rubber and can’t be
-broken; and mamma my prize writing-desk,
-and papa my new satchel; and my doll’s tea
-set, the white and gilt one for you, and the
-blue one for Lily; same with the dinner-sets&mdash;only,
-red for Belle&mdash;and my tin kitchen
-too&mdash;oh! I can’t tell any more&mdash;oh! mamma&mdash;mamma!”
-and here poor Maggie’s will
-came abruptly to an end.</p>
-
-<p>But things brightened towards the latter
-part of that day, for they came into smoother
-waters; and Maggie, as well as all the other
-seasick passengers, began to feel easier.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” said the captain, pausing as he
-came by to look at the little, pale, tired face
-upon the pillows: “is this the jolly little woman
-who came on board yesterday afternoon?
-Why, this will not do. I shall have to take
-her in hand myself, Mrs. Bradford: will you
-let me turn doctor?”</p>
-
-<p>“Most certainly, Captain, if you can do
-any thing to relieve her. Every thing seems
-to fail except time and patience, and of the
-last my poor child has shown a fair sample,”
-answered the anxious mother.</p>
-
-<p>With a nod to Maggie, who, at the sound<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span>
-of his hearty, cheery voice had half opened
-her eyes to look at him, and another to Bessie,
-who sat upon the edge of her sister’s couch,
-he walked away; coming back after a little
-while, followed by the steward carrying a small
-tray. On the tray were two plates, the one
-holding a crisp slice of brown toast; the other,
-something which Bessie thought very uninviting,
-a dry, rather black-looking herring.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder if he is going to ask Maggie to
-eat that thing,” she said to herself. “Idea of
-it! I know she never can do it. I’m afraid
-he’s not so very nice as he looks, and that he
-has very poor sense.”</p>
-
-<p>But the captain asked Maggie nothing about
-the herring; but, sitting down beside her, he
-took the tray from the steward, and cutting
-a small bit from the fish, he held it to Maggie’s
-lips. Maggie turned away her head in disgust,
-in which Bessie sympathized.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, come,” said the captain,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span> “every
-one has to do as I say on this ship, especially
-when I turn doctor.”</p>
-
-<p>He did not smile, though he looked as good-natured
-and pleasant as ever; and, doubtful if
-he were in joke or in earnest, Maggie reluctantly
-took the bit of fish from the fork, and
-then a mouthful of the toast, which she swallowed
-with the same martyr-like air. Another
-and another followed, taken with less and less
-reluctance; till at last Bessie was surprised
-to see Maggie’s eyes remain open, and fix
-themselves rather longingly upon the plate, as
-if she wished the captain would make the intervals
-shorter. He took no notice, however,
-but fed her slowly, till fish and toast had both
-entirely disappeared, when he said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I think we shall do now. I’ll be back
-in half an hour, Mrs. Bradford, to see how my
-patient here is getting on,” and walked away.</p>
-
-<p>“Maggie,” said Bessie, as soon as he had
-gone, “wasn’t that meal very nas&mdash;, I mean
-rather disagreeable?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, no,” said Maggie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span> “it was delicious;
-and I think that captain is lovely, Bessie. He’s
-the best doctor ever I saw. The next time I
-come to sea&mdash;which I hope I never will again&mdash;I’ll
-put herring in my satchel ’stead of
-lemons. They never did me a bit of good.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie privately thought this worse than
-the “pickle arrangement;” but since the captain’s
-prescription had done Maggie so much
-good, she had nothing more to say against it
-or him; and when he came back at the promised
-time it was to find his little patient beginning
-to look like herself, and talking and
-smiling with something of her accustomed
-brightness.</p>
-
-<p>This was the last of Maggie’s seasickness,
-and by the next morning she was nearly as
-lively and well as usual; though she now and
-then fell into a fit of thought, as if she were
-considering some knotty question; and she
-was observed to regard Margaret Bessie
-Marion with more than usual interest, and
-to give her a great amount of petting and
-tending. At length the question which was
-weighing on her mind found words.</p>
-
-<p>“Papa,” she said,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span> “don’t lawyers know
-about wills?”</p>
-
-<p>“They ought to, Maggie,” answered Mr.
-Bradford. “Why, you don’t want to make
-yours, do you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I have made it, papa,” said Maggie, with
-all the gravity of a judge. “I told Bessie
-about it, but I want to know if it’s against
-the law to undo the things you’ve willed, if
-you don’t die when you thought you were
-going to.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all,” said papa, laughing: “you
-may make your will, and ‘undo it’ as often
-as you please, while you are living.”</p>
-
-<p>“For the people won’t be disappointed as
-long as they don’t know you’ve willed them
-the things,” said Maggie, meditatively. “Anyhow,
-I s’pose my people would be more disappointed
-to have me die, than not to have
-my things.”</p>
-
-<p>“They would indeed, little daughter,” said
-her father, drawing her tenderly to him:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
-“to lose our Maggie would be to take a great
-deal of sunshine out of the lives of ‘your
-people.’”</p>
-
-<p>“And I know Bessie don’t care for my
-dollies so long as we can play with them
-together: do you, Bessie?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no! Maggie; and if I hadn’t you, I
-should never play again, but be sorrowful all
-my life;” and Bessie put on an air of extreme
-melancholy at the bare idea of such a possibility.</p>
-
-<p>So this matter being settled to the satisfaction
-of all, and Maggie feeling like her own
-self once more, she and Bessie were free to
-enjoy all the new pleasures about them.</p>
-
-<p>They were a merry, happy party, those four
-little girls, Maggie, Bessie, Belle, and Lily;
-always pleasant and good-natured with one
-another; never fretting or quarrelling in their
-play. As for Maggie, her new friend the
-captain used to call her “Little Make-the-best-of-it;”
-for her sunny temper found so much
-good in all things, and so many reasons why
-all that was, was best.</p>
-
-<p>He escorted the young quartette all over the
-steamer, taking them down into the machine<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span>
-rooms, where they saw the great furnaces
-glowing with hot coals, and tended by strong
-men in scarlet shirts, with their sleeves rolled
-up to the shoulders; where the iron beam and
-pistons went up and down, up and down, without
-a moment’s pause or irregularity; where
-each little wheel and joint went steadily on
-doing its appointed work, without which the
-huge machinery must have stood motionless
-and useless.</p>
-
-<p>The sympathies of the children, especially
-those of Maggie, were greatly excited in behalf
-of a man whom they saw watching the steam
-dial plates at the upper end of the engine
-room. There were three of these plates, the
-centre one very large, the other two smaller;
-and the man paced up and down the narrow
-platform in front, almost without a moment’s
-pause, turning his eyes every now and then to
-the dials.</p>
-
-<p>“What funny clocks,” said Bessie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span> “and
-how that man watches them! Why is he so
-anxious about the time?”</p>
-
-<p>“Only one of them is a clock,” said the
-captain; “the others are to show how much
-steam we have on, and how it is working, and
-if all is right.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie did not understand, and said so; and
-the captain, taking her up in his arms, tried to
-explain the use and working of the dials to the
-little girls; but it was rather a difficult matter
-for them to take in, and I do not know that he
-made it very clear to them.</p>
-
-<p>“But I want to know about that man,” said
-Maggie: “does he have to walk here and look
-at these things all the time?”</p>
-
-<p>“All the time,” said Captain Brooks.</p>
-
-<p>“Doesn’t he eat and sleep?” asked Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! to be sure,” said the captain. “I
-said he was here all the time; but I should
-have said a man was here all the time; for
-there is another who takes his turn while this
-one rests.”</p>
-
-<p>“But are you not tired sometimes?” Bessie
-asked of the man, who just then came to the
-end of the platform where she was.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>He nodded assent as he turned, but made
-no answer in words, did not even smile, being
-a grum-looking man, and seeming altogether
-intent on his dials.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s not very polite just to nod at you
-and not speak,” said Lily.</p>
-
-<p>“It is against the rule of the ship for him
-to talk while he is on duty, and he always
-keeps the rule,” said the captain.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Maggie, her pity more than
-ever roused for the object of her interest:
-“does he have to walk on this little bit of a
-place with nothing to amuse him, and can’t
-even talk? I think that is pretty hard: <em>I</em> never
-could do it.”</p>
-
-<p>“But if he were talking and chatting with
-every one who came along, and thinking only
-of his own amusement, he would forget his
-work and have his attention taken off from
-those plates which it is his business to watch
-constantly,” said the captain.</p>
-
-<p>“And then we’d be blown up or burnt up
-or drowned or something,” said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Not as bad as that, I hope,” said Captain
-Brooks, smiling; “but something might
-readily go wrong before he perceived it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It seems like watching conscience all the
-time for fear we do something naughty,” said
-Bessie, who had been thoughtfully regarding
-the man since she last spoke. “If we forget
-conscience, or don’t pay attention where it
-points, we can be naughty before we know
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just so,” said the captain, looking at her
-half in amusement, half in surprise; “but tell
-me, little one, do you find some moral lesson
-in every thing?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know what ‘moral’ is, sir,” said
-Bessie, demurely; “but I think that man is a
-pretty good lesson to us.”</p>
-
-<p>Here roguish Lily, for whom the prospect of
-being “blown up or burnt up or drowned or
-something,” did not seem to have any terrors,
-and who had been all this time trying to distract
-the watchman’s attention by shaking her
-head and finger at him, flirting her pocket-handkerchief,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span>
-and giving little squeaks and
-“hems,” all without any avail, suddenly astonished
-him and accomplished her object, by
-firing a paper pellet which hit him directly
-between the eyes. The gruff old fellow only
-gave her a growl in return, however, and recommenced
-his pacing up and down; but Lily
-went capering about in an ecstasy of delight at
-her unlooked-for success, till the captain, who
-could not help laughing, called her to order
-with,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Here, here, you elf! have done with your
-monkey tricks, or I shall shut you up in a cage
-till we get to shore.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve none large enough,” said laughing
-Lily.</p>
-
-<p>“There are plenty of hencoops on board,”
-said the captain, pretending to look fierce,
-“and carpenters too, to make any sized cage I
-may order. You had better look out.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think it’s fair to tease the poor
-man,” said Bessie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span> “he has to be so stupid all
-the time, and he is so dutiful too. Let’s go
-away, Captain Brooks, and not let him be
-teased any more.”</p>
-
-<p>So the captain took them away in search of
-other novelties; but Maggie and Bessie did
-not forget “the poor, stupid man,” as the latter
-called him, meaning only that she thought
-he passed his time in such a dull, uninteresting
-manner; and they set their young wits to
-work to see if they could not do him some
-kindness.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see the good of it,” said Lily.
-“The captain said he was a surly old fellow,
-any way, and didn’t care to talk much when
-he could. I guess we’d better just let him
-alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“We oughtn’t to judge by appearances,”
-said Maggie, gravely. “Bessie and I have
-learned that.”</p>
-
-<p>“But not till we’d performed some pretty
-bad mistakes,” said Bessie: “so take a lesson
-of us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell us about them,” said Belle; and accordingly
-Belle and Lily were much interested<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span>
-in hearing of Lem and the silver cup, and of
-Aunt Patty; Maggie also confessing how she
-had for a long time misjudged Mrs. Jones, of
-Quam Beach, because she had a disagreeable
-manner.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch2-and-9.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch3-and-11.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="III">III.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>LUCY.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-o.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">Old ocean seemed to wish to make
-amends, during the last two days of
-the short voyage, for the tossing and
-rolling he had given our friends during the
-first. It was as smooth as a river almost,
-and broke itself up into little wavelets which
-seemed formed only to sparkle and catch the
-sunshine. The weather was warm and summer-like,
-growing more and more so the farther
-south they went; and the children spent
-the whole of their time on deck, even taking
-their meals there: for though Maggie declared
-herself “all right now,” she could not eat
-when taken below, and it was “such fun” to
-have breakfast, dinner, and tea, sent up to
-them and eaten on deck in such <i>impromptu</i><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span>
-fashion, that the others were only too glad of
-the excuse of bearing her company. Mamma
-and Mrs. Norris preferred it too; so they had
-quite a sociable, cosey time of it.</p>
-
-<p>As for Bessie, she wanted “no better contentment”
-than to sit watching the sea. The
-sky; the waves; the white sea-gulls, which now
-and then came sailing round on their snowy
-wings; the other vessels they saw in the far
-distance, or sometimes near at hand; the huge
-porpoises which threw themselves with a sudden
-leap and plunge out from the water and
-back again,&mdash;each and all had their charm for
-her; and, if undisturbed, she would sit for
-hours, her doll clasped in her arms, gazing her
-fill, and thinking her own thoughts. Happy,
-peaceful thoughts they were too, if one might
-judge by the expression of her sweet little face.</p>
-
-<p>“How my Bessie loves the sea, does she
-not?” said her father, sitting down beside her
-one time when he found her thus absorbed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, papa, dearly; but then I love the real
-sea better.”</p>
-
-<p>“But this is the real sea, darling.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I mean the <em>real, real</em> sea, papa; the
-true, <em>very</em> sea,” said the little girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not know how you could have more
-real sea than this, dear,” said her father, rather
-at a loss to know what she could mean.
-“We are many, many miles from land. You
-can see none on any side. It is water, water,
-the real true ocean, all around us, as far and
-farther than our eyes can reach. You do not
-mean that you would have it rough and
-stormy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, papa!” Bessie answered, rather
-puzzled herself how to make her meaning plain
-to her father; “but I mean that kind of sea
-where the waves come slowly, slowly on the
-beach, all white and curly, and make that nice
-sound I like so much. It does not come in this
-kind of a sea.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, ho!” said her father,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span> “I understand.
-It is the <em>seashore</em> you are longing for, even
-more than the open sea itself. Well, perhaps
-one of these days, you may be there again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! do you think I might be, papa? Oh,
-that would be so delightful!” and she turned
-her little, eager, wistful face to her father with
-such a sparkle in her eye.</p>
-
-<p>“I think it more than likely that such a
-thing will come to pass, Bessie,” said Mr.
-Bradford; but he did not tell her what a pleasant
-surprise awaited her in the course of her
-summer travels.</p>
-
-<p>“Papa,” she said again presently, “do not
-these dear little waves we have to-day make
-you think of our Maggie? They seem just
-like her, as if they were dancing and laughing,
-and so glad and gay.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said her father, pleased at the pretty
-conceit of the affectionate little sister, “and
-God’s sunshine, pouring down upon these
-merry waves and touching them with light and
-sparkle, is like the love and tenderness which
-make our Maggie’s heart so gay and happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I am a little bit of Maggie’s sunshine:
-am I not, papa?” asked the sweet Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>The reply came in a squeeze, half a dozen<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span>
-smothering kisses, and a squeal meant to express
-affection and delight, from Maggie herself,
-who, coming up behind them and hearing
-Bessie’s question, answered after her own peculiar
-fashion.</p>
-
-<p>Yes: they were both true sunbeams, these
-two dear little girls: sunbeams as all children
-may be, because they were happy; happy because
-they were good and generous and loving;
-sunbeams to one another and to all around
-them, shedding light and brightness wherever
-they passed.</p>
-
-<p>“Bessie,” said Maggie, when she had done
-hugging and kissing her sister, “I’ve made
-a very surprising discovery. Do you see that
-little girl sitting over there? I’ve seen her
-before.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Bessie. “She’s a kind of
-errand girl and helps the stewardess. Yesterday
-morning when you were so sick she
-brought some ice for you; but I didn’t speak
-to her, ’cause I felt so bad about you.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, do you know who her father is, Bessie?”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Bessie. “Who?”</p>
-
-<p>“That man downstairs, the steam-clock
-man. Isn’t that very curious?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes. How did you find out, Maggie?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Belle and Lily and I were there,
-while you looked at the water, and that child
-came and stood by us; and she looked so
-very wishful at our dolls, that I told her she
-might hold Bessie Margaret Marion a little
-while if she would be careful of her; and you
-don’t know how pleased she seemed then; and,
-Bessie, what do you think, the poor child never
-had a doll in her life, ’cept only a rag one,
-and she has no mother or sisters or any one
-but her father; and the captain lets her live
-with her father on board the steamer; and she
-tries to help the stewardess and run about;
-and she don’t like the sea a bit, she is so tired
-of being on it most all the time; and she’s just
-my age, only a year older; and Lily asked
-her if her father was a cross patch to her, and
-she was rather mad at that, and said no: he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span>
-was good and kind as could be, and she loved
-him dearly. And so I told her Lily did not
-mean to make her mad,&mdash;only we thought
-perhaps she did not find him very interesting
-’cause he would not talk much. But she did
-not seem to like that very much either: so I
-said, very quickly, that maybe the reason her
-father did not talk much was because he had
-so much thinking to do; and then she looked
-pleased again, and said yes, that was it, but
-he always talked enough to her. And then I
-told her I felt so very sorry for him, ’cause he
-had to walk up and down that little place,
-with nothing to do but to look at those old
-clock things; and I knew I never could be so
-strict with my duty, for I would be sure to
-laugh or talk or something.”</p>
-
-<p>“And didn’t she look pleased when you said
-that about her father?” asked Bessie, when
-Maggie had come to the end of this long story.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes! And she said he did not like
-to do it, but he had to make a living,” answered
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I’m real sorry for both of them,” said
-Bessie. “You know, Maggie, we said we
-would like to be kind to him if we could,
-’cause he had such a stupid time; and I s’pose
-he would be just as pleased if we did a kind
-thing to his girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie: “if he’s a dutiful
-father, he would. I was thinking we might
-give her a doll to amuse herself with.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not one of ours?” said Bessie, holding
-Margaret Colonel Horace fast, as if she
-thought she was to be taken from her at once.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no! We never could give up these
-dolls,” said Maggie. “We love them too
-much; and besides the Colonel gave them to
-us, so it would never do. But then, you know,
-we have some of our own money with us;
-and I thought when the steamer stopped going
-and we come to that part of the world that
-is land again, maybe we might find a toy-store
-and buy her a doll of her own.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie. “Papa, do they have
-stores in Savannah?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Plenty,” answered papa, “and doubtless
-we shall find a toy-store without trouble.”</p>
-
-<p>“And we may buy Lucy a doll, may we not,
-papa?” said Maggie. “You see, it’s pretty
-hard for a child to have no relations, or dolls,
-or other advantages, except only a father.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mr. Bradford, laughing, “if
-you choose to spend your money to give pleasure
-to this little girl, who is so poorly off, you
-may certainly do so.”</p>
-
-<p>The children were delighted with their
-papa’s consent; and when Belle and Lily
-heard of the plan, they begged Maggie and
-Bessie to let them join in giving this pleasure
-to the poor child who had so few enjoyments.
-Maggie and Bessie readily agreed: and it was
-settled that when they reached Savannah, one
-of the first things to be done should be the
-purchase of a doll for Lucy Waters; for such
-was the name of the little girl.</p>
-
-<p>Our four young friends were not the only
-children on the steamer with whom Lucy had
-something to do, as you shall hear.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Father,” she said, as she sat upon his
-knee that evening, while he was off duty,
-“there are some nice little girls on board,
-this trip.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph!” was all the answer she received;
-for, in spite of Lucy’s assertion that her father
-talked enough to her, he did not throw away
-too many words, even upon her: but Lucy was
-used to his way, and did not mind it, for she
-knew he loved her dearly.</p>
-
-<p>“There are,” she insisted. “One of them
-let me take her doll, and it can turn its head;
-and she let me do it, and move its arms too.
-And another one was kind to me when some
-other children said bad things to me. There
-they are, father: don’t you see them?” and
-she pointed to where Maggie and Bessie were
-sitting, with their father and mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Thought so,” said Waters, who was not
-really surly, but only silent and unsociable.</p>
-
-<p>“Why how, father! Did you know about
-it?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied her father, “but thought like<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>
-enough it was them when you said some spoke
-nice to you. Seem like kindly, loving, little
-souls.”</p>
-
-<p>“There are two more nice ones, that play
-with ’em,” said Lucy.</p>
-
-<p>“Humph!” said Waters again, “one of ’em
-is a saucy mischief, I guess.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Lucy, “I know which one
-you mean. They call her Lily. I didn’t like
-her so much at first; but I do now, ’cause she
-slapped a boy’s face who said hateful things
-to me.”</p>
-
-<p>If Lucy imagined her father would ask what
-the boy had said, she was mistaken; for he
-smoked away without a word more. But the
-memory of her wrongs was too great to be
-borne in silence, and presently she said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Are not my clothes very nice, father?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nice as I can afford, anyhow,” he answered
-without taking his pipe from his lips.</p>
-
-<p>“I told that boy and his sisters they were
-as nice as anybody’s,” said Lucy; “but maybe
-they’re not.” And taking off her bonnet, she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span>
-turned it round and round, eying it rather
-mournfully. “I don’t think this kind of a hat
-is so nice as those little girls’, father; nor
-this long apron so nice as their short frocks.
-I wonder if I couldn’t make ’em look better,
-so folks wouldn’t laugh at me.”</p>
-
-<p>Now, I think Waters was somewhat mistaken
-when he said Lucy’s clothes were as nice
-as he could afford. He had good wages, and
-his little girl did not want for what was necessary
-to make her neat and comfortable: but
-he did not know how to dress her; and the
-enormous shaker bonnet, which would have
-fitted a grown woman; and long, scant apron
-which came to her feet,&mdash;cost no less, perhaps
-more, than the short frock and round straw
-hat, which would have been more convenient
-and suitable for a girl of her age.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Lucy knew she looked very different
-from most children of her own size; but, although
-she kept herself very tidy, she did not
-see how she was to remedy this difficulty. She
-was a funny little figure, certainly: more so than<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span>
-she was aware of; but it had never troubled
-her much until this afternoon, when some
-rude but well-dressed boys and girls, who
-would have been very indignant if they had
-been told they were not half so well-bred and
-polite as the engineer’s little daughter, had
-annoyed her very much.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie and Bessie had noticed these children,
-but, seeing how rough and boisterous
-they were, had rather avoided them. But
-that afternoon, while they, with Belle and
-Lily, were talking to Lucy, and asking her
-some questions about her homeless, seafaring
-life, these boys and girls came up to them.</p>
-
-<p>Not having at that moment any dispute to
-settle among themselves, they were ready to
-band together against any one else; and Lucy
-presented a tempting mark for attack.</p>
-
-<p>“Ho! you seem to have picked up a fine
-acquaintance there!” said Arthur Lathrop, the
-eldest of the brothers.</p>
-
-<p>“She is dressed in the last fashion,” said
-Charlotte, his sister, with a scornful look at
-Lucy.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Quite the style,” joined in the other boy.
-“You brought your bonnet from the Paris
-Exposition: did you not, ma’am?”</p>
-
-<p>Poor Lucy had not the least idea what the
-Paris Exposition was; but she knew very well
-that these unkind children were making fun
-of her, and she drew back with a hurt and
-angry look.</p>
-
-<p>“Couldn’t you give my sisters the pattern
-of that lovely bonnet?” said Arthur.</p>
-
-<p>“And of that outside toggery too,” said
-William, “whatever its name is. Not being
-used to such an elegant style of dress, I don’t
-know what to call it.”</p>
-
-<p>“You ought to be ashamed to talk so,” said
-Bessie, indignantly. “She’s a nice, good, little
-girl, who tries to be a help to every one; and
-if her clothes are not so very pretty, she can’t
-help it. It is better to have good clothes and
-be bad, than to have bad clothes and be good,”
-added the little girl, saying just the opposite
-of what she intended.</p>
-
-<p>But no one noticed her mistake. The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span>
-Lathrops were all too intent on their victim,
-the other little ones too full of sympathy and
-indignation, to pay much heed to a choice of
-words.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” returned William, provokingly,
-“don’t we say she is the most stylish, fashionable
-young lady we have seen this long time.
-For me, I am struck dumb with admiration.”</p>
-
-<p>“To be sure,” said Charlotte, “didn’t you
-say that bonnet was the latest fashion from
-the Exposition?”</p>
-
-<p>“Or from Noah’s ark: which is it? Pray
-tell us, miss,” put in Arthur with a loud laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Let her be, you bad boys,” said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“She looks a great deal nicer than any of
-you,” said Lily, too anxious to take up Lucy’s
-defence to think of the exact truth of her
-statement.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! of course, of course,” retorted Arthur.
-“She is quite a model. I propose we
-all ask our mothers to buy us just such
-clothes. Don’t leave us, Miss Elegance;” and
-he caught hold of poor Lucy, who had turned
-to run away.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Let her be,” said Lily.</p>
-
-<p>“You’re very ungrateful,” said Maggie.
-“This morning when you called the stewardess,
-I saw Lucy run very quick to call her.
-You ought to be ashamed all of you. You’re
-as bad as the Elisha children in the Bible,
-that were eaten up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you going to let her go?” asked
-Lily, with a threatening shake of her head
-at the young tyrant, who still held Lucy fast.</p>
-
-<p>“As soon as she tells us how many hundred
-dollars she paid for this love of a bonnet,”
-said Arthur, tossing off the unlucky
-shaker with a jerk of his thumb and finger.</p>
-
-<p>Without another word, Lily reached up her
-small hand, and gave the big boy a sounding
-slap upon his cheek. In his surprise, he
-loosed his hold of Lucy, who quickly snatched
-up her bonnet, and made good her escape.</p>
-
-<p>Arthur turned fiercely upon Lily; but she
-stood her ground, and not exactly caring,
-bully though he was, to strike back at a girl
-so much smaller than himself, he contented<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span>
-himself with catching her still uplifted hand
-in his, and saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“How dare you do that?”</p>
-
-<p>“’Cause you deserved it,” said Lily, sternly.</p>
-
-<p>“And I’ve a good mind to give you another,”
-said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“Children! Children!” said Mr. Powers,
-who had seen from a distance that trouble
-was threatening, and had come to prevent it.
-“What is the matter here? Quarrelling and
-striking?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m striking,” said Lily, rather proud of
-having given a blow in what she considered
-a just cause; “but I’m not quarrelling, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, papa,” said Belle. “We’re not quarrelling:
-it’s only those bad, mean ones;” and
-she pointed at the Lathrops with as much
-scorn in her tone and manner as they had
-used towards Lucy.</p>
-
-<p>But these children, knowing right well that
-their share in the dispute was by far the worst,
-did not choose to face Mr. Powers’s inquiries,
-and now scattered in all directions.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Striking and calling names look a good deal
-like quarrelling,” said Mr. Powers, smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“But we had to take Lucy’s side, papa,”
-said Belle; and neither she nor Lily was to be
-persuaded that it was not right for the latter
-to strike a blow in Lucy’s defence. Indeed,
-Maggie and Bessie were rather inclined to
-hold the same opinion, and all four were quite
-excited over Lucy’s wrongs.</p>
-
-<p>While Lucy was telling her father the story,
-they were talking it over among themselves;
-and knowing, in spite of their sympathy, that
-she presented rather a comical figure, were
-trying to think of some means by which they
-might help her to dress herself more like
-other children. But they did not see exactly
-how it was to be done, nor did Mrs. Bradford
-when they consulted her.</p>
-
-<p>“I fear it would not do to offer Lucy
-clothes, my darlings,” she said:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span> “those she
-wears, though odd-looking, are good and
-comfortable; and her father might be offended
-if we offered her any thing which seemed like
-charity, or let him know that we do not think
-her properly dressed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma,” said Bessie, gravely, “do you
-think a thing is comfortable when it makes a
-child laughed at?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no, dear, perhaps not,” answered
-Mrs. Bradford, smiling, “and I am very sorry
-for Lucy. Mrs. Norris and I were saying
-this morning that we wished we might tell
-the poor child how to make herself look less
-like a little old woman, but we thought it
-would not do to interfere.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d wish somebody would interfere if it
-was me,” said Maggie. “It must be most <em>too</em>
-much to have a father who won’t talk, and
-who has such very bad taste.”</p>
-
-<p>This was said with so much emphasis, and
-with such a long-drawn sigh at the end, as if
-the mere thought of such misfortune were almost
-too much for Maggie, that every one
-laughed.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie had less to say about Lucy’s troubles
-than any of the others; but she thought more<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span>
-of them: for we know how sensitive she herself
-was to ridicule, and she could not bear to
-think that Lucy might have to undergo the
-same trial again.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma,” she said, coming to her mother’s
-side that evening, “there are Lucy and her
-father sitting at the head of those steps, and
-she is showing him those queer dressing-gown
-frocks of hers. Could I go and speak to
-them?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Bradford turned to see if it was a proper
-place for Bessie to go to, and then gave her
-permission, thinking that her little girl might
-possibly see some way to help Lucy, and trusting
-to her good sense and kind heart not to say
-any thing that might give offence.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe they’re not just the right shape,”
-said the engineer, as Bessie came near; “but I
-don’t know how you are to better them;” and
-he turned over and over the two frocks, just
-like the one Lucy had on, which lay across his
-knee. “Maybe Dorothy would show you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like to ask her,” said Lucy; or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
-Dorothy the stewardess, was rather sharp and
-short with her.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie came close.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you be offended if some one tried
-to be kind to Lucy?” she asked, seizing her
-opportunity.</p>
-
-<p>She was quite surprised to see how pleasantly
-Waters smiled as he answered,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Not I. Those that are friends to my Lucy
-are friends to me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Some children laughed at her,” said Bessie,
-wishing to put the case as gently as she
-could.</p>
-
-<p>The engineer frowned and nodded.</p>
-
-<p>“I told him,” said Lucy.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s no excuse for them,” continued
-Bessie, looking out over the waters as if she
-were talking more to herself than to the man,
-“but perhaps they would not have done it, if&mdash;if&mdash;if
-Lucy’s clothes were&mdash;were a little
-prettier.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“And I’ll warrant if your power was as
-good as your will, you’d make them prettier
-for her,” answered the engineer. “You’re a
-kind little lady. Lucy was just asking me if
-I could tell her how to fix up her things a bit;
-but I don’t know. Old Mrs. Sims, who does
-her washing and sewing, she bought them,
-and I didn’t see but they were all right; but
-now Lucy says they’re not, and she can’t do
-’em over.”</p>
-
-<p>Lucy stood listening in amazement to this
-unusually long speech from her father, who
-was very rarely so sociable with any one as he
-now was with Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“But you wouldn’t mind if mamma was to
-try and help her, would you?” Bessie asked
-in a coaxing voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Mind!” said the engineer, “I’d be only
-too thankful, and so would my Lucy; but such
-a lady as your mamma doesn’t want to bother
-with a little stranger girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, she does!” said Bessie, eagerly,
-“and mamma don’t think it a bit of bother if
-she can do a kind thing for some one; and
-she said she would like to fix Lucy up, ’cause<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span>
-she was such a nice, tidy child. Come and
-show her these, Lucy;” and without waiting for
-more words, she snatched up one gown, and
-taking Lucy by the hand drew her after her,
-telling her to bring the other two with her.</p>
-
-<p>Lucy obeyed rather timidly; but the kind
-manner and words of the two ladies, Mrs.
-Bradford and Mrs. Norris, soon put her at her
-ease, and she became deeply interested in the
-plans for putting what Bessie called “the
-dressing-gown” frocks into proper shape.</p>
-
-<p>There were four of them, all alike, of a
-good but dull gingham, without the least shape
-or fit, save what was given by a string about
-the waist; very long and scant,&mdash;so scant,
-that the ladies decided it would take two to
-make one suitable frock. Lucy asked and
-readily obtained leave from her father for this;
-and Mrs. Bradford allowed the four little girls
-to begin the work that very night by ripping
-apart the seams.</p>
-
-<p>She and Mrs. Norris went to work also
-that evening; and when the steamer came<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span>
-into port the following night, Lucy was made
-happy by having one dress made in a manner
-proper for a girl of her age; and knowing that
-the second was surely promised to her by Mrs.
-Bradford. Belle presented her with “the doll
-of moderation,” which she had brought with
-her, she and her young friends having concluded
-to keep their money for another purpose
-instead of buying a new one.</p>
-
-<p>The day on which the vessel started on her
-return voyage, Mr. Bradford and Mr. Powers
-drove down with their little daughters and
-Lily Norris; and the children brought Lucy
-not only her own gingham frock, but also two
-others, of bright, simple calico, all nicely made
-up; and a straw hat with a blue ribbon upon it.
-These were all their own presents, bought with
-their own money, only the making having been
-paid for by their mammas; so that the engineer
-could find no fault with the kindness done
-to his little girl by these thoughtful young
-strangers.</p>
-
-<p>Lucy was contented beyond measure with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span>
-her new clothes; but no words could do justice
-to her satisfaction and pleasure in her doll.
-What a treasure it was! What a delight in
-her rather lonely little life! She talked to it,
-and caressed it, slept with it in her arms at
-night, kissed it the first thing in the morning,
-dressed and undressed it, and learned to use
-her needle in fashioning clothes for it. Her father
-might be too busy to attend to her; Dorothy
-might snub her; fretful, impatient passengers
-send her hither and thither till she was ready
-to drop from fatigue,&mdash;she had one solace and
-delight that repaid her for all: the recollection
-of that little china head, and the staring, blue
-eyes which lay upon the pillow in her berth,
-the kisses which she would run and snatch
-now and then, till her time was her own once
-more, and she could pet and nurse her little
-treasure to her heart’s content.</p>
-
-<p>And so our four little travellers have begun
-their journey with a kind deed which brought
-pleasure and comfort, such as they did not
-dream of, into this poor, craving, young heart,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span>
-which had had so little to feed upon; and went
-upon their way followed by blessings and grateful,
-happy memories.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch3-and-11.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch4-and-12.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="IV">IV.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>AN OLD ENEMY BUT NEW FRIEND.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-i.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">It was late at night when our travellers
-reached Savannah, so late and so
-dark that even quick-sighted, wide-awake
-Maggie could see nothing about her as
-they rode to the hotel, save the twinkling
-street-lamps; and she was as ready as the
-other children to be put to bed at once and
-postpone all questions and sight-seeing until
-the morning.</p>
-
-<p>But you need not fear I am going to trouble
-you with a long description of the beautiful,
-quaint, old city, with its numberless green
-squares which make it so bright and airy; its
-broad avenues planted with three rows of trees,
-so tall and wide-spread that their branches
-have laced overhead, making lovely, leafy<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span>
-arches for one to pass beneath; its roses&mdash;such
-roses! the like of which we do not see
-in our colder northern climate; roses, which
-with us are only bushes, growing there into
-trees, or running into luxuriant vines which
-clothe the fronts and sides of the old-fashioned
-houses, covered with a profusion of blossoms,
-and filling the air with their delicious fragrance.
-They were just in the perfection of
-their glory when our friends arrived, and it
-would be impossible to tell the delight Bessie
-took in them. Her love of flowers here had
-full enjoyment in these her favorites. Morning,
-noon, and night, she was seen with her
-little hands filled with roses,&mdash;for the family
-were kept well supplied, thanks to the graceful
-southern fashion of sending flowers to all newcomers
-and strangers; they were twisted
-among her curls and worn in her bosom, laid
-beside her plate at meals, and she would even
-have slept with them on her pillow, if mamma
-would have allowed it.</p>
-
-<p>She made a pretty picture as she sat upon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
-the staircase of the &mdash;&mdash; House, the day after
-their arrival, her lap full of red, white, and
-yellow roses, which she was arranging with
-no small taste and daintiness into bouquets
-for her people.</p>
-
-<p>Three pair of eyes were watching her,&mdash;those
-of a grave-looking gentleman, who stood
-at the foot of the stairs; and those of Arthur
-and Charlotte Lathrop, who were peering
-at her over the banisters from above. But
-Bessie noticed neither until Arthur called her
-attention by making a sound like a snarling
-dog. Bessie started and looked up, then went
-on with her work in silence.</p>
-
-<p>“I say,” said Arthur, “are you making a
-wreath of roses for that old Mother Hubbard
-you took such a fancy to on board the steamer?”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie made no answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you speak when you’re spoken
-to?” said Arthur. “Did you give your tongue
-to Mother Hubbard?”</p>
-
-<p>“When I’m talked to politely, I always do
-speak,” said the little girl.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus2.jpg" width="450" height="650" alt="Bessie sitting on the stairs arranging her bouquets" />
-
-<p class="caption">Bessie’s Travels. <a href="#Page_82">p. 82.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh! and we’re not polite enough to suit
-you, I suppose,” said Arthur, sneeringly.</p>
-
-<p>“’Tis only engineers’ daughters and the
-like who are fit company for her,” joined in
-Charlotte.</p>
-
-<p>“We might go and take lessons from
-Mother Hubbard, and then perhaps she’d like
-us better,” said Arthur. “I say, Miss Bradford,
-what school did you learn your manners
-in, that you don’t speak when you’re spoken
-to?”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie remained silent again.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you hear?” shouted Arthur.</p>
-
-<p>“Once I heard of a school where they only
-paid two cents for learning manners,” said
-Bessie, demurely.</p>
-
-<p>“What then?” asked Arthur.</p>
-
-<p>“I should think that was the kind of a
-school you had been to,” answered Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“And why, I’d like to know?”</p>
-
-<p>“’Cause I shouldn’t think they could teach
-much manners for two cents.”</p>
-
-<p>Arthur was a clever boy with a quick sense<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span>
-of humor; and he was so struck with what
-he considered the wit and smartness of the
-retort, that he forgot to be angry, and, instead
-of making a sharp answer, broke out into a
-hearty laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty good that!” he said. “You’ll do
-yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty good, and pretty well deserved too,
-my lad,” said the gentleman, who had been
-standing below, coming up the stairs. “See
-here, Clara, here is the Queen of the Fairies,
-I believe,” and he turned around to a lady
-who ran lightly up behind him.</p>
-
-<p>“Queen of the Fairies, indeed,” said the
-lady, with a laughing look at the little figure
-before her, in its white dress and shining hair,
-and lap covered with brilliant flowers: “or
-Queen of the”&mdash;What she would have
-said was lost, for after a pause of astonishment
-she exclaimed, “Why! it is&mdash;yes, it
-is Bessie Bradford&mdash;dear little Bessie!”</p>
-
-<p>And regardless of her muslin dress with
-its fluted flounces and ruffles, down went the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>
-lady on the stairs before Bessie; and, greatly
-to her surprise, the little girl found herself
-held fast in the embrace of a supposed
-stranger.</p>
-
-<p>But it was no stranger, as she found when
-she could free herself a little from that tight
-clasp, and look in the lady’s face.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you know me, Bessie?” asked the
-lady.</p>
-
-<p>“Why! it’s Miss Adams!” cried Bessie,
-in as great amazement as the new-comer
-herself.</p>
-
-<p>“And you are a little glad to see me, are
-you not?” asked the lady, seeing with pleasure
-the smile and glow on Bessie’s face.</p>
-
-<p>“Not a <em>little</em>, but very, Miss Adams,” she
-replied. “I was very interested about you,
-and always thought I’d like to see you again
-after I heard you’d”&mdash;here she hesitated
-for a word.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said the lady.</p>
-
-<p>“I can’t think of the word,” said Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span>
-“Oh, yes! reformed, that’s it,&mdash;after you’d
-reformed. You know you wrote and told us
-about it yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>At this “Miss Adams” went off into a fit
-of laughter, which sounded very natural to
-Bessie’s ears; and yet there was a difference
-in that and in her manner from those of the
-old days at Quam Beach; something softer
-and more gentle; “more as if she remembered
-to be a lady, mamma,” Bessie said
-afterwards.</p>
-
-<p>The gentleman smiled too.</p>
-
-<p>“Her words are to the point when she does
-find them,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“They always were,” said the lady, giving
-Bessie another kiss. “Bessie, this is the
-gentleman I found to make me ‘behave myself.’
-I hope you’ll find the ‘kitchen lady’
-improved under his teaching.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie colored all over face and neck.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! please don’t,” she said.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span> “I’m so
-sorry I said that; but I was such a little child
-then, I didn’t know any better. I wouldn’t
-say such a saucy thing now for a great deal.”</p>
-
-<p>“You need not be sorry about it, Bessie:
-I am not.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please don’t speak about it any more,
-ma’am,” pleaded the child. “Couldn’t you
-let bygones be bygones?”</p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean by ‘bygones’?”
-asked the gentleman.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it meant, sir,” said Bessie,
-modestly, “when a person had done something
-they were sorry for, not to say any thing
-more about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” said the lady, still smiling.
-“It shall be so, if you wish it, Bessie. And
-now tell me how your mamma and Maggie
-and all the rest are.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! they are all very well, except mamma,
-and she is better, and we are travelling to do
-her good; and a great many things happened
-to us, Miss Adams, since you knew us before.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think it has ‘happened’ to you to
-grow much,” said the lady.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes’m!” answered Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span> “I used
-to be five, and now I’m seven; and I’ve been
-to school too. We’ve all grown pretty old.
-Baby can walk and talk now.”</p>
-
-<p>“And how do you like my doctor?” asked
-“Miss Adams,” as Bessie still called her,
-glancing round at the gentleman who stood
-beside her.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie looked up at him, and he looked
-down at her, and when their eyes met, both
-smiled.</p>
-
-<p>“I like him: he looks good and nice;” and
-the little girl, who had already twisted a rose
-or two into the bosom of the lady’s dress,
-now handed two or three to the doctor in
-her own graceful, gracious little way.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you going to do with all those
-bouquets you have tied up so tastily?” asked
-Dr. Gordon.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie told him whom they were for.</p>
-
-<p>“And who is this for?” asked Mrs. Gordon,&mdash;for
-so she told Bessie to call her,&mdash;pointing
-to that which the small fingers were now arranging.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It’s for a little girl down at the steamer,
-who is rather hard off, and does not have a
-nice time, and has extremely ugly clothes,”
-answered Bessie. “But then if they are the
-best she has, and she has no mother, no one
-ought to laugh at her: ought they?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly not: who was so unkind?”
-asked Mrs. Gordon.</p>
-
-<p>“Some children who didn’t behave half so
-nice as she did, ma’am.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” said the doctor; “and was that boy
-you were talking to just now one of them?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes, sir,” said Bessie, with some
-hesitation. “But how did you know it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I am a good guesser,” answered Dr.
-Gordon.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know if I ought to have said that
-to him,” said Bessie, thoughtfully. “I b’lieve
-I was pretty severe.”</p>
-
-<p>At this Mrs. Gordon went off into another
-fit of laughter; and the doctor smiled as he
-answered,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It was pretty severe, it is true, Bessie;
-but not more so than he deserved, especially
-if he had been teasing some poor child who
-could not defend herself.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie colored, and answered, “But I’m
-afraid I did it more ’cause I was angry for
-his being impolite to me than for his teasing
-Lucy.”</p>
-
-<p>“But tell us all about it; and did you say
-the child had no mother?” said Mrs. Gordon.</p>
-
-<p>In reply, Bessie told all she knew about
-Lucy, omitting, however, to give any account
-of the unkindness of Arthur Lathrop and his
-brother and sisters to the poor child. This
-was noticed by both Dr. and Mrs. Gordon,
-but they pressed her no farther, seeing she
-did not wish to speak of it.</p>
-
-<p>“There’s another will be glad to come,”
-said Mrs. Gordon, eagerly, to her husband.
-“That will make five. You’ll see this engineer
-and speak to him about it: won’t you,
-Aleck?”</p>
-
-<p>“All in good time, dear,” he answered
-quietly.</p>
-
-<p>Five what? Bessie wondered; and where<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span>
-would Lucy be glad to come? But as she
-supposed they would tell her if they wished
-her to know, she asked no questions.</p>
-
-<p>But her curiosity was not gratified just
-then, for the doctor now said to his wife,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Come, Clara, we are keeping our friends
-waiting. You must tell little Bessie about
-your plans some other time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Mrs. Gordon. “We have to
-go to a sick friend here in the house, Bessie;
-but I shall come to call on your mamma to-morrow,
-and then I shall see you again and
-ask her to let you come to me; for I have
-something to tell you, in which I think you
-will be interested.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t you live here, ma’am?” asked
-Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Here? yes, here in Savannah, but not in
-the hotel; and I want you to come to my
-house. By the way, where is Maggie? I
-thought you were always together.”</p>
-
-<p>“Most always,” said Bessie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span> “but Maggie
-and the other children went with Mr. Powers
-and papa to see a cotton-press; and mamma
-thought I was too tired, so I told Maggie she
-need not mind leaving me. And now I am
-glad I did not go.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I am sure I am glad,” said Mrs. Gordon,
-as she kissed Bessie for good-by, and
-once more told her she should be sure to see
-her the next day, and would arrange with her
-mamma the time when she and Maggie might
-come and spend the day with her.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie was very anxious to know what Mrs.
-Gordon could have to tell her which was to
-interest her so much, and which seemed in
-some way to concern Lucy Waters; but she
-was a little doubtful regarding the prospect of
-spending the whole day with her old enemy
-“Miss Adams,” not feeling at all sure that she
-would like it, or that she might not fall into
-some trouble, in spite of the very evident and
-pleasing change in that lady.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie was not at all doubtful, and positively
-declared that she would not go on any
-account; and she tried to persuade Bessie to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
-join her in begging their mother to refuse
-Mrs. Gordon’s invitation to them.</p>
-
-<p>“For Bessie,” she said, “you know a ‘bird
-in the hand is worth two in the bush;’ and so,
-even if Miss Adams is so much better than
-she used to be, it is wiser to stay away from
-her, and not give her the chance of being disagreeable
-if she wanted to be.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie had been much given to the use of
-proverbs lately, as you will have perceived;
-and if one could possibly be fitted to her purpose,
-it was made to serve, as on this occasion.</p>
-
-<p>But Bessie did not feel as if they had any excuse
-for refusing the invitation so kindly given,
-nor did mamma when she was appealed to.</p>
-
-<p>“You certainly need not go if you do not
-wish it, my darlings,” she said;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span> “but do you
-think it likely, Maggie, that Mrs. Gordon
-would invite you to her house, and then treat
-you unkindly? She must be a good deal
-changed, it seems to me; and would it not
-look as if you were unforgiving, if you refuse
-her kindness?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I forgive her, mamma,” said Maggie,
-“though it <em>was</em> my own Bessie she plagued so,
-but then I thought her old habits might be too
-strong for her, and break out again.”</p>
-
-<p>“You forgive, but don’t forget, eh, Maggie?
-Suppose you were Mrs. Gordon, how would
-you like Miss Adams’ faults to be treasured
-up against you, and allowed to stand in the
-way when you wished to show good-will and
-kindness?”</p>
-
-<p>“I wouldn’t like it at all, mamma; and I
-suppose it’s not very Golden Ruley for me to
-say I won’t go; so, if she asks us, I’ll make up
-my mind to it.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Gordon came the next day, according
-to promise, to call on Mrs. Bradford; and invited
-not only Maggie and Bessie, but also
-Belle and Lily, to spend the whole of Friday
-with her, promising to call for them in the
-morning and bring them back at night.</p>
-
-<p>But perhaps you will find it more interesting
-to read Maggie’s own account of this visit,
-which she wrote to Colonel Rush.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear Uncle Horace</span>,&mdash;Things are so
-very surprising in this world that you never
-quite know how they are going to turn out, of
-which the case is at present, Miss Adams or
-who was Miss Adams but now Mrs. Gordon
-and you will remember her at Quam Beach but
-under unpleasant circumstances to which we
-will not refer but forget as well as forgive as
-mamma reminded me. But you would be surprised
-to see how much she is improved and
-so different to what she used to be which was
-greatly to be desired of all her friends and a
-pleasure to all who wish her well. So seeing
-she wished to make up for past offenses we
-went to spend the day with her and she was
-very horspitable. She came in her carriage
-to take us to her house which is most handsome
-with roses and flowers of many kinds of
-which she brought mamma a whole lot at the
-same time and invited all the big people to
-dinner the next day. I think all this shows
-she repents sincerely and is not the same
-woman but much changed and ought to be encouraged<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span>
-to keep on doing well. She has a
-nice husband named Dr. Gordon, but sober
-which is not his own fault if he was born so
-and I pity him. And a sweet baby boy named
-Aleck and crows and laughs with pleasure at
-us. But I hope by no means you think we
-think him so sweet as May Bessie which he
-is not and May Bessie is so near to us, which
-also he is not and we love her far the best.
-Miss Adams was very kind to us all day, indeed
-quite fond but most of all to Bessie, and
-she played with us and amused us and I was
-glad I did not let the devil which is a word
-that is not best to write unless it is necessary
-get the upper hand and make me stay away
-out of revenge or being shy.</p>
-
-<p>“But the most surprising and best thing of
-all, Uncle Horace is what she is going to do
-with some of her money. You know in those
-days of which we will not speak she had a
-great deal more than she knew what to do
-with. Well, now she has found a good use for
-some of it in a way well pleasing to God and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
-men. But I am too tired to write more to-day
-and will finish it to-morrow&mdash;Well, to return
-on this day to Miss Adams and her good works
-which shows she has read her Bible which
-urges to repentance of sins and prophets by it
-which is a sight to make the coldest heart to
-rejoice. She has a house not very far from
-her own where she lives and she is going to
-have six little girls there in the care of a nice,
-kind lady. And these little girls are not to be
-happy children with mothers to take care of
-them, but orfuns or without mothers or teaching
-or training in the way they should go.
-For Miss Adams says she knows what it is to
-be without a mother or some wise person to
-guide her, and now that God has been so good
-to her she wants to give a helping hand to
-some little girls who would be left too much to
-themselves and not properly taught. She does
-not mean to have very poor children, and if
-their friends wish it they may pay a little
-money for them but the contrary if they do
-not, and prefer charity though she does not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span>
-think it such and would like them to come
-without any pay. And here they will have a
-happy home and be taught to be desirable
-women fit for teachers or other good things
-and so it will be their own fault if they don’t
-do it. And she has chosen four girls who are
-to come in the fall when Miss Adams comes
-back from the north because things cannot be
-quite ready till then, as the lady has a sailor
-son who is to go to sea which I think a hard
-case for his friends to have him leave his native
-land. And then the house will be ready
-and the lady will go and the children will
-come and Miss Adams is going to see if Lucy
-Waters’ father who you know I told you
-about in my last will let her come too. I
-think if he does not he will be much wanting
-in sence and proper behaviour, but I think he
-will dont you? Miss Adams, Mrs. Gordon I
-mean but I always forget to put her wedding
-name says she feels so sorry for all little
-motherless girls, and I am glad of it are not
-you? And so is Bessie and we think the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span>
-reason Miss Adams takes so much trouble for
-these little girls is because she is afraid that
-if they do not have good care they may grow
-up to be such women as she used to be when
-we knew her before but which is not to be
-mentioned in these pages and now she is quite
-ashamed of it. We cannot tell just yet if
-Lucy’s father will let her come, but papa and
-the doctor are going to the steamer this evening
-to ask him and when we know Bessie will
-write and tell you all about it. And Bessie
-and I have quite made up our minds to take
-Miss Adams for one of our friends because we
-find her most sencible and kind and so changed
-from her old ways which we will not remember
-if we can help it.</p>
-
-<p>“And dear Uncle Horace and Aunt May we
-wish you were here ’cause we are having such
-a nice time and I wrote such a long letter I
-am afraid you will be tired of it but such an
-interesting subject my brains were quite full
-and I had to and you must excuse it. We
-send two kisses for May Bessie and four for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span>
-you and hope to see you once more in the
-future when we come home. And we send a
-great deal of love from your loving</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Maggie and Bessie.</span>”</p>
-
-<p>“P. S. Savannah is such a fine city and so
-many trees and roses that it seems strange to
-me that Alexander the Great and Napoleon
-Bonaparte did not try to take it, being both
-men who never minded their own business
-but always trying to take what did not belong
-to them, speshally the latter whom in my
-heart I heartily despise because he never did
-as he would be done by.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch4-and-12.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch5.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="V">V.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>BELLE’S HOME.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-y.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">You may be sure there was not much
-trouble in gaining the consent of
-Lucy’s father to the plan proposed
-for her welfare. He was only too glad and
-thankful to feel that his motherless little
-daughter would be placed where she would
-have a kind and prudent eye to oversee and
-guide her; and where she would have the
-opportunity of growing up into a useful and
-steady woman. This he knew she could not
-do in the unsettled life she now led on board
-ship with him, and he had long been considering
-what he should do with her.</p>
-
-<p>Lucy, though thankful, was not as much
-pleased, and shed some bitter tears over the
-prospect. The poor child wanted to learn,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span>
-and was glad to have a settled home; but she
-dreaded the thought of parting from her father,
-who would only be able to see her at such
-times as his vessel should be at the port of
-Savannah, and who was the only person whom
-she had to love her. But, in a day or two
-after, when she had seen Mrs. Gordon, and
-heard her talk so kindly of all the pleasures
-and comforts she would find in this promised
-home, she became more reconciled to it, especially
-as the autumn still seemed a long way
-off to her, and she had all the summer to go
-back and forth with her father on the sea.</p>
-
-<p>So she told her troubles to her doll; and the
-steady, blue eyes, which never winked or softened,
-brought comfort to her, and seemed to
-give her the assurance that she need not be
-parted from her, even to go to her new home.
-If she had not had this beloved companion, it
-would have gone much harder with poor little
-Lucy.</p>
-
-<p>Our little girls did not see her again; but
-last autumn, when they were settled once<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span>
-more in their city home, after all their summer
-wanderings, Mrs. Gordon wrote to them, saying
-that Lucy was quite contented and happy
-under her care; and that she was a very good
-child, being trustworthy and obedient, and
-showing a great desire to learn.</p>
-
-<p>So there we will leave her, hoping that she
-will, as Maggie says, “prophet by all that is
-done for her and make a useful and happy
-woman.” The doll went with her; and all the
-other toys and amusements which were provided
-for her never made her tired or forgetful
-of this, her first love, or of the dear little
-girls who had taken so much interest in her.</p>
-
-<p>Our party did not remain long in Savannah,
-for the weather was becoming warm and oppressive;
-but before they went away, they all
-spent a day on Mr. Powers’ plantation.</p>
-
-<p>This was several miles from the city; and
-starting in the morning, soon after breakfast,
-they drove out in the cool of the day. Their
-way lay through dense pine woods; tall, stately
-pines, with long, straight trunks; shooting<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span>
-upwards, without leaf or branch, for many a
-foot, till they neared their height, when they
-put forth their dark-green crowns, which cast
-such a sombre shade below. The shade was
-no objection on this warm day, and a light
-breeze was stirring, which was very refreshing;
-but it sounded rather mournful to Maggie and
-Bessie, as it moaned through the mighty stems,
-and rustled the thick, fragrant leaves overhead.
-It has a strange, peculiar sound, the wind in
-those dark, pine forests of the South,&mdash;a sound
-rather saddening to any listener.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie did not like it at all, and said so,
-which rather displeased Belle, who, in her delight
-at returning to her beloved Southern
-home, found every thing there perfect. However,
-as they drove on, both Maggie and Bessie
-spied out so many objects which called forth
-their surprise and admiration, that she was
-presently consoled, and concluded that they
-“liked her own country pretty well, after all.”</p>
-
-<p>Here and there was a magnolia with its
-magnificent cream-white blossoms, their delicious<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span>
-perfume mingling with the fragrance of
-the pines; there a group of scarlet cardinal
-flowers, or a little pool bordered with bright
-blue flags and spotted tiger-lilies; while
-through the deep stillness of the woods came
-the sweet notes of the blue-jay and mocking-bird.
-Once, as they were passing over a
-bridge which crossed a marsh, Maggie called
-the attention of the others to two turtles, great
-big fellows, larger than any the children had
-ever seen at the North; “swamp turtles”
-Belle said they were. They scuttled out of
-the way in their clumsy fashion, diving out of
-sight into the mud; and Bessie said she
-thought they must be some of the unclean
-animals spoken of in the Bible, since they
-liked to live in such a dirty place.</p>
-
-<p>The entrance to the plantation was through
-an avenue of magnificent live-oaks, some of
-them so large that two or three men could not
-have encircled them with their outstretched
-arms; and these splendid trees were studded
-all over the lawn, spreading far and wide their<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>
-branches, which, unlike their neighbors the
-pines, they sent out very low,&mdash;so near the
-ground in fact, that even Bessie could reach
-the gray Spanish moss which hung over them
-in long festoons and wreaths. The children
-had seen this curious moss before in the beautiful
-old cemetery of Bonaventure, where the
-oaks are perfectly clothed with it; and Bessie
-had admired it so much, that Maggie had taken
-up the idea of carrying home enough to make
-“a bower” for her in their own little room.
-But she thought it best to gain the consent of
-her father and mother to this arrangement;
-not only because it was right, but also because
-nurse was rather apt to call such things “truck
-and trash,” and to put them out of the way as
-fast as possible. If papa and mamma said they
-might have it, nurse might <em>call</em> it what she
-pleased, but she could not throw it away.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Powers stood awaiting them on the
-steps of the veranda, for he had been at the
-plantation for three or four days, while Belle
-and Daphne had been left in Mrs. Bradfor<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span>d’s
-charge at the hotel; for he did not think it
-best for Belle to sleep on the plantation at that
-time of the year.</p>
-
-<p>She shrieked with delight when she saw
-him; and, in her hurry to reach him, had
-nearly thrown herself from Daphne’s lap underneath
-the carriage-wheels. There would
-have been an end to the day’s pleasure then;
-but Daphne’s hand grasped her skirts, and
-saved her from a terrible death.</p>
-
-<p>As it was, the whole party were startled;
-and her father’s face had lost its smile of welcome,
-and looked rather pale as he came down
-the steps and took her in his arms.</p>
-
-<p>“My pet!” he said, “always in too much
-of a hurry. This would have been a sad meeting
-for papa, if you had fallen; but a good God
-took care of you for me.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle clung about his neck and did not
-speak; for whether it were the fright, or the
-sight of her father, or the return to the old
-home which she had left at such a sad time, or
-perhaps all three, her feelings took a sudden<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span>
-turn, and when Mr. Powers had brought his
-friends in and welcomed them, and raised the
-little face to kiss it again, he found it drowned
-in tears.</p>
-
-<p>“Why! my darling,” he said, “were you
-so frightened?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know, papa,” sobbed the excitable
-little thing; “but, this is home&mdash;only&mdash;only&mdash;mamma
-is not in it.”</p>
-
-<p>Tears, or something very like them, came to
-the eyes of all, even of Mr. and Mrs. Norris,
-who had never known Belle’s dead mother;
-and Mr. Powers turned hastily away, and
-stepped with her out on the veranda.</p>
-
-<p>“<em>Only</em> mamma was not in it!” Ah, yes! that
-was the <em>only</em> that made all the difference in the
-world, so that home did not seem like home
-any longer.</p>
-
-<p>It was some few moments before either of
-them were composed enough to return; and
-when Mr. Powers came back he was alone,
-and told Bessie that Belle wanted her to go to
-her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Bessie went out upon the veranda, which
-ran on all four sides of the house, and around
-the corner she found Belle curled up on a
-settee where her father had placed her. She
-stretched out her arms to Bessie when she saw
-her, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Bessie, I do remember mamma so much
-in my home, and you are a comfit. You are
-my next best comfit to papa, ever since the
-first day you spoke to me in school.”</p>
-
-<p>This was a pleasant thing for Bessie to hear;
-but she put aside her own pleasure for the
-present, and thought only of being the “comfit”
-her poor little friend called her. I wonder
-if there was any one among all the people who
-knew her, who could have said that our dear
-Bessie was not more or less of a comfort to
-them.</p>
-
-<p>Her sweet sympathy and gentle tenderness
-soon did Belle good, and Bessie let her talk
-on about her mother as long as she would.</p>
-
-<p>Belle had been very bright and cheerful
-lately,&mdash;thanks to the friends with whom she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span>
-had been so much thrown,&mdash;and it was a good
-while since she had had a fit of longing for
-her mother; but the coming to her home had
-brought her great loss back to her, and just
-now she could think of nothing else.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know where they put my mamma
-before she went to heaven?” said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“No. Where?” answered Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you see those high trees over there,
-Bessie? They put her where little brother
-and sister are, and ever so many grandpas and
-grandmas.”</p>
-
-<p>“But they didn’t put her soul there,” said
-Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Belle,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span> “’cause that was God’s
-part, and it went to him. And then she
-couldn’t speak or hear me or see me, but was
-all deaded away; and so they put the rest of
-her over there, and put a great many flowers
-over her. But that was a long, long while
-ago, before I went away to the North, and I
-didn’t see where they put mamma this ever so
-long. Maybe the flowers are all faded. Will
-you come and see, Bessie?”</p>
-
-<p>“We must ask mamma or your papa first,”
-said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“They would let us,” said Belle: “it’s a
-very safe place. I used to often go there when
-mamma was alive, to be by little brother and
-sister, and she is there now. There couldn’t
-any danger come to us where mamma is:
-could there, Bessie?”</p>
-
-<p>“No: I guess not,” said Bessie. “I s’pose
-mother-angels take care of their little children.
-I’ll go with you, Belle dear, if you’re quite
-sure your papa will let us.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know he would, Bessie; and I’d just as
-lief ask him; only then Maggie and Lily will
-come too. I’d like Maggie to come, but Lily
-laughs so much. I love Lily; but I don’t want
-any one to laugh where my mamma is dead.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Bessie, with the most caressing
-tenderness of tone and manner, “they shan’t;
-and I’ll go, Belle.”</p>
-
-<p>With their arms about one another’s necks,
-the two little things ran down the piazza steps,
-and the shady path, through which Belle led<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span>
-the way; but as they came near the small
-burying-ground, their steps grew slow and more
-reverent.</p>
-
-<p>It was an exquisite spot. An iron railing
-enclosed it, but the rails were hidden by the
-green vines which overran them, and within it
-was beautifully sodded; the green broken
-here and there by the white marble monuments
-and slabs which marked the resting-place
-of Belle’s relations. Flowers of the loveliest
-kinds were blossoming over and around
-them, and all showed the utmost care and loving
-remembrance. Over the entrance was an
-arch, also of white marble, and on the stone
-were cut the words, “He giveth His beloved
-sleep.”</p>
-
-<p>“How sweet it is!” exclaimed Bessie, struck
-at once with the lovely quiet and peace of the
-place; and then she looked up and spelled out
-the letters on the arch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Sleep! that was what mamma said: it was
-only like a sleep if we loved Jesus and tried to
-do what He wanted us to, and I think it must
-mean Him when it says, ‘giveth His beloved
-sleep.’ What dear words! are they not,
-Belle?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Belle, but without paying much
-attention to what Bessie was saying, for her
-eye had caught sight of a new object in the
-enclosure.</p>
-
-<p>“See!” she went on, catching Bessie by the
-arm: “there’s a stone there where they put
-mamma;” and drawing Bessie with her, she
-pushed open the light gate.</p>
-
-<p>It swung easily back, for it was unfastened.
-There were none here to intrude, no one came
-here who would not guard with the greatest
-love and reverence the little spot sacred to
-“His beloved.”</p>
-
-<p>“His beloved!” For of those who lay there,
-not one but had closed their eyes in the full
-faith that they should open them again upon
-the brightness of His face. Truly that was
-“God’s Acre.”</p>
-
-<p>The “stone” which had attracted Belle’s
-attention was a shaft of pure white marble<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span>
-upon her mother’s grave. The centre had been
-cut away so as to leave four small arches, one
-on each side, and beneath there was a cross,
-with the letters “I. H. S.;” before that an
-open Bible, with the words, “I will not leave
-you comfortless.”</p>
-
-<p>The sculptor had done his work perfectly;
-and the snowy marble showed in beautiful contrast
-with the dark, glossy leaves of the bay
-tree which spread its arms above it.</p>
-
-<p>“Papa put it there, I know he did,” said
-Belle, after she and Bessie had stood looking
-at it in silence for a moment or two.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes: I s’pose he did,” said Bessie: “let’s
-see what these words are, Belle.”</p>
-
-<p>By standing on tiptoe, the little ones could
-manage to see the letters carved upon the
-book; and Bessie read them out as she had
-done those over the gateway.</p>
-
-<p>“‘I will not leave you comfortless,’” Belle
-repeated after her.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span> “Why! mamma said that
-herself a little while before she went to heaven.
-Maybe that was why papa put it there.”</p>
-
-<p>“And Jesus said it,” replied Bessie. “It’s
-in the Bible, in a chapter I’ve heard very often.
-Don’t you remember, Belle? It begins, ‘Let
-not your heart be troubled;’ and Jesus said
-it Himself. Perhaps the reason He told people
-not to be troubled was He was going to
-promise to comfort them when they had something
-very bad to bear. It’s the best comfort
-to know He loves you and will take you to
-heaven to see your mamma some day: isn’t it,
-Belle?”</p>
-
-<p>“He will if I’m good,” passing her little
-hand slowly and caressingly over the marble;
-“but then I’m not always good.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Bessie, “not always; but mamma
-said you was not near so spoiled as you used
-to be. I think you’re pretty good now, Belle.”</p>
-
-<p>“I slapped Daphne’s face this morning,”
-whispered Belle, remorsefully.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! did you?” said Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span> “Well, Belle,
-I used to slap people sometimes, even when I
-had mamma to teach me better, and there was
-no excuse for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“But my own mamma <em>did</em> teach me better,
-Bessie. I slap Daphne pretty often, but she
-never tells papa; and I promise myself I’ll
-never do it again, and then I just do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you ever promise Jesus and ask Him
-to help you not to do it?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” answered Belle. “I didn’t think of
-it. I could do it now, couldn’t I?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>They knelt down together side by side, and
-Belle said in a soft but steady voice, for her
-tears had now ceased,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Dear Jesus, I promise not to slap Daphne
-any more, or not to be naughty any more if
-I can help it; and you will help me to be good.
-Amen.”</p>
-
-<p>Then pressing her lips to the cold stone, as
-if it were the warm, living cheek she had once
-caressed, she said in a pleading, pathetic whisper,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Dear mamma, your little Belle will try to
-be just as good as you would want her to be if
-you were here wif her.”</p>
-
-<p>Will any doubt that the “mother-angel”
-heard and rejoiced over the simple promise
-uttered by her little one’s trusting lips?</p>
-
-<p>“Do you think it really makes Jesus glad
-when I’m good?” asked Belle, when they had
-risen from their knees.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! to be sure it does,” answered Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“And He <em>did</em> leave me some comfit: didn’t
-He, Bessie? He left me papa, and He gave me
-you and Maggie too; and your mamma is a
-great comfit too.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma’s the best comfort of anybody,”
-said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, Bessie! oh, no! Papa best&mdash;you
-next.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie did not contradict her, though she
-thought it a very strange opinion for Belle to
-hold, and was not at all convinced herself.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish papa was here to stay with me by
-mamma a little while,” said Belle, presently.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I go ask him to come?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Belle.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span> “Do you know the
-way?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes! It’s right up that path, isn’t
-it?”</p>
-
-<p>Then she kissed Belle and left her, turning
-back as she passed through the gate, to look
-at her little playmate sitting by her mother’s
-grave and leaning her head pensively against
-the monument. But Belle smiled as she met
-Bessie’s eye, and the little girl felt that she
-had not been left quite “comfortless.” Her
-own heart was very full of love and sympathy.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie ran up the path till she was nearly
-half way to the house, when she was brought
-to a sudden stand-still by what she thought a
-very alarming object. Just before her was a
-large black dog, broad-chested, tall, and fierce-looking,
-standing directly in the path, and
-seeming as though he meant to dispute the
-way.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie’s heart was in her mouth and her
-knees shook; but she did not scream. She
-looked at the dog and he looked at her, but he
-did not bark or growl. Then she found her
-voice, and tried what coaxing would do.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Nice doggie, nice little doggie,” she said
-to the great creature. “Does little doggie
-want Bessie to go away? Well, she will. But
-then the good little fellow mustn’t bark at
-Bessie and frighten her.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie had an idea that her seeming enemy
-could bite as well as bark if he saw fit occasion;
-but she did not think it wisest to suggest
-it to him.</p>
-
-<p>It must have been a hard-hearted dog, indeed,
-which could have resisted that insinuating
-voice and smile, and either bark or bite;
-and this one did not seem inclined to do the
-one or the other; but then neither did he seem
-to intend to move out of the path, but stood
-stock still gazing at his unwilling little companion.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing that he appeared peaceable, Bessie
-took courage, and, edging off upon the grass,
-went a few steps forward. But as she passed
-the dog, he turned and placed himself before
-her, though still without any show of attacking
-her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Bessie was pretty well frightened; but she
-began her wiles again, talking to him as she
-would have done to Baby Annie or Flossy.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor fellow! nice doggie. Bessie wouldn’t
-hurt little doggie for any thing. Doggie, doggie,
-doggie! He’ll let Bessie go to the house,
-won’t he? Don’t he want to go and see Belle
-down there?”</p>
-
-<p>Now you must not think that Bessie wanted
-to save herself by exposing her little friend;
-for she knew that this must be Duke, the great
-English blood-hound, of which Belle had often
-spoken, saying how loving and good Duke
-was to her, although he was fierce and unfriendly
-with strangers.</p>
-
-<p>But no, all coaxing proved useless: the
-dog stood his ground and would not suffer her
-to pass, even giving a low growl and seizing
-the skirt of her dress when she tried once
-more to do so.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie was dreadfully frightened, and was
-about to call aloud for help, when she saw Mr.
-Powers coming towards her from the house.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span>
-As he came down the path, a great snake glided
-from beneath some low bushes on the other
-side, passed swiftly over the narrow path, and
-would have been out of sight in an instant,
-had not the dog, suddenly all alert, bounded
-forward, seized it by the back of the neck, and
-giving it a violent shake, left it lying dead.</p>
-
-<p>“How is this, dear child?” said Mr. Powers,
-looking from the dog and snake to the
-child. “Old Ben told me he had seen you and
-Belle going to the burying-ground. Where is
-Belle?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir, we did,” answered Bessie; “and
-Belle is there now, waiting for you to come to
-her mamma’s grave. I was just coming to tell
-you, and that dog stopped me. He’s a pretty
-naughty dog; he wouldn’t let me go on, and
-he killed the poor snake that did not do a bit
-of harm, but was just running away as fast as
-he could.”</p>
-
-<p>“Duke knew he would do harm if he but
-found the chance, my child,” said Mr. Powers.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span>
-“That is a very venomous snake, and the dog’s
-care may have saved you from being badly
-bitten. Good Duke! brave fellow!” and Mr.
-Powers patted the dog’s head. “It is years
-and years since we have seen a snake of this
-kind upon the plantation, and I hope it may
-be long before we see another. You and Belle
-have each escaped a great danger this morning,
-Bessie. I am glad too that old Duke was
-not bitten.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie was very grateful to Duke now, and
-she too patted and caressed him. He seemed
-to think himself, that he had performed a great
-feat, as indeed he had; and kept looking up
-at his master and thrusting his nose into his
-hand as if to call for more thanks. Bessie’s
-attentions he received more coolly, though he
-permitted them.</p>
-
-<p>“Run up to the house now, you steady little
-woman,” said Mr. Powers:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span> “your mother
-is wondering where you can be, though she
-said you were to be trusted not to get into
-mischief. It is a good thing to have such a
-character, Bessie.”</p>
-
-<p>When Duke saw that Bessie and his master
-were going in different directions, he seemed
-to be divided in his own mind as to which one
-he had better accompany. But after looking
-from one to the other he seemed to decide that
-Bessie needed his protection, and trotted gravely
-along by her side till she reached the house,
-when he turned about and raced after his
-master.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie went in and told her story, but so
-simply and with so little fuss that her mother
-had no idea of the danger she had been in,
-till Mr. Powers came with Belle and told how
-she, as well as Belle, had been mercifully
-preserved from harm that morning.</p>
-
-<p>When Belle came back with her father,
-she was quite composed, and soon became
-cheerful again, though she was rather more
-quiet than usual all the morning.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the party were rested after their
-drive, they all went out for a walk about the
-place. Mr. Powers’ estate was a rice plantation,
-and the children were greatly interested<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span>
-in going through the mills and seeing how the
-rice, so familiar to them as an article of food,
-was prepared for the market. They were particularly
-so, in watching the husking of the
-rice. The grain was stored on the second
-story of the buildings, in great boxes or bins.
-There was a little sliding-door in each of these,
-just above the bottom of the bin; and when
-the men were ready to go to work, a trough
-was placed leading from that, through a trap-door,
-to a hopper on the floor below. Then
-the bin door was opened, and the rice in its
-brown husks slid through the trough into the
-hopper beneath, and from thence into the mill,
-on each side of which stood a man who turned
-the arms of the mill. In this, the outer husk
-was stripped from the rice; then it passed
-through another wide, covered trough, into the
-sifting or winnowing machine. This was a
-large box with a wheel at the bottom which
-turned the rice over and over. As it came to
-the top, the chaff was blown away by a great
-“four sided fan,” as Bessie called it, made of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span>
-four pieces of canvas stretched in different
-directions, and fixed upon a roller which was
-turned round by a man, and fanned away the
-light husks broken from the grain on its passage
-through the mill. But this was only the
-outer husk; and it had to go down a third
-trough into another mill, where the inner covering
-was taken off; then through a second
-fanning machine, from which it came out clean
-and white; and lastly into a third building,
-where it was led into another range of bins,
-till it should be necessary to put it into the bags
-and barrels in which it was sent to market.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie, as usual, wanted to “help;” and
-the good-natured colored men who were about
-let her try her hand at just what she chose,
-provided it was safe for her. Indeed, all the
-children, even Belle, to whom the amusement
-was not new, were greatly pleased to pull up
-the sliding panels of the bins, and see the rice
-come pouring down into the mill-hopper, and
-to thrust their hands and arms into the white
-grain, and shovel it into the bags. So entertained<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span>
-were they with this business, that the
-older people walked on when they had satisfied
-their own curiosity, leaving the children in the
-care of old Cato, who promised to see that they
-came to no harm.</p>
-
-<p>“We’ve done a whole lot of work, Mr. Powers,”
-said Maggie, when they were called back
-to the house to dinner. “I think your men
-must be pretty glad we came.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Lily: “we’ve most filled two
-bags and a barrel.”</p>
-
-<p>“And we didn’t spill very much either,”
-said Bessie, who was at that moment laboring
-away with a wooden shovel, on which she contrived
-to take up about two table-spoonsful of
-rice.</p>
-
-<p>“Capital!” said Mr. Powers: “you’ve
-earned your dinner to-day, have you not?”</p>
-
-<p>Whether the dinners were fairly earned or no,
-the exercise had given them all good appetites,
-and they were not sorry to go in and take their
-seats at the well-furnished table.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch6.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="VI">VI.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>LETTERS.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-m.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">Maggie had seized the opportunity
-when Bessie was not near, to ask
-Mr. Powers for the Spanish moss.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Powers,” she said, “is not that moss
-private moss?”</p>
-
-<p>“Private moss? How private, Maggie?”
-said the gentleman.</p>
-
-<p>“I mean is it not your own to do what you
-like with?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly: if growing upon my trees and
-on my grounds can make it mine, it is,
-dear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Then could you let me have some of it,
-quite a good deal?” said Maggie, to whom
-it had been a great effort to ask this; but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span>
-the thought of pleasing Bessie upheld her
-courage.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! to be sure; a whole wagon-load if
-you want it,” said Mr. Powers, smiling, and
-without the least idea that Maggie would take
-his words almost literally.</p>
-
-<p>The next thing was to ask mamma’s consent
-to carry it home, and this also was obtained
-without difficulty; Mrs. Bradford having
-no idea of the extent of Maggie’s ideas,
-and supposing she only wanted a small quantity
-as a curiosity.</p>
-
-<p>Accordingly, Maggie took the other children
-into her confidence as soon as they were all
-sent out again to play under Daphne’s care.
-Bessie was delighted with the plan, and kissed
-and thanked her many times; and the other
-two were quite ready to lend their aid.</p>
-
-<p>So they all set to work to gather the moss,
-Daphne, too, giving a helping hand, at her
-little lady’s request; though as she saw the
-great pile they heaped together, she was more
-than doubtful as to the use of such exertion.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span>
-To gather it might be allowed,&mdash;it would
-never be missed from the trees,&mdash;but to carry
-it home was another thing.</p>
-
-<p>But she let them take their own way; for
-she could never bear to refuse Belle any
-thing, least of all to-day, when Belle had
-come and put her arms around her neck,
-and laid her soft fair cheek against her old
-nurse’s dark one; telling her she was “sorry
-for every time she had slapped her; but she
-would never do it again, for Jesus was going
-to help her, and mamma would ask Him to,
-she was sure.”</p>
-
-<p>So if Belle had asked to dance upon
-Daphne’s head, or do any other extraordinary
-or unheard-of thing, I think the old woman
-would have contrived in some way to grant
-her darling’s wish; and she meekly stood pulling
-off the long, gray, pendant mosses, and
-heaping them in the little, eager, outstretched
-arms which returned to her again and again.</p>
-
-<p>Great was the amazement of the grown
-people to see the procession which appeared,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span>
-when at last the carriages came to the door
-to take them back to the city, and the children
-were called to make ready.</p>
-
-<p>First came a negro lad whom Maggie and
-Belle had pressed into the service, showing
-his two rows of white teeth, and rolling up
-his eyes with enjoyment of the fun; while
-he pushed before him a small hand-cart filled
-with the precious material, which was to
-make such a lovely “Bessie’s Bower” of the
-familiar little room far away at the North;
-next Bessie and Belle trotting along, half
-hidden beneath the moss which Maggie had
-heaped in their arms and around their necks;
-then followed Maggie herself, and Lily, toiling
-away at a large wheelbarrow piled with
-the spoil; old Daphne bringing up the rear,
-also carrying her share and looking rather
-sheepish.</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s ‘Birnam wood come to Dunsinane,’”
-said Mr. Bradford, laughing, as he first
-perceived the approaching show.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span> “What are
-the little ones about? Some freak of Maggie’s,
-doubtless. What a busy, contriving
-little head it is. What is all that for, Maggie?”
-as the children came within hearing.</p>
-
-<p>“To take home to New York to make a
-bower for Bessie in our room, papa. Mamma
-gave us leave, and Mr. Powers said we might
-take all we wanted,” answered Maggie, not in
-the least doubting that she was quite secure
-with both these safe-guards.</p>
-
-<p>“Dearest child!” said Mrs. Bradford when
-she could speak for laughing. “I never supposed
-you had any idea of taking such a
-quantity.”</p>
-
-<p>“I told you I wanted quite a good deal,
-mamma,” answered Maggie, beginning to
-quake for the success of her plan, when she
-saw how astonished and amused the grown
-people were.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Maggie! So many of her fine plans
-had come to grief lately, and still she must
-always be forming new ones.</p>
-
-<p>“And how do you propose carrying all this
-home, Maggie?” asked Mr. Bradford.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Belle says there are boxes under all
-the seats of the carriage, papa; and we can
-carry it to the hotel in these. And then I
-thought maybe you could find some way to
-send it home in the steamer, when Mr. Powers
-sends the sweet potatoes and things to grandmamma.”</p>
-
-<p>“And if there’s too much to go into the
-carriage boxes, we have a great many baskets,
-and we will lend Maggie some,” said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“And we are all going to carry some on
-our laps, we are anxious for Bessie to
-have her bower,” said Lily.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like it very much, mamma,” pleaded
-Bessie, last of all.</p>
-
-<p>“My dear children,” said Mrs. Bradford,
-“I am sorry to disappoint you; but it would
-be impossible to carry all that moss home.
-Not the half of it could go in the carriage,
-even if we all made ourselves uncomfortable
-for the sake of carrying it; and you would
-soon grow tired of such a bower.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“But it is useful as well as ornamental,
-mamma,” said Maggie, with an air as if this
-quite settled the matter in her favor; “for
-Belle says the poor people here make beds
-of it, and if we ever do grow tired of it we
-could give it to some poor person, and they
-might be very glad of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I never <em>will</em> be tired of it, mamma,
-even when I’m grown up, Maggie made
-it,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“My darlings,” said mamma, “it is impossible.
-You may carry home a basket full
-if you will, but I could not allow your room
-to be filled with it, and it would be too much
-trouble to pack such a quantity, and send it
-to New York. You must rest content with
-a little, dear Maggie. There are a great
-many reasons why your plan will not do,
-though it was kind in you to think of pleasing
-Bessie; but we will find some other way of
-doing that.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie’s disappointment was very great, as
-was that of all the little girls; but when
-mamma said a thing, it was to be; and Maggie<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span>
-knew she would never deprive them of
-any pleasure that was best for them to have.
-So she tried to bear it as cheerfully as she
-might, though there were tears in her eyes,
-and she gave a sigh which seemed to come
-from her very shoes, as she dropped the arm
-of the wheelbarrow.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid you would have to call your
-room the ‘Spider’s Bower,’ if you decked it
-with that moss, Maggie,” said Mr. Powers;
-“for those insects are very fond of it, and will
-gather where it is.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ugh!” said Maggie; and the Spanish
-moss at once lost half its charm for her, for
-she had a great dislike to spiders.</p>
-
-<p>Seeing that she bore her disappointment so
-well, Mr. Bradford took an opportunity of
-telling Maggie a secret, which went a great
-way towards consoling her. But she had
-some time to wait before this secret bore
-fruit; and as we are not going back with
-Maggie and Bessie to their city home, perhaps
-you would like to know what it was.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In the autumn when their travels were
-ended, and they reached home, where a great
-deal of papering and painting had been done
-during their absence, they found their own
-little room decked forth with the most enchanting
-wall-paper that ever was seen. On
-a pearl-colored ground ran a vine of green
-leaves, and bright berries, and here and there,
-perched upon the stems, or hovering over and
-pecking at the berries, were the most brilliant
-colored birds. Never was seen a prettier
-paper, or one more suited to a little girls’
-room; and both Maggie and Bessie were
-quite satisfied with such a “bower” as it
-made of their cosey little nook; and the
-Spanish moss, well beaten and shaken, to destroy
-all spiders who might have found a retreat
-therein, was consigned to the boys’ play-room
-in the top story of the house. Though
-by that time it had lost its first novelty and
-charm, both Maggie and Bessie still had a
-clinging to it, as a memento of their pleasant
-visit to Belle’s beautiful Southern home.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Maggie was still farther consoled that evening
-when they reached the city, by finding two
-letters awaiting her, and one for Bessie. Maggie’s
-were from Uncle Ruthven and Fred, and
-Bessie’s was from Harry.</p>
-
-<p>You shall have them all. Uncle Ruthven
-says,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“I cannot tell you, dear little Maggie, how
-much we all miss you and darling Princess.
-I do not like to go to your house and find no
-smiling faces looking out of the window, or
-running to the front door, or head of the stairs
-when Uncle Ruthven comes. So I do not go
-very often; only now and then to see that all
-is going right during your absence. I hear
-nothing from the William Tells and Rip Van
-Winkles, and therefore conclude they are still
-enjoying their long nap.</p>
-
-<p>“Our house is quite gay, however, what with
-the three boys, Flossy, and Marygold, all of
-whom are flourishing.</p>
-
-<p>“Flossy was very mopish for a day or two
-after you left; and kept himself hidden under<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span>
-sofas and behind curtains, in a most melancholy
-manner, refusing to play, and eating
-very little. He is in better spirits now, however,
-though not as frisky as usual; and Harry
-and Fred take him out every day for a walk;
-but when they come towards home, he always
-insists on turning into your street; and when
-they take him up and bring him to our house,
-he falls into low spirits again, and retires into
-private life until the next meal-time.</p>
-
-<p>“Marygold is well, and sings away as merrily
-as he did in your own room at home. Aunt
-Annie wanted to put him in the conservatory
-with the other birds, but grandmamma said,
-no: he must hang in the bow-window of her
-own sitting-room; for since she could not
-have you, she must have something which belonged
-to you about her. So there he swings
-and sings, reminding us constantly of our
-Maggie and Bessie so far away.</p>
-
-<p>“As for Frankie, he is as mischievous and
-roguish as ever, and pretty saucy into the bargain.
-He seems very much afraid that grandmamma<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span>
-will think she is to take his mamma’s
-place altogether; and every morning when he
-comes down to breakfast, enters the room
-with,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“‘Damma, I’ll stay wis oo, and mind oo des
-dis one more day. Den I do back my mamma’s
-house and mind her.’</p>
-
-<p>“If grandmamma tells him to do or not to
-do any thing, he says: ‘Yes, I’ll mind oo dis
-once; but oo’re not my mamma.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘But she is my mamma, and I make all little
-boys mind her,’ I said to him this morning.</p>
-
-<p>“He looked gravely at me for a moment,
-and then said, ‘Den be a dood boy ouself, and
-den I will see ’bout it.’</p>
-
-<p>“The rogue gave us a good fright yesterday.
-I was writing letters in the library,
-when he came in, and asked if he might stay
-with me. I gave him leave, provided he was
-quiet; and for a wonder, he was so; standing
-for some time looking out of the window, till
-he saw a poor drunken man go by, when he
-turned to me and said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“‘When tipseys walk, they run.’</p>
-
-<p>“After that he came down, and I gave him
-the great book of animals you know so well,
-with which he amused himself for some time,
-telling the animals about the ‘poor tipseys.’
-He was very sweet and good, and being much
-engaged with my letters, I did not pay much
-attention to him. But, after a time, I looked
-around to see if he was in mischief, and he
-was nowhere to be seen.</p>
-
-<p>“The book lay open on the floor, and one or
-two toys beside it, but no Frankie. The door
-stood open, and thinking he must have slipped
-out, I went in search of him. He was not to
-be found. Grandmamma, your two aunts, and
-all the servants were soon alarmed, and joined
-in the search, but all in vain; and we were
-just about sending to mamma’s house, to see
-if he had run away there, when Aunt Bessie
-saw a little fat hand peeping out of the almost
-closed door of one of the bookcases. She ran
-and pulled it open, and there lay our lost boy,
-fast asleep. He had crept in among the papers<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span>
-and pamphlets, and, drawing the door nearly
-to, had fallen asleep without meaning to, in
-his quiet nook. He woke to find us all looking
-at him, and was very angry at himself
-for going to sleep; exclaiming, ‘I des b’lieve
-I went to seep, and I tates no more naps in
-de daytime. I ’samed of myself.’</p>
-
-<p>“Harry and Fred are going to write to you,
-so I will leave them to speak for themselves.
-We are all well here, and last evening had the
-great pleasure of reading the letters you and
-Bessie wrote to the Colonel and Mrs. Rush,
-and which they kindly brought around to us.</p>
-
-<p>“Write to me soon, and tell all your adventures
-to your affectionate uncle,</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Ruthven Stanton.</span>”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Harry’s letter to Bessie came next, and ran
-thus:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Precious Pet Princess</span>,&mdash;It seems to
-me as if it were two months instead of two
-weeks since you went away, and I can’t tell<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span>
-you how I want to see you. But it is all
-right, for I know you are having first-rate
-times, and dear mamma is getting ever so
-much good. We’re not having such a bad
-time either, though it’s not like having you all
-home. Uncle Ruthven is a first-rate fellow to
-stay with, I can tell you, and when we have
-finished our lessons, he always has some fun
-on hand for us. So we don’t have time to
-feel very lonely. But I am glad for your sakes
-that you and Mag were not left behind, for
-you would have felt worse about it than Fred
-and I do.</p>
-
-<p>“Last Saturday we all went to Riverside, we
-boys on our ponies, of course, and had a famous
-day. Uncle John has a new boat, and
-he and Uncle Ruthven rowed us across the
-river,&mdash;they let Fred and me take an oar by
-turns, too,&mdash;and we went up the Palisades.
-Isn’t there a splendid view up there, though?
-You can see ever and ever so far. There
-were lots of Bob Whites about, and we heard
-them all round us, and we came upon two fellows<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span>
-with dogs and guns hunting them. I
-hope they didn’t have much luck, the old
-rascals!</p>
-
-<p>“Haven’t we had a time this afternoon?
-I don’t know just how it happened, but I think
-Master Marygold must have opened the door
-of his cage himself,&mdash;for we have seen him
-pecking away at the catch several times lately;
-and Uncle Ruthven, only this morning, told
-Jane to twist a piece of wire round it when
-she cleaned the cage. But Jane forgot it, and
-so this afternoon Frankie came running in saying,
-‘Marydold’s few away;’ and sure enough
-the cage was empty and no Marygold to be
-seen. But after awhile we heard a saucy
-‘cheep,’ and there, on the top of grandpapa’s
-picture, sat my gentleman as independent as
-you please; and, before we had time to shut the
-window, out he flew into the yard. Weren’t
-we in a way though, thinking what you and
-Maggie would say to come home and find him
-lost. He hopped around for a while, flying
-off every time any one went near him, and at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span>
-last flew clear away over the neighbors’ gardens,
-and we gave him up for lost.</p>
-
-<p>“Grandmamma put his cage outside, hoping
-he would grow homesick and come back.
-And sure enough; for she was taking a nap
-in her bow-window about sunset, when she
-was waked by a ‘cheep, cheep,’ and there
-was Marygold hopping about on her work-table,
-and asking pardon for his naughtiness
-as plainly as any bird could. She brought his
-cage, and in he popped, glad enough to be at
-home. So he’s all safe once more, and his
-cage made secure, so he can’t try that dodge
-again.</p>
-
-<p>“You know Colonel Rush has taken a house
-at Newport for the summer, and he wants us
-all to come there when we get through with
-our other wanderings. Won’t it be jolly?
-Then you know we are to spend October at
-dear, old Chalecoo; so you will have change
-enough for one six months. What travelled
-young ladies you and Maggie will be!</p>
-
-<p>“I think I have written the most correct<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span>
-and proper letter in the world, and hope your
-dear little highness will not find any ‘unproper
-impressions,’ as you once said when Fred used
-some slang word; and that it will altogether
-suit your notions. Lots of love and kisses to
-all from</p>
-
-<p class="signature">“Your loving brother,</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Harry</span>.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Here is Fred’s letter to Maggie.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear old Midget</span>,&mdash;Don’t I wish you
-were here that I might give you a good squeeze
-and hear you call out, ‘O Fred! you are
-cur-r-rushing me!’ I’ll play the bear in the
-matter of hugs, when I do get you back,&mdash;that
-is certain. By the way, there’s a mean chap
-leading a poor, old, black bear about the
-streets here, making him dance, and scrape a
-fiddle, and other jigs of that kind. It is not
-a bit of fun to see the poor, poky, old thing
-perform, and he must have been beaten ever
-so much before he could be taught. You can<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
-see that by the way he is frightened when his
-master lifts his stick. It’s a mean shame, so
-it is. Don’t you say so, Mag?</p>
-
-<p>“What jolly times you are having! so are
-we for the matter of that. Uncle Ruthven is a
-regular brick,&mdash;though I always knew that,&mdash;and
-so are grandmamma and the colonel, and
-all the rest. School breaks up the twentieth of
-June, and then, hurrah! for the country. Uncle
-John has invited Tom Norris to go with us
-to Riverside, and stay all the time that we stay.
-First-rate in him, wasn’t it? Tom is the jolliest
-good boy I ever saw: you never catch
-him in the least thing that isn’t just up to the
-right, and yet he’s the best company and merriest
-fellow in the world. He keeps me out
-of a heap of mischief, many a time, dear, old
-chap! that’s so, I know. Dear, old, steady-going
-Hal! he often wonders at my tantrums,
-I know; but he’s good too, and it is awful
-hard work to keep out of scrapes in school
-when you’ve a quick temper like mine, and
-not too much thought. I’ll tell you a secret,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span>
-Mag: I believe it has helped me a good deal
-to see you and Queen Bess take so much pains
-to cure yourselves of those two very faults,&mdash;you,
-with your carelessness, and Bessie, with
-her passionate temper. I thought it was a
-shame if you two little girls did it, that a great
-fellow like me shouldn’t. And for that reason
-I’m going to let you tell dear mamma some
-thing that will make her dear eyes dance.
-Mr. Peters called me to him this morning,&mdash;and
-I thought for sure I must be in some row,
-though I didn’t see what,&mdash;and he said he
-wanted to tell me that no boy in the school
-had improved in character, or taken so much
-pains with his faults, as I had during the last
-year. I don’t want to be puffed up, but didn’t
-I feel some pumpkins; but I could most have
-cried that mamma wasn’t home for me to tell
-the good news to. However, when I went
-home, there sat grandmamma, the dear, precious,
-old soul, so sweet and good and loving;
-so I just pitched into her and gave her the
-news, and a tight squeeze into the bargain.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span>
-She was as pleased as could be, but then she
-isn’t mamma; so just you tell the darling
-mother, and bid her shut her eyes, and do you
-give her a good choke for me, just as I do,
-Ducky-Daddles! and see if she don’t gasp out,
-‘Oh, my dear boy!’ and you write it to me,
-Mag. And tell papa, Mr. Peters told me if I
-turned out such a man as my father,&mdash;a true
-Christian, a perfect gentleman, and a thorough
-scholar,&mdash;no one could ask more for me. I
-never expect to be all that, but it’s something
-to have one’s father spoken of that way, and,
-Mag, do you believe, I just bawled. And old
-Peters&mdash;I’ll never call him that again if I remember,
-only it comes so handy&mdash;asked me
-to go of a little errand for him. I knew that
-it was just that he knew I didn’t want to go
-back to the school-room with red eyes, and I
-was all right again before I came back. He’s
-a jolly old soul, if he is strict. But I just tell
-you, you and her royal highness can take some
-of the credit to yourselves; for I know you have
-helped me without meaning it. And Uncle<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span>
-Ruthven is as pleased as any thing, and he
-said he had seen it himself, and he had meant
-to give me a handsome pony for taking pains
-with myself; but as papa had given me one
-when he gave Hal a watch just before you
-went away, he would let me say what the
-present should be.</p>
-
-<p>“And so, Midget, I told him I should like
-him to give you and Bess the pony between
-you; and he said I had better take a couple
-of days to think it over, and he would give
-me leave to change my mind. I suppose he
-thinks I’ll slink out of it; but I shan’t, so you
-two may just count on a pony of your own.
-I guess there’ll be a side-saddle too, for Uncle
-Ruth don’t do things by halves. I’m awfully
-sleepy, and anybody but you would be tired of
-this long letter.</p>
-
-<p class="signature">“Your loving brother,</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Frederick Talbot Bradford, Esq.</span>”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Maggie answered her Uncle Ruthven’s letter
-the very next morning in these words:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear Uncle Ruthven</span>,&mdash;Whenever I
-think of the pleasure of writing to my absent
-friends who are away from me in distant lands
-I am always very thankful that I am not a
-quadrewped or other animal which has only
-legs and no arms to write with. And if it had,
-no brains or ideas, but only instinct which is
-not enough to write with. So I thank God He
-gave me a sencible soul which thinks, and
-arms and also pen, ink, and paper. And also
-pencils for Bessie has to print with them, and
-also friends which we can write to, for if I was
-an orfun and had no friends I would be badly of
-and very lonesome and my ideas of no use.
-So I think every one ought to be very grateful
-for these things (if they have them) and if
-they have not let them say God knows best;
-and I think it is the duty of the human race
-to make use of these things and to write long
-letters to all their friends, for it is such a
-pleasure to have letters and to answer them.
-And I am going to write you the longest letter
-I ever wrote in my life, because the Bible<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span>
-says, ‘Whatsoever ye would that men should
-do unto you, do ye also unto them.’</p>
-
-<p>“But, dear Uncle Ruthven, we have had
-no adventures to tell you about. I mean <em>real
-real</em> adventures; except only one which was
-most terrible to hear and was that Bessie met
-a snake that was poisonous and nearly bit her,
-but a good dog of Mr. Powrs would not let
-her go on, and so she did not come in the way
-of the snake which was a wonderful blessing
-or she might have died. And then I would
-have been like the king Miss Ashton told us
-about, whose son was drowned and he never
-smiled again nor would I if my Bessie came
-to such a sad end but would be unhappy all
-the days of my existence and never laugh at
-the funniest thing that could happen. And I
-pray our Father in Heaven that my Bessie will
-not die while I am alive even to go to Heaven
-for I would miss her so very, very much. But
-I will not write any more of this most unhappy
-thing or else my beloved uncle you will say
-‘what a sad, stupid letter Maggie has written<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span>
-to me,’ and I would not wish any one to take
-the liberty of saying such a thing about me.</p>
-
-<p>“Belle’s home which is named Oakdale is
-a place most beautiful to behold with such
-large oak trees that make the most pleasant of
-shades and magnolias and vines of jessamine
-and other sweet smells most delicious to the
-nose. I do wish there was a nicer name to
-call a nose, it don’t sound nice in a letter.
-And such lots and heaps of rice, enough for a
-million dinner and breakfasts I should think
-but I hope I shall never be in the necessity to
-eat it for I hate rice. But Bessie likes it very
-much so I am glad it grows for her and others.
-And we had such fun playing with it and working
-too for we helped the men a great deal.
-Now you need not laugh Uncle Ruthven nor
-the boys either if you let them read this letter,
-for the men said we did and if you had seen
-the great bag we filled you would know it. It
-was real funny to see the rice run down the
-wooden gutters into the hoppers. Isn’t that
-a queer name?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Papa said such a funny thing. He said
-he knew a hopper that would not be of much
-use in that mill because it always shut its
-mouth whenever any rice came near it, and he
-meant me. It made us all laugh so. The
-next day after to-morrow we are going to take
-adieu of Savannah and all the kind people we
-have come to know; and of Miss Adams and
-the doctor; and most of all of Mr. and
-Mrs. Norris and Lily. Lily cries about it and
-wants to stay with us but her parents have to
-stay in this place for a short time and to go
-home by the steamer, and I am glad and thankful
-such is not my fate to be seasick again.
-Oh! Uncle Ruthven! it is awful! and you
-can’t help it if you make up your mind ever
-so much. But we go by land which is much
-better than the sea to travel on and shall visit
-many places and see many surprising things
-which I shall advertise you of when I know
-them myself.</p>
-
-<p>“Bessie and I think we never heard of any
-thing so kind and generous as Fred to say he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span>
-wanted you to give us a pony for his present
-and never no never again will I say Fred
-teases, no not if he plages me ever so much.
-But I think he does not plage so much as he
-used to. Mamma was so pleased about him
-and is at this present moment writing to him.
-It is a very charming thing to have sencible
-and religious parents and I suppose also it
-must be so for the parents to have their children
-improve and be as sencible and good as is
-in their natures. But it is not in mine to be
-so good as Bessie and I despair of it for it is
-not in me. The other day a lady was talking
-to Bessie and I heard her say afterwards,
-‘That child is a little angel.’ I suppose she
-meant <em>like</em> an angel which would be far better
-for her to say as it is always best to say
-just what you mean but I thank her for the
-complement to my Bessie and think she must
-be a woman of sense.</p>
-
-<p>“Harry wrote to Mamma and said something
-that hurt my feelings. He said I wrote
-very nice letters but they were so full of moral<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-reflextions and centiment that he almost killed
-himself laughing. Now I know he didn’t
-almost kill himself and Miss Ashton never
-taught us reflextions and centiment and I don’t
-know what they mean and I wouldn’t do such
-a thing as to put them in my letters. I don’t
-think Harry is very kind to say that and make
-fun of me. But don’t you tell any one I said
-so for you know I tell you all my secrets dear
-Uncle Ruthven and maybe Harry would think
-I was cross.</p>
-
-<p>“Please give my love to every body I know
-if I do love them and if I don’t my complements
-and most of all to all my own people.
-It took me two days to write all this letter
-which I hope will give satisfaction from your
-affectionate beloved</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Maggie</span>.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Last of all here is a little letter which Bessie
-wrote to her grandmamma,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span></p><div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear darling Granmamma</span>,&mdash;Your Bessie
-is going to send a letter to you to tell you
-how I love you but I cant rite such nice
-leters as Maggie. Dont Maggie make nice
-leters and she said she would help me but
-I toled her I wanted to make it all myself
-so you would kno how much I love you.
-Please dear Granmamma to rite me an answer
-to my leter and I hope you will keep alife till
-we come home or if you are not dear Manma
-will cry and all the rest of us two. I saw a
-carf in a cart with all its legs tied and it mad
-me sorry and I wish it was mine to let it luse.
-Baby is so sweet and she has a new trik that
-is so cuning. All the time she pulls off her
-shoes and soks and Mamma don’t want her to
-so Nursey says shame shame when she does
-it and when baby sees any one else do it now
-she always calls shame and she saw a gentelman
-in the parlor who did not kno how to be
-very polite and he sat with his slipper hanging
-on his toe and Baby pointed her finger at
-him and called out very loud Oh shame shame
-and every boddy lafed it was so funny. Every<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>
-day I am more and more glad for dear Manma
-feels so much better and it makes such a joy
-in my hart that I can’t tell it but you kno it
-don’t you dear Granmanma for you are her
-own mother and you love her just like she
-loves me. I am too tired to make it any
-longer and I love you and my solger and all
-my peple and I send them kisses.</p>
-
-<p>“Good by dear Granmanma</p>
-
-<p class="signature">“Your little pet</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Bessie</span>.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch6-and-10.jpg" width="200" height="135" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch7-and-13.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="VII">VII.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>A “REAL, REAL ADVENTURE.”</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-t.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">They were all in the railway train
-bound for &mdash;&mdash;; that is, Mr. and Mrs.
-Bradford, with their three little girls
-and nurse, Mr. Powers, Belle, and old Daphne.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie, Bessie, and Belle, with their dolls,
-had two whole seats to themselves, one having
-been turned so as to face the other, and
-give them what Bessie called a “nice, cunning
-travelling-house.” Here they had established
-themselves in great comfort, papa and
-mamma being just behind; while Mr. Powers,
-and the two nurses with Baby, were seated
-on the opposite side of the car.</p>
-
-<p>And here, by and by, seeing the nice play
-that was going on, did Miss Baby think it best<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span>
-to betake herself and her own doll, named Peter
-Bartholomew. This gentleman with the long
-name, which had been given to him by Fred,
-was made entirely of worsted, face, cap, coat,
-and pants, all knit of the brightest colors, and
-could be knocked about or thrown from any
-height without damage to his head or limbs.
-So for this reason he had come travelling with
-Baby Annie, as her dolls were apt to receive
-some hard knocks and severe falls, not altogether
-wholesome for more brittle materials.</p>
-
-<p>But Annie was not very fond of Peter Bartholomew,
-and he received some pretty hard
-usage at her tiny hands; so that it was well
-he was not a gentleman of tender feelings, and
-was able to take thumps, hard squeezes, and
-scoldings with the utmost composure.</p>
-
-<p>However, on this occasion she thought it
-wise to praise Peter Bartholomew, by way of
-persuading her sisters that his company, as
-well as her own, was desirable; and, putting
-her little head on one side in the most insinuating
-manner, she spoke thus from nurse’s lap,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Baby tome too. Peter tome too. Baby
-dood. Peter dood. Nice Peter. Oh, pitty
-Peter!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! isn’t she too cunning, the darling?”
-said Bessie. “Let’s let her come play with
-us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, we’ll take her in our house,” said
-Belle.</p>
-
-<p>So baby was taken into the enclosure, which
-Maggie had made quite complete by fastening
-a handkerchief from the arm of one seat to
-that of the other, and calling it “the door.”
-Nurse could have lifted baby at once into the
-place which was offered for her; but that would
-not do at all. Baby must wait till the door
-was untied, and she admitted in due form.</p>
-
-<p>Once there, and seated in a snug corner,
-she behaved herself very well for a long time,
-watching her little sisters and Belle with grave
-admiration and wonder, and submitting to be
-played and “<em>pretended</em>” with just as they
-chose, only now and then insisting that they
-should all “tiss Peter,” a thing which she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-would by no means be induced to do herself.</p>
-
-<p>But at last she took it into her head to look
-out of the window, and in order to do that she
-must stand upon her feet, which was not safe
-to let her do without some careful hand to
-guard her; and as she objected very decidedly
-to returning to the other side of the car where
-nurse sat, there was nothing for it but to let
-nurse come to her.</p>
-
-<p>Now this interfered very much with the
-arrangements of the three little girls, who were
-having a grand “family” play; and not one of
-them was at all inclined to be so disturbed,
-and there was even some pouting when nurse
-said they must make room for her for a short
-time.</p>
-
-<p>But Maggie, Bessie, and Belle could all understand
-better than Baby Annie, that in travelling
-one must consider the comfort and
-convenience of one’s fellow-passengers, as well
-as one’s own. Baby was very little, and not
-very well: they had a long day’s journey before<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span>
-them, and it was necessary that she should
-be indulged in a measure, and kept in a good
-humor as long as possible; and Bessie was the
-first to think of this.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, just let me in here for a bit, my
-honeys,” said nurse, as Maggie stood with her
-hand on the pocket-handkerchief door, determined
-to defend her “house” as long as possible.
-“Baby’ll fret if I take her to the other
-side when she don’t like it, and that will worry
-your mother; besides it’s sunny there when
-we come out of the woods. Let her look out
-of your window awhile, with me to hold her,
-and it will soon be her sleepy time, when ye
-may have your place to yourselves.”</p>
-
-<p>Now old nurse was by no means a small
-woman; and the children knew that their
-quarters would be very much narrowed when
-she should find entrance there, and she might
-have found it hard work to persuade them to
-yield without interference from their father
-or mother, had not Bessie bethought herself
-when nurse spoke of her mother.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes!” she said to her sister and Belle,
-“you know we came on our travels to do
-mamma good, and so we mustn’t let any thing
-trouble her. If we do, maybe our Father would
-think we didn’t care very much that He made
-her better, and that we are ungrateful. Any
-thing must be choosed ’cept to worry mamma.
-And baby don’t know any better; so let’s give
-up to her this time, if she cries everybody
-will be uncomf’able.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Maggie, once more untying
-the handkerchief, “I won’t be selfish.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor I,” said Belle, who had been the most
-unwilling to give up her own way.</p>
-
-<p>The “cunning house” was certainly far less
-roomy when Mammy was seated therein; but
-having made up their minds to do a kind act,
-our little girls did it pleasantly and made no
-fussing about it; the only thing that was said
-being when Bessie remarked,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Nursey, it would be rather convenienter if
-you were not <em>quite</em> so fat,” which nurse thought
-a great joke, and laughed heartily, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“And there’s nobody knows that better
-than your old Mammy, my pet; but just put
-by your play till baby’s had her fill of looking
-out, and I’ll tell ye a story.”</p>
-
-<p>Nurse’s stories always found a market; and
-the three little girls ranged themselves in the
-seat facing her, and listened eagerly while she
-told them the most marvellous of fairy tales.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Baby Annie, happy and contented,
-amused herself with watching the
-swiftly passing objects; and Peter Bartholomew,
-held by one foot, hung dangling head
-downwards from the car window. How much
-he enjoyed this novel mode of riding, neither he
-nor his little mistress ever told, though baby
-had enough to say both to herself and him
-while nurse talked to the other children.</p>
-
-<p>But at last Mrs. Bradford suddenly exclaimed,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Take care, nurse; baby has her head out!”
-and Mammy, who had turned her face for a
-moment from her charge, drew her in and
-seated her on her lap.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Baby must not put her head out,” said
-mamma: “she’ll be hurt.”</p>
-
-<p>“Peter out,” said baby.</p>
-
-<p>“Why! she’s lost Peter Barfolomew,” said
-Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure enough,” said nurse, when she had
-shaken out her skirts, and looked on the floor,
-without finding that gentleman.</p>
-
-<p>“Bad Peter. Peter all don,” chuckled the
-baby.</p>
-
-<p>“Did ye throw Peter out?” asked Mammy.</p>
-
-<p>Baby could not say yes; but she nodded her
-little head till it seemed as if she would wag
-it off, seeming to think she had done something
-very praiseworthy.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you naughty girl!” said nurse.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no: baby dood; bad Peter. Peter
-all don, Peter out,” said baby again, clapping
-her hands, and laughing with the most self-satisfied
-air.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, Peter Bartholomew was “all gone,”
-left far behind as the train sped on its way;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span>
-and though the children went off into merry
-peals of laughter at little Annie’s bit of mischief,
-Mrs. Bradford was rather sorry, since
-Aunt Patty had taken such pains to make him
-for her. However, the baby knew no better,
-and his loss could not trouble her much.</p>
-
-<p>Nurse had not finished her story, and when
-the children’s mirth had subsided, she went
-on with it. Having disposed of Peter Bartholomew,
-and finding that she was not allowed
-to put her head out, the window lost its
-charms for baby, and she sat still on nurse’s
-lap for a few moments, gravely regarding her
-fellow-passengers, and trying to find amusement
-in them.</p>
-
-<p>Nor was it long before she found a new object
-of interest. In the seat next to Mammy and
-herself, and of course with his back towards
-them as they rode backwards, was a gentleman
-who wore an enormous Panama straw hat.
-The older children had remarked this hat and
-wondered at it, but after the first moment they
-forgot both the hat and its wearer, and noticed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
-them no more. But I cannot say that the gentleman
-had not noticed them, although he gave
-no sign of doing so.</p>
-
-<p>The hat by no means took baby’s fancy:
-perhaps she thought it took up more than its
-share of room in the world; however that may
-be, she concluded to take a closer look at it,
-and raised herself upon her little feet on the
-cushioned seat beside Mammy. First she
-looked at the hat on one side, then on the
-other; then she peeped under it; then tried
-to lift herself on the tips of her small toes and
-peer over it; then carefully touched it with one
-little finger, and finally expressed her opinion
-in a loud, emphatic,</p>
-
-<p>“Bad hat!”</p>
-
-<p>But the owner of the offending article of
-dress did not turn his head or appear to take
-the slightest notice, not even when baby repeated,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Bad, bad hat! Off hat!”</p>
-
-<p>“Sh! sh! my lamb. What’s come to ye
-to-day?” said nurse.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Not the spirit of a lamb certainly, for baby
-was in a contrary mood, and determined to
-have her own way by one means or another;
-and, finding the hat remained in its place in
-spite of her orders, she seized hold of it; and,
-before nurse could stop her, had snatched it
-from the stranger’s head and tossed it into his
-lap. Still, without turning his head or seeming
-at all disturbed, the gentleman put it on again,
-while baby struggled to free herself from nurse’s
-hold, shouting,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Off hat, off! Bad hat!” again and again,
-till her mother was obliged to call her to
-order.</p>
-
-<p>Little as she was, baby had learned to obey
-when mamma spoke; but the sight of that hat
-was not to be endured by any baby of taste,
-and even when seated upon mamma’s lap, and
-treated to a bit of sponge-cake and papa’s
-watch, she could not forget it, but now and
-then broke forth in a wailing tone with,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Oh dear! Bad hat, off hat!” till at last
-the gentleman removed the hat, and submitted<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
-to ride bareheaded till his little tormentor
-should be asleep.</p>
-
-<p>This was soon the case when the cause of her
-trouble was out of sight; for it was, as nurse
-said, “her sleepy time,”&mdash;one reason perhaps
-why she was so fractious,&mdash;and she forgot hat,
-watch, and cake in a sound mid-day nap.</p>
-
-<p>Her two sisters and Belle thought all this
-remarkably funny, and had had much ado
-to stifle their laughter, so that it should not
-reach the ears of the stranger with whom baby
-had made so free. But in spite of their amusement,
-which had been shared by more than
-one of the grown people around, Bessie was
-rather troubled lest mamma should be worried
-by the little thing’s misbehavior and crying,
-and also lest the gentleman should have been
-vexed.</p>
-
-<p>To tell the truth, he was rather annoyed at
-the notice which all this had brought upon
-him and his unfortunate hat; but his vexation
-passed away the moment he heard a soft voice
-at his ear, whispering,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Thank you very much, sir, for taking off
-your hat; and will you please to s’cuse baby,
-she don’t know any better than to take
-a liberty. As soon as she can understand,
-mamma will teach her to be polite.”</p>
-
-<p>The gentleman turned his face towards her.
-A pleasant, good-natured face it was, with a
-merry twinkle in the eyes just now.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma is a first-rate teacher of politeness
-and some other good things, I see,” he said,
-smiling.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir; ’deed she is,” answered Bessie;
-wondering what mamma had said or done
-since they had been in the cars by which this
-stranger could know so much; and then, thinking
-her duty done, she turned away and began
-her play with the other children again. After
-this, all went smoothly and quietly enough till
-they reached a town where they were to change
-cars, and where two different railroads crossed
-one another at the depot. Here they had to
-wait for an hour until their train should be
-ready to start; and here Mrs. Bradford<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span>
-thought she might have a good rest after her
-long ride.</p>
-
-<p>But a fair was going on in the small town,
-and the dirty little hotel was full to overflowing;
-so that the only place that could be had
-for Mrs. Bradford and her sleeping baby was
-an eight feet square room with a hard sofa,
-and two equally uninviting chairs. However,
-by means of cloaks and shawls, a tolerably
-comfortable resting-place was arranged for
-these two; and the three children who had
-no mind to be shut up in the tiny room, were
-taken for a walk by Mr. Bradford and Daphne;
-Mr. Powers going to call on an old friend who
-lived near by.</p>
-
-<p>But there was a good deal of noise, dust,
-and confusion in the street, and the little girls
-soon tired of it and wanted to go back to the
-hotel. When they reached it, two trains were
-standing at the station, and Daphne exclaimed,
-pointing to the nearest,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Dere’s de train, Massa Bradford. S’posin’
-I jis takes de little ladies into de cars. Better
-for dem waitin’ dere dan in de verandy where
-all dem folks is; an’ we’ll wake Miss Baby for
-sure all goin’ into dat little room.”</p>
-
-<p>This last was more than likely; and the
-veranda where all those men were lounging
-about, smoking and drinking and swearing,
-was certainly no place for little ladies; and
-Daphne’s idea seemed a good one to Mr.
-Bradford.</p>
-
-<p>“You are sure that is our train, Daphne?”
-he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure, Massa Bradford. Ain’t I been in it
-a hundred times?”</p>
-
-<p>“Is this the train for &mdash;&mdash;?” asked Mr.
-Bradford of a man standing beside the cars.</p>
-
-<p>“All right, sir. Last car, sir,” was the
-reply.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bradford thinking himself quite sure,
-helped the children and Daphne into the car,
-found them good places, and looking at his
-watch, said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“We have half an hour still. Keep these
-seats for the rest of our party, and I will bring
-them all soon. You are right, Daphne: it is
-more comfortable here than in the hotel.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he went away; and for a few moments
-the children were well amused, watching all
-the bustle around the station, and now and
-then dipping rosy little fingers into a basket
-of delicious strawberries just given to Daphne
-by a friend whom she had met. The old
-woman’s pleasure in the splendid fruit, was
-to see her young mistress and her little friends
-enjoy it, and she encouraged them to eat as
-long as they would.</p>
-
-<p>But presently a steam whistle sounded, and
-she looked about her uneasily, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“’Pears like this train ain’t maybe right,
-after all. I go see ’bout him, Miss Belle. Jes
-you sit still one minute.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus3.jpg" width="450" height="650" alt="Daphne chasing the train, waving her umbrella" />
-
-<p class="caption">Bessie’s Travels. <a href="#Page_172">p. 172.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>If Daphne had not been so engaged in feeding
-her young charge, she would have known
-that this was the second time the whistle had
-sounded; and she was terribly startled when
-just as she set her foot upon the ground in
-order to seek Mr. Bradford and make all sure,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span>
-it was blown again, there was a call of “all
-aboard,” and before the bewildered old woman
-had collected her senses, the train steamed
-out of the station. Had she instantly made
-known her trouble to those about her, it might
-not even then have been too late; but instead
-of that she rushed after the cars, gesticulating
-and beckoning with an umbrella which was
-the pride of her heart, and which she always
-carried, and crying aloud,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Hi there! Hi! Hold on dem cars; hold
-on till I get my chillen. Hi! Hi!”</p>
-
-<p>The people about thought her crazy, and
-laughed and cheered as she tore after the fast
-receding train; but to poor old Daphne it was
-no joke, and as it turned a curve in the road
-and was lost to sight, she dropped her umbrella
-and stood still wringing her hands, and
-crying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, de chillen, de chillen! Oh, my little
-Miss Belle! what I gone and done, and what
-dey faders say?”</p>
-
-<p>But we must leave Daphne, and go in the
-cars with our three little girls.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>For the first few moments they did not
-understand it, and even after the cars were
-in rapid motion, looked about them expecting
-to see their parents and nurses come in. The
-truth came first to Maggie, and her poor little
-heart almost stood still with terror and dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, we’re going!” exclaimed Belle.
-“Where’s papa?”</p>
-
-<p>“And papa and mamma, and all our people?”
-cried Bessie in a terrified voice.</p>
-
-<p>Then Maggie broke forth.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, we’re gone off with! They’re left
-behind! What shall we do? Oh! what shall
-we do? There’s nobody to take care of us:
-we’re gone off with.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle immediately set up the most violent
-screams; and Maggie and Bessie were as much
-distressed, though they did not cry as loudly.</p>
-
-<p>The people around them soon understood
-the cause of their trouble: indeed Maggie’s
-exclamations left no room for doubt, that
-they were really “gone off with;” though it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span>
-was some time before either of the three
-could speak coherently enough to say how it
-had happened. In fact the poor little things
-hardly knew themselves: all they could tell
-was that Daphne had thought they were in
-the wrong train, had gone to see, and before
-she came back they were speeding away, they
-knew not where, without their natural protectors,
-and in the midst of perfect strangers.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie was the first to collect herself
-enough to make the story understood, though
-even then, her tears would hardly let her
-speak to the group of curious and sympathizing
-people, who gathered around the three
-as they clung weeping together.</p>
-
-<p>“And now we’re quite, quite lost; and
-there’s no policeman to help us,” she sobbed;
-“and what will mamma do?”</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little dears,” said a lady, pressing
-forward, and laying her hand soothingly on
-the little, pitiful, upturned face.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span> “Don’t cry
-so, my children: you’ll be taken back in
-some way to your parents.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m all papa has,” gasped Belle: “he
-can’t do wifout me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Please let us get out,” moaned Maggie:
-“we could run back to where our papa and
-mamma are.”</p>
-
-<p>“The train must be put back,” said one
-of the by-standers, and he went to find the
-conductor, and see what could be done; while
-the lady who had spoken to the children sat
-down beside them and tried to quiet them
-with assurances that their parents would
-certainly find them again.</p>
-
-<p>“But dear mamma will be so frightened
-and worried, and it’s so bad for her,” said
-Bessie; her first thought always that tender
-care for her mother.</p>
-
-<p>The story had spread through the train; and
-people were coming in from the other cars to
-look at the three little waifs, who, all by themselves,
-were each instant being taken farther
-from their friends; and Belle, looking up as
-the door was opened afresh, spied a familiar
-object.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh! there’s the ‘bad hat’ man!” she
-cried, glad to see any thing on which she had
-ever laid her eyes before, even though it
-might be that ugly hat with the strange face
-beneath it.</p>
-
-<p>At the same moment there came in also
-the conductor, and the gentleman who had
-gone to find him; and now the children felt
-a faint hope that there might be some way
-out of this trouble.</p>
-
-<p>But the conductor was surly, and absolutely
-refused to put back,&mdash;which indeed would
-have been hardly safe,&mdash;or to stop the train
-and let out the children, as was proposed by
-some person, and pleaded for by the little
-ones themselves.</p>
-
-<p>And here the “bad hat” man put in his
-word.</p>
-
-<p>“That would never do,” he said;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span> “those
-little things could not possibly walk back to
-&mdash;&mdash;, and no conveyance could be found along
-here. They must come on to the next station,
-and there we will see what can be done.”</p>
-
-<p>Down went the three heads and up went
-Belle’s voice again at these unwelcome words;
-but the “bad hat” had a kind heart beneath
-it, and the wearer at once set himself to
-comfort the forlorn children.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, come, take heart,” he said cheerily.
-“Now let us see how soon we shall get back
-to papa and mamma. It will not take us
-more than one hour or so, to reach the next
-station, and then&mdash;well, to be sure, we’ll
-have to wait awhile there for the up-train,”&mdash;he
-did not think it best to say it would be
-more than four hours,&mdash;“but we’ll telegraph
-them and let them know you are all safe, and
-will be with them before long.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know the children sir?” asked
-a lady.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no, madam, and they don’t know
-me; but they know my <em>hat</em> pretty well, and I
-think that is ground for an acquaintance.
-It’s a broad one, anyhow, is it not?” he said
-with a nod at Belle,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span> “and we’re going to take
-advantage of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a great while for poor mamma to wait
-for us, and she’ll be very frightened,” said
-Bessie, wiping the tears from her eyes, though
-they were immediately filled again. “I s’pose
-she’ll think we’re never coming back to her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not a bit of it,” said “Bad Hat:” “she’ll
-think you’ll find some one to look after you
-and bring you back; and how delighted she’ll
-be to see you safe after such an adventure.”</p>
-
-<p>At this last word all the children pricked
-up their ears, especially Maggie. She, being
-the most timid of the three, had been the
-most broken down by terror, and had, until
-now, remained in the very depths of despair.
-But it was really almost a consolation to hear
-this called “an adventure,” and to remember
-that here was a subject for the most interesting
-of letters, provided they ever again reached
-home and friends, and had the opportunity of
-writing such. She was still rather doubtful
-how this was to be brought about, in spite of
-Mr. “Bad Hat’s” assurances.</p>
-
-<p>“Why! so it is an adventure,” said Bessie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span>
-“and Maggie said she wished we’d have some
-great adventure, but she didn’t mean this kind
-of a one; did you, Maggie?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, <em>indeed</em> I didn’t,” sobbed Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“But you can write a letter about it,” said
-Belle, catching her breath between almost
-every two words; “and it will be so interesting:
-all the people you know will want to read
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle, as well as Bessie, had the greatest admiration
-for Maggie’s letters, and thought them
-the most marvellous works of genius.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course they will,” said the gentleman,
-whom our little strays were already beginning
-to look upon as a friend. “And so, Maggie
-writes letters, does she? I wish she would
-write one to me one of these days.”</p>
-
-<p>“But she don’t know your name,” said
-Bessie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, perhaps she might find out. I am
-not ashamed of it. But I think this little
-lady has found a name for me. When I came
-in the car I heard her say, ‘There’s the bad
-hat man.’ Now suppose Maggie writes a letter
-and directs it to the ‘bad hat man,’ do you
-think it would reach me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I fink it would,” said Belle with
-emphasis, and eyeing the hat with a look
-which seemed to add, “there’s no possibility
-of mistaking that hat.”</p>
-
-<p>So, in pleasant, cheerful talk, the friendly
-stranger tried to beguile the way, and help
-the little ones to bear their troubles; and he
-partly succeeded, though now and then a heavy
-sigh, or a murmured “Are we most at the
-next station?” or “Oh, mamma!” showed
-that they were not forgotten. The other people,
-who had gathered round in pitying sympathy,
-saw that they had fallen into good
-hands, and went back to their seats, leaving
-them to his care.</p>
-
-<p>“But what shall we do now?” asked Maggie,
-in new alarm, as they at last approached
-the longed-for station where they were to leave
-this train, and at least feel that they were to
-be borne no farther from their friends.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span> “I
-don’t know about the streets.”</p>
-
-<p>Now it was rather a strange, but a very
-good thing that, timid as Maggie was, she
-seldom lost her presence of mind; and, however
-frightened she might be, could still think
-what was best to do for herself and others.
-You will remember how she thought of her own
-sash and Bessie’s, as a means for saving Aunt
-Bessie’s life when she fell over the precipice
-at Chalecoo. So now feeling as if the care of
-Bessie and Belle rather fell upon her, since she
-was the oldest of the three, she tried to collect
-her thoughts and plan how she should act.
-But it was all useless, this was such a new and
-untried place, and so many dangers and difficulties
-seemed to beset her, that she could not
-see her way out of them. But her fears were
-speedily set at rest.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! you are only going to do as I tell
-you,” said their new friend. “I shall see
-you safe in your parents’ hands.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you, sir?” cried Maggie joyfully,
-and slipped her hand into his, in her great
-relief.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Are you going to get out here?” asked
-Bessie, as the train slackened its speed.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes: you did not think I would leave you
-to shift for yourselves?”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you live here?” asked Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“No: I live down in Florida,” was the answer.</p>
-
-<p>“And are you going to get out here just to
-take care of us?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>He smiled and nodded assent.</p>
-
-<p>“You are very good, sir,” said Bessie. “Is
-it just as convenient as not for you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no,” he returned. “I cannot say
-it is; but then I heard a little girl say, this
-morning, that ‘any thing was to be choosed
-before mamma should be worried,’ so after
-that I think I must do all I can to relieve
-mamma’s anxiety, and get you back to her as
-soon as possible.”</p>
-
-<p>So Bessie’s thoughtfulness and care for her
-dear mother was reaping its own reward.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch8-and-15.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="VIII">VIII.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>OLD JOE.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-r.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">R Station was not much of a place.
-There were only about half a dozen
-houses, as many barns, and one store,
-which was part of the little station-house.
-And there was no telegraph; but when our
-little girls and their protector left the train,
-another gentleman promised to send a message
-to their parents from the next stopping-place.</p>
-
-<p>There was not much to entertain the children,
-even had they been in a mood to be
-amused; and the hours dragged very wearily.
-The kind gentleman would have taken them
-for a walk in the pleasant pine woods, but they
-were so fearful lest they should miss the up
-train, which was to carry them back to their
-mother and father, that they could not be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span>
-induced to lose sight of the railroad track.
-Maggie and Belle could be persuaded to do
-nothing but sit on the low bank at the side of
-the road, and look up and down the long line
-of rail for the train, which was still so far
-away. Bessie, naturally more trusting and
-less timid than the others, had more confidence
-in their new friend and what he told
-her; but she would not leave her sister and
-Belle, and, moreover, was too tired to do more
-than wait with what patience she might. So
-the “bad hat” let them do as they would,
-furnishing them with some dinner, for which
-they had little appetite, and telling them droll
-stories, which could not draw forth more
-than faint smiles. But at last Bessie found
-something to interest her.</p>
-
-<p>There was an old colored man working
-around the station, cutting wood, drawing water,
-and so forth, and he cast many a pitying
-glance toward the sorrowful little strangers.
-Nor did he content himself with looking; for,
-having finished his work for the time, he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span>
-walked away into the woods, and soon came
-back with a large leaf full of wood-strawberries,
-and a bunch of scarlet cardinal flowers
-and yellow jasmine, which he offered to them.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie took them, and, after thanking him
-prettily, divided them with Maggie and Belle;
-then, out of her own share, arranged a little
-bouquet for Mr. Travers; for that, the “bad
-hat man” had said was his name.</p>
-
-<p>“How pale and tired you look, my little
-girl!” he said as she fastened it in his button-hole:
-“suppose you lie down and take a sleep?
-It would be well if the others would do it
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>They all thought they could not possibly do
-such a thing, “the train might go by” while
-they were asleep; but when Mr. Travers proposed
-that he should spread his railway rug
-under the shade of the pine-trees, where they
-could not miss hearing the train, and said he
-would sit beside them and wake them the
-moment it was near, Bessie and Belle felt as if
-they should be glad to take advantage of his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span>
-kindness. For it was true that they were all
-three quite worn out with fatigue and excitement.
-But Maggie was very decided in her
-refusal to take a nap, saying that she “never
-went to sleep except at night, when it was no
-use to stay awake, there was nothing
-to do.”</p>
-
-<p>But when the rug was spread beneath the
-trees, she took her seat upon it with the others,
-leaning her back against a great pine, with
-Bessie’s head in her lap. Belle, too, cuddled
-close up to her; and Mr. Travers seated himself
-opposite, with his book.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish I had a story-book for you, Maggie,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s no matter, sir,” said Maggie, dolefully.
-“I’m not in good enough spirits to read. I’d
-rather think about going back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Suppose you pass the time by composing
-that letter you are to send home, telling of
-this adventure?” said the gentleman.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span> “Here
-are a pencil, and the back of a letter, if you’ll
-have them.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie brightened considerably at this suggestion,
-and gratefully accepted the kind offer.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie lay with her head in Maggie’s lap,
-drowsily thinking how pleasant it would be
-to go to sleep in this nice place, if papa and
-mamma and baby were only here too. It was
-so cool and quiet. No one seemed to be stirring
-in the cottages or the small station; not
-a sound was heard but the gentle whisper of
-the breeze in the tree-tops, the chirp of the
-crickets, and the varied notes of a mocking-bird
-perched not far from them. Then the
-spicy smell of the pines was so delicious and
-balmy.</p>
-
-<p>Not a human being was to be seen but their
-own party, and the old negro man, who now
-sat upon a wheelbarrow at a little distance,
-reading what looked like a leaf or two from a
-book. He seemed to read very slowly and
-with great pains, pointing his finger along
-from word to word, and forming the words
-with his mouth, as people do who cannot read
-very well; but he appeared to be very intent
-over it.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I wonder what he is reading,” said Bessie
-to herself, as she sleepily watched him: “it
-looks like a piece out of an old torn book.
-Maybe it’s a newspaper, and they have such a
-very little one this is such a very little
-place, and there isn’t much to tell about. I
-shouldn’t think it was very interesting here.”</p>
-
-<p>The last thing she saw before she went
-to sleep, was the old negro; and the first on
-which her eyes opened was the white-haired
-man, still sitting there, poring over his leaf, as
-if he had not moved from that spot; and yet
-she felt as if she had taken quite a long, refreshing
-nap.</p>
-
-<p>She gently turned her head, and looked at
-her companions. Belle did not appear to
-have moved, lying fast asleep with her cheek
-on Maggie’s dress, and her hat over her
-eyes, just as she had lain down. Mr. Travers
-sat with his back against a tree, his arms
-folded, his eyes closed, and bareheaded. Bessie
-turned a little more, so that she could see
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Why! was it possible? Yes, surely: watchful
-Maggie was fast asleep too. The pine-tree
-against which she leaned did not shoot up
-with a straight, unbroken trunk, as they generally
-do, but was a kind of twin tree, parting
-into two a foot above the ground, and forming
-a crook or fork. In this fork was the
-“bad hat,” and on the “bad hat” lay Maggie’s
-head, as peacefully as though it were
-the pillow of her own pretty bed at home;
-and Maggie was as sound asleep as if it were
-that same familiar pillow. One dimpled hand
-loosely held Mr. Travers’ pencil, and the paper
-lay fluttering unheeded on the ground at
-her feet. Bessie picked it up lest the breeze
-should blow it away, and Maggie’s precious
-thoughts be lost. But it was evident that the
-letter had not made much progress, for Bessie
-found only these words written:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Oh, dear, darling Uncle Ruthven</span>,&mdash;Such
-a horrible, dreadful adventure!”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>She would not disturb any of the others,
-but sat quiet a moment watching them, then
-turned her eyes again towards the old negro.</p>
-
-<p>“I think I’ll go speak to him,” she said to
-herself. “He is a great while reading his
-paper, and I s’pose he can’t make it out very
-well. Maybe I could help him, and he was
-very kind to us.”</p>
-
-<p>She rose softly, and walked slowly towards
-the old man. He looked up and smiled, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Little Miss want for any ting ole Joe can
-do for her?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, thank you,” said Bessie, now feeling
-rather shy of asking him if she could help
-him; then after a moment’s pause she added,
-“You were reading when I went to sleep, and
-you are reading now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, little Miss,” he answered, “Joe read
-most all de time when no trains on hand and
-he work all done up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it a little newspaper?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“A newspaper?” he answered, spreading<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span>
-the sheet on his knee, and laying his hand
-reverently upon it. “Yes, Missy, a newspaper
-what habs great news in it, de best news in
-de worl’,&mdash;de news how de Lord Jesus come
-down to save sinners, and old Joe among
-’em. Do little Miss know dat news?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes!” said Bessie, simply. “I always
-knew it. I’m glad you think it’s good news,
-Joe, then I know you love Him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure, Missy,” said Joe, “how I gwine for
-help love Him when I knows He done such
-a ting for Joe?”</p>
-
-<p>Feeling on the instant a bond of sympathy
-between herself and the old negro, Bessie
-slipped her soft little hand into his hard,
-black palm, as she said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“But some people who know it don’t love
-Him.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe shook his head sorrowfully.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, an’ I bery sorry for dem folks; but I
-bery glad for Joe, and for little Miss too, for
-I ’spect she love Him by de way she speak,
-an’ I know de Lord love her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you mean that was out of the Bible?”
-asked Bessie, looking at the printed sheet
-which she now saw was torn, scorched, and
-soiled.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Joe, triumphantly, “it out
-ob de Bible;” and he placed it in Bessie’s hand.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, it was out of the Bible, two leaves:
-one containing the second chapter of Luke,
-with the account of the Saviour’s birth; the
-other, part of the fifteenth and the whole of
-the sixteenth of Mark, relating his death and
-resurrection.</p>
-
-<p>“I hab de beginnin’ an’ de end,” said Joe,
-“an’ I hab some more too, some ob my Lord’s
-own bressed words what He preach to His
-people;” and he drew from his pocket a
-single leaf, containing most of the sixth chapter
-of Matthew.</p>
-
-<p>“Is that all you have of the Bible?” asked
-Bessie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Dat’s all, Missy, but dey’s a deal ob
-preciousness in it: dey’s words what bears
-readin’ ober and ober. To be sure, dey’s
-times when I gets longin’ for more; but I jes
-says, ‘Come now, old Joe, don’t be so ongrateful.
-Ef de Lord had meant you to hab more
-He would ha’ sent it you;’ and I tank Him
-for not lettin’ dis be burn up an’ for lettin’ me
-fin’ it ’fore it was blowed away by de wind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where did you find it, and how did it
-come so burnt and torn?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Foun’ it ober by Miss Sims’ house. ’Spect
-she use it for her bakin’, and when de bread
-done she trow it out, an’ de Lord He let old
-Joe fin’ it. Bress His holy name.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you mean she baked her bread on the
-leaves of the Bible?” asked Bessie, exceedingly
-shocked.</p>
-
-<p>“’Pears like it, Missy. I ’spect she don’t
-know its wort’, poor woman!” said Joe, with
-a pitying thought for the owner of the pretty,
-comfortable cottage, who was so much poorer
-than himself.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie stood looking at him with a multitude
-of feelings struggling for expression on
-her sweet, wistful, little face. Indignation at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>
-the treatment received by God’s Holy Word;
-pity, respect, and tender sympathy for the old
-negro,&mdash;were almost too much for her, and
-her color rose, and the tears came to her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Little Miss feel so bad ’bout it as did old
-Joe,” he said, “but, Missy, dat was de Lord’s
-way to help old Joe. Long time he ben
-wantin’ a Bible an’ save up he money, and
-hab mos’ enough; an’ one day a poor feller
-come along what hab no shoes an’ hab cut
-he foot awful, an’ he mus’ go on to de city
-to see his chile what dyin’; an’ de Lord say
-in my heart, ‘Joe, you gib dat money for
-shoes for dis poor feller,’ an’ I couldn’t help
-it no way, Missy, an’ I buys him de shoes
-out de store. An’ he ain’t gone but little
-time, an’ I walkin’ roun’ by Miss Sims’ feelin’
-down in de mout’ along ob my Bible; an’ a
-piece ob paper come blowin’ to my feet, an’
-I picks him up, an’ ain’t he a bit out my
-Lord’s book, an’ I sarch roun’ an’ fin’ noder
-one. Praise de name ob de Lord what sen’
-Joe such comfort till he hab more money!”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Bessie still stood silent, her heart too full
-for words at the simple story of this old disciple’s
-self-sacrifice. And he had only these
-three leaves out of God’s precious Book, while
-at home there were Bibles without number for
-all who needed them. Oh! if she only had
-one to give him. But here there was none,&mdash;yes,
-there was too.</p>
-
-<p>Just before they left home, grandmamma
-had given to each of the little girls a Testament
-and Psalms bound together. She thought
-they might be more convenient for daily use in
-travelling, than the handsomely bound Bibles
-which they generally used at home; and if
-they should happen to be lost would not be so
-much regretted. They had been carried in
-the little satchels all the way; and now, as
-usual, Bessie’s satchel hung by her side. The
-book was not large; but the print was good and
-clear, far better than that on old Joe’s cherished
-leaf, and what a world of riches it would
-hold for him.</p>
-
-<p>“I could give him mine,” thought Bessie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span>
-“and he would be so glad. I don’t b’lieve
-grandmamma would mind if I gave away her
-present for such a reason as this; and Maggie
-will let me use hers when I want to read. I
-think I ought to give it to him, and I know I
-would like to.”</p>
-
-<p>“S’pose little miss kin read fus’ rate,” said
-Joe, interrupting her thoughts.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma says I can read very nicely,” she
-answered.</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe she wouldn’t min’ readin’ out a
-piece. Some words most too hard for Joe, but
-he kin listen fus’ rate.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie drew her satchel around, and unfastened
-it.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I read you some out of my own little
-Testament?” she said, drawing forth the
-book.</p>
-
-<p>Joe’s eyes brightened.</p>
-
-<p>“If Missy be so good,” he said, eagerly.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span>
-“She hab it all dere: all how de Lord Jesus
-lib an die, an lib again, an’ talk for his people?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie. “What would you
-like me to read?”</p>
-
-<p>“If Missy read where He say, ‘Let not your
-heart be trouble’; an’ how He go to make a
-place for dose what follers Him.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie found the fourteenth of John, and
-read it carefully and distinctly, the old man
-listening intently. When she came to the
-fourteenth verse, he raised his hand and
-said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I t’ought so. I t’ought dere war a promise
-like dat. Now I know sure some day He gib
-me a Bible, I allers do ax it in His
-name, an’ He promise allers stan’ sure.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie, thoughtfully; then
-added, in a tone of some self-reproach, “but,
-Joe, I forgot that promise once this morning.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Missy mind it now?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span> “You see we
-had such a dreadful trouble, Joe, and it’s not
-quite over yet. Somehow the cars took us
-away without papa and mamma, and we didn’t
-know where we were going, and there was no
-one to take care of us. It was worse than
-once when I was lost in New York; cause
-that was my own country where I live, and
-the policemen were there; and it seemed to
-me that even our Father couldn’t help us in
-such a trouble as this. But in a minute I
-knew that was wrong, and I asked Him to
-send us help: and right away he did; for a
-kind gentleman came who we saw in the cars
-before, and he is taking care of us, and will
-take us back to papa and mamma. That is
-the gentleman there by the tree.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe nodded, as much as to say he knew, as
-indeed he did; for the story of the little wayfarers
-had come to his ears. Little he thought
-when he first heard it, what a blessing they
-had brought to him.</p>
-
-<p>“And, Joe,” continued the child, “I think
-maybe our Father had a purpose in letting us be
-run away with, and bringing us to this place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sure, Missy,” replied the old man.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span> “He
-allers hab a purpose in what He do, an’ a good
-one too; but sometimes we don’t see it,
-we ain’t fait’ enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I think I do see it now,” said Bessie,
-her tiny fingers still resting on the blessed words
-of Jesus’ promise. “I think He sent me here,
-so I could bring you my little Testament.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Missy. I ’spect He did, dat’s a fac’,”
-answered Joe, not taking in at once that she
-meant to give him the book; “an’ dose words
-done Joe a heap of good. Yes: He send you
-here for read ’em to Joe.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you don’t understand,” said Bessie.
-“I mean He sent me here to <em>give</em> you the
-Testament. I think He meant you to have it,
-you asked it in His name. It isn’t all
-the Bible: but it has all about Jesus, and a
-good deal besides, and the Psalms too; and you
-will love it very much, won’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Missy don’t mean she gwine fur gib Joe
-her own book?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh yes, I do,” answered Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span> “I have
-another Bible at home, and papa would give
-me as many as I want, and I can read my sister’s
-till we go home. I am going to give it to
-you for your own, Joe.”</p>
-
-<p>The old man sat for a moment speechless
-with wonder and gratitude, then covered his
-face with his hands.</p>
-
-<p>“I t’ank de Lord fust, and you next, Missy,”
-he said, when he removed them. “I t’ank
-Him, and bress His name, fur sen’ his little
-white dove to bring His word to ole black Joe.
-Yes, yes; for sure His promise stan’ in all
-place an’ all time. Missy fin’ it, an’ Joe fin’
-it: de ole an’ de young, de black an’ de
-white, de rich an’ de poor,&mdash;all who lub and
-trust Him. He hear all, an’ do for all.”</p>
-
-<p>He took the baby hand, and kissed it with
-a tender reverence that was very touching to
-see, but which the child in her innocence
-scarcely understood.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I read some more?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>Joe thankfully assented; and she finished
-the chapter, and read also the fifteenth then,
-closing the book, placed it in the old black
-man’s hand.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“De Lord know what’s in my heart, but I
-can’t speak it out no way,” he said, as he received
-it, drawing his rough coat-sleeve across
-his eyes; “but, Missy, I t’ink it a great t’ing
-to be de Lord’s little messenger to bring His
-word to his poor ole servant, what been thirstin’
-for it so long.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle had wakened while Bessie was reading,
-and sat up rather surprised at her little
-friend’s occupation, but did not interrupt it.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s just like my dear Bessie,” she said to
-herself; “she’s always doing somefin’ for
-somebody.”</p>
-
-<p>She looked about her as she listened to the
-reading; for every word came distinctly in the
-deep stillness around. Maggie was asleep still,
-and Mr. Travers’ eyes remained closed; but
-as Belle watched his face she said to herself,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I guess he’s just pretending. If he was
-papa, I’d go and wake him up, and tell him he
-is. Maybe he finks Bessie would be too bashful
-to read before him if she fought he was
-awake.”</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Belle was right; for Mr. Travers
-woke or seemed to wake very suddenly when
-Bessie ceased reading; and, looking at his
-watch, said that it was time for the train, and
-they must rouse the sleeping Maggie. This
-was done; and Maggie woke rather indignant
-at herself for going to sleep at all, and a little
-ashamed at finding all the others awake before
-her.</p>
-
-<p>“Why! Did you put that there, sir?” she
-asked, as Mr. Travers picked up the hat which
-had proved such a comfortable pillow, and put
-it on his head.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he answered, “I thought the tree
-rather a hard resting-place for that little head
-in spite of the mass of curls which came between
-them, so when I saw it going down I
-popped in the ‘bad hat’ without your knowing
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m very much obliged to you, sir,” said
-Maggie. “I <em>wish</em> I could do something for
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>All the children were very grateful to this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span>
-kind stranger who had taken such good care
-of them, and Belle said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I wish I could too. If I was big I’d ask
-you when your birfday was; and I’d make you
-a pair of slippers, and a pin-cushion, and a
-watch-case, and every fing nice for a birfday
-present.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I’d help,” said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“And I,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>Here was ground for Maggie to build a new
-plan upon; and, in the few minutes which
-passed before the train came, she had enough
-to think about to keep her from feeling very
-impatient for its arrival.</p>
-
-<p>And there it came, rushing up the long line
-of rail,&mdash;yet hardly fast enough for the little
-ones who had been so long away from their
-dear friends,&mdash;hailed with clapping of hands,
-dancing steps, and glad exclamations: never
-was a train more welcome.</p>
-
-<p>The place was alive in a moment. Women
-and children came out to the doors and gates
-of the cottages, dogs barked, and hens<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span>
-cackled. Half a dozen men, white and colored,
-seemed to spring out of the ground, ready
-to busy themselves on the arrival of the cars;
-and old Joe drew up his wheelbarrow to the
-side of the track, ready for any chance trunk
-or box which might need to be wheeled away,
-and bring him a few pennies. Joe was a rich
-man now, to be sure, rich in the wealth which
-should pave with shining gold the path he
-must tread to the heavenly mansion his
-Saviour had gone to prepare for him: but he
-must still have a care for his few worldly
-needs; and now that his one great desire had
-been granted, he would yet put by something
-that he might have a little to help along such
-of his Lord’s work as should be given into his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>His hand was shaken, not only by the three
-children, but also by Mr. Travers; and they
-were gone: but their coming had brought
-light and gladness to old Joe; and, in his own
-simple language, he<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span> “will nebber disremember
-dis day while de Lord remembers me.”</p>
-
-<p>There they were,&mdash;mamma, and the two
-papas, baby, nurse, and Daphne,&mdash;still at the
-station at &mdash;&mdash;, and watching as eagerly for
-the train which was to bring back the sorely
-missed darlings, as those same little darlings
-were looking for the first glimpse of the
-dearly loved faces of their “own people.”
-What joy there was! What huggings and
-kissings! some happy tears too; and as for
-Mr. Travers, if he had had six arms to be
-shaken instead of two, they would all have
-been in use at once. There was some time
-to spare before the arrival of the train
-which was to carry them on the right route,
-which had been missed that morning; and
-it would be still longer before kind Mr.
-Travers would be able to proceed on the
-journey he had so generously interrupted, at
-some inconvenience to himself, for the sake
-of the little fellow-passengers who had so
-unconsciously attracted his notice that morning.</p>
-
-<p>They gathered in the small room, which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span>
-seemed large enough to hold them all now,
-and Mr. Travers was thanked over and over
-again, his address taken by Mr. Bradford,
-and a promise drawn from him that he would
-make his house his home when he should
-come to New York. More than this, Maggie
-privately drew from him the date of his “birfday,”
-which happened to be on the twenty-fifth
-of December: and you may like to know
-that this “plan” of Maggie’s was successfully
-carried out; and, last Christmas, Mr. Travers
-received a box containing a pair of slippers
-worked by Maggie, a pin-cushion by Bessie,
-and a watch-case by Belle. I do not believe
-that Mr. Travers thought the less of them
-because there were some crooked stitches in
-them,&mdash;especially in the two last,&mdash;and that
-the pocket of the watch-case was so small that
-by no possibility could a watch be squeezed
-therein.</p>
-
-<p>But he did not part from the children that
-day without some token of remembrance, for
-when Maggie inquired about his birthday, and
-repeated,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I would so like to do something for
-you, sir, you was so kind to us,” he
-answered,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“You can do something for me, Maggie.
-Give me your little Testament, if you will;
-and when I look at it, it will bring back to
-me some very sweet recollections of this day.”</p>
-
-<p>Dear Maggie, only too happy when she
-could give or do any thing which brought
-pleasure to another, readily consented, thinking
-as Bessie had done, that “grandmamma
-wouldn’t mind when she knew the reason;”
-and the second little Testament went forth
-on its mission of love and life, in the hands
-of a new owner.</p>
-
-<p>And pray what do you think had been
-that ungrateful baby’s greeting to her little
-sisters’ new friend? Nothing less than that
-oft-repeated “Oh, bad hat!” But being rested
-and at her ease now, she was not fretful, and
-was more astonished than displeased at its
-reappearance. We ought not to call her ungrateful
-either. She was glad to see her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span>
-sisters, and offered plenty of “love Maggies’”
-and “love Bessies’,” which meant a
-tight squeeze of the little arms about the
-neck; but she could not understand the distress
-and anxiety their absence had occasioned
-on all sides, nor did she know what care had
-been bestowed upon them by the owner of the
-hat.</p>
-
-<p>But Mr. Travers having taken off the hat
-and placed it beneath his chair, Baby made
-the most of her opportunities, and, seating
-herself on the carpet behind him, pulled it
-forth, and turned it over and over on her lap.
-Finding on a closer acquaintance that it was
-not so objectionable as she had thought it, she
-proceeded to try it on; and, nothing daunted
-by the fact that she was nearly extinguished
-by it, was, greatly to the amusement of all,
-presently discovered toddling blindly about
-the room, with her small head and dimpled
-shoulders quite hidden; while from beneath
-the hat came a muffled voice saying, in lisping
-tones,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Nice hat! oh, nice hat! Baby on nice
-hat.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie almost fell from her mother’s lap,
-and Belle from her father’s knee, with laughing
-at this joke, and Maggie hopped around
-and squealed in an ecstasy of fun and delight;
-and even the grown people could not help
-laughing heartily at the little “turncoat,” as
-nurse called her pet.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch8.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch1-and-9.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="IX">IX.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>KATE.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-i.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">It would take too long to follow Maggie
-and Bessie through all their
-travels, or to visit all the places
-visited by them, going from one to another
-by easy stages, as best suited mamma; and
-staying a day or two, or a week or two,
-according to the amount of interest and
-pleasure they found in each. Charleston and
-Richmond, Virginia Springs, the famous
-Natural Bridge, and many another spot, were
-described in Maggie’s letters to her friends
-at home; but the place of which she most
-delighted to write, because there she found
-the most to describe, was Washington. Here
-is one of her letters from that city:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">My beloved Uncle Horace</span>,&mdash;I think
-Washington is the most interesting city I ever
-met with. It has so much to see and buildings
-which are quite surprising and such a
-credit to themselves and the people who built
-them that I am proud of the nation to which I
-belong. But the most interesting place I find
-is the <em>Pattern</em> Office where are to be seen
-thousands and thousands of things one can
-never be tired of looking at. There are jewels
-and beautiful birds and butterflies, and very
-nasty bugs and spiders and oh! Uncle Horace
-an awful spider so large with his legs out he
-is as big as a dinner plate, I am thankful I do
-not live in that country, for he bites too and
-the people die, and I don’t see the use of spiders
-but I suppose some, or God would not
-have made them. And there are machines
-but we children did not care much for those
-and Indian things very interesting and all
-kinds of curiosities and beautiful toys. But
-the most interesting of all General Washington’s
-furniture and his clothes. But his furniture<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span>
-was very shabby and I think his grateful
-country ought to make him a present of
-some better and his coat&mdash;why, Uncle Horace
-it was all ragged and if it was not the father
-of his country’s I would say it looked like an
-old beggar man’s. But please do not think I
-am a traitor because I say this, for I would
-not be such a thing I hope, nor a Benedict
-Arnold either, I shan’t call him Mr. for he is
-not good enough, and I think he was the
-meanest man that ever lived not to take his
-own punishment but to let poor Mr. Andre be
-killed for him. And Bessie and I do think
-the father of his country might have let Mr.
-Andre off that once if he would promise never
-to do so again and we are afraid he forgot that
-time that Jesus wanted us to forgive one
-another as He forgave us. Papa says he had
-to make an example of Mr. Andre but I think
-he would have been a better example himself
-if he had showed mercy. And in the Pattern
-Office are some stufed animals some very
-pretty and some ugly as is in the nature of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span>
-animals to be, for we all know they did not
-make themselves any more than people who
-are some ugly and some very handsome and
-they can’t help it. And so I don’t see why
-they have animals for patterns for no man nor
-woman either could make an animal but only
-God, but they are interesting to see though it
-must be disagreeable to stuff them.</p>
-
-<p>“We saw the President and we are very
-much disappointed for he looks just like
-another man, not a bit better, and we did not
-expect it of him but thought he would be very
-grand and somehow different. I don’t care a
-bit if I never see another President. I think
-it is real mean. But he has a very grand
-house and he lets people come in and see it
-which is very kind of him, for I would not
-like people I did not know to come in my
-house, and pass remarks about it; but Papa
-says Presidents and kings and things of that
-kind have to do a great many things they do
-not like very much, so I hope I will never be
-a President or his wife either and if he asks<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span>
-me to marry him I will certainly say no and
-Bessie will too.</p>
-
-<p>“There are a great many lovely toys in
-the Pattern Office but I will not say I wish
-they were mine because I cannot have them
-so it is of no use and it might be to break the
-tenth commandment. Papa says they belong
-to the government, but I don’t see what the
-government which is nothing but a lot of big
-men wants of playthings, and I think they
-would be much more use if children had them
-to take pleasure in them. If they were mine
-I would give the largest share to my Bessie,
-and then divide them with all my children
-friends and send some to the little cripples’
-hospital.</p>
-
-<p>“To-morrow Papa is going to take us to the
-Smithsonian <em>Institude</em> where they say are a
-great many curious and wonderful things and
-lots of animals dead ones I mean from all
-parts of the world. Which must be very instructif
-and if I do not improve my advantages
-I ought to be ashamed of myself and deserve<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span>
-to be a dunce. Mamma says it is time for us
-to go to bed, which I wish it was not and
-I wish there was no such place as bed but
-I do not tell dear Mamma so or she might
-think I did not honor her and I hope I may
-never be such an unnatural child. So good
-night dear Uncle Horace and Aunt May and
-May Bessie the same from your devoted
-till death do us part friend</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Maggie</span>.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>They did not stay long in Washington; for
-the weather was growing warm and oppressive,
-and our party were anxious to hurry northward,
-where it was cooler and pleasanter.
-We will not stop with them at Baltimore or
-Philadelphia, where nothing particularly interesting
-occurred; or even in their own city,
-where they stopped for a few days to rest and
-have a sight of all the dear home-faces, as
-well as to leave all the “curiosities and wonderful
-memories,” as Maggie called them, which
-they had collected in their southern rambles:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span>
-but start off with them once more on their
-further journeyings.</p>
-
-<p>They had parted from Mr. Powers and
-Belle: but Uncle Ruthven and Aunt Bessie
-had joined the party, adding much to the
-enjoyment of all; and they were now on their
-way to beautiful Trenton and Niagara Falls.</p>
-
-<p>A young lady and two gentlemen were coming
-up the brass-covered staircase of the steamboat
-which was carrying our friends up the
-river.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” said one of the latter as some
-small object fell at his feet. “What is this?
-Who is pelting me with flowers? No: it’s not
-a flower either. What is it, Mary?” and he
-stooped and picked it up, turning it round and
-round very gingerly, as if afraid it would fall
-to pieces in his fingers. “Looks like a small
-edition of that thing on your head.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just what it is,” replied his sister. “It
-is a doll’s hat. Ah! there is the little owner,
-I suppose,” and she looked up at Bessie who
-was peeping over the banisters with watchful,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span>
-earnest eyes, and holding Margaret Colonel
-Horace in her arms.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you the young lady who has been
-pelting me with dolls’ hats, and trying to
-make me think they were flowers?” asked
-the young man as he came to the top of the
-stairs.</p>
-
-<p>“It is only one hat, and I didn’t try to
-make you think it was a flower, and I didn’t
-pelt you with it, and I’m only a little girl,”
-answered Bessie, demurely. “It fell off my
-dolly’s head; but I’m very glad you came up
-just then, before any one stepped on it.”</p>
-
-<p>The gentleman put the hat on the forefinger
-of one hand, and twirled it slowly round with
-the other, while Bessie looked on, rather
-aggravated.</p>
-
-<p>“Give it to her, George; aren’t you ashamed
-to tease her?” said the young lady.</p>
-
-<p>“What will you give me for it?” asked he.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll give you ‘thank you,’ sir,” replied the
-child.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Nothing else?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir, nothing else,” answered Bessie,
-with as much dignity as any young lady could
-have worn.</p>
-
-<p>He felt the silent reproof of the child’s
-manner; and, ashamed of having teased her,
-he handed her the little hat, saying, almost
-without intending it,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I beg your pardon.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am very much obliged to you, sir,” she
-said, now smiling again. “I was ’fraid it
-would be spoiled ’fore I could call some one to
-pick it up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why didn’t you run down, and pick it up
-yourself?” asked the young lady.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought maybe mamma wouldn’t want
-me to,” said Bessie, putting on her doll’s hat.
-“She told me on the Savannah steamer never
-to go up and down the stairs alone; and I
-didn’t know if she would like me to here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Here’s a match for Kate’s paragon of obedience
-and straightforwardness,” said the
-young lady, laughing as she turned to the
-other gentleman who had not yet spoken.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“What is your name, little lady?” he
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie looked up at him. Where had she
-seen that face before? Those sparkling black
-eyes, the roguish curve of the lips, seemed very
-familiar to her; and yet she was sure the gentleman
-was a stranger, as the others were.</p>
-
-<p>But she had a fancy that these same strangers
-were making rather free with her; and
-she put on her dignified air again as she
-answered slowly,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Bessie Bradford, sir,” and turned away.
-But her steps were again checked as she heard
-her last questioner exclaim,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Why, it is Kate’s pet! The paragon herself!”</p>
-
-<p>“Kate’s pet!” The old school-name so
-often given to her by the older girls at Miss
-Ashton’s, and now uttered by the owner of the
-black eyes which seemed so familiar, made it
-at once clear to her who it was. Perhaps it
-was just as well that she did not know what
-paragon meant: she only thought it rather an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
-ugly-sounding name, and at another time she
-might have been displeased and thought it was
-intended to tease her; but, as it flashed upon
-her who he was, vexation was lost in pleased
-surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” she exclaimed, in the tone she
-sometimes used when she was both gratified
-and astonished, and looking up at him with
-flushed and sparkling face.</p>
-
-<p>“Well?” said the gentleman, laughing; as
-did both of his companions.</p>
-
-<p>“I just believe you are Katie’s brother,”
-cried the child.</p>
-
-<p>“That is an accusation I cannot deny,” he
-said, much amused. “Yes; I am Charlie
-Maynard. But how did you know that?”</p>
-
-<p>“’Cause you look a great deal like her, sir,”
-answered Bessie; “and she used to talk about
-you very often. She thinks you are very
-nice.”</p>
-
-<p>“That shows her good taste,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“She is very, very nice herself,” said the
-little girl, no longer feeling as if she were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span>
-talking to a stranger; “and I am very fond
-of her. But it is a great while since I have
-seen her. Will you please to give her my love
-when you see her, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“On one condition,” he answered; “that
-you come with me now and let me show you
-something. Something I think you will like
-to see,” he added, seeing that she hesitated.</p>
-
-<p>“I must ask mamma first,” she said. “She
-only gave me leave to wait here until Uncle
-Ruthven and Maggie came up.”</p>
-
-<p>She ran to where her mother sat, and eagerly
-asked if she might go with Katie Maynard’s
-brother to “see something.” Mamma gave
-permission; and, putting her hand confidingly
-in that of her new acquaintance, Bessie suffered
-him to lead her to the other side of the
-boat.</p>
-
-<p>Like what he had brought her to see! Bessie
-thought so indeed, when she caught sight
-of the “something;” and Margaret Colonel
-Horace nearly fell from her mamma’s arms as
-the latter sprang into those of Katie Maynard
-herself.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Kate was as much delighted and surprised
-as the child, and kissed Bessie over and over
-again; while the loving little soul nestled close
-to her, and looked up with eyes which left no
-need for words.</p>
-
-<p>Then Bessie had to be introduced to Katie’s
-father and mother, who were with her; but her
-brother said there was no occasion for him to
-go through with this ceremony, since he and
-Bessie had already made acquaintance; and he
-took a good deal of credit to himself for having
-guessed that the demure little damsel, who was
-so careful about obeying her mamma, might
-be his sister’s favorite and pet, whose name he
-had so often heard. The other lady and gentleman
-were friends of the Maynards, and
-travelling with them; and the whole party
-were, like our friends, bound for Niagara.</p>
-
-<p>“And where is the honey-bee?” asked Kate,
-who had heard Colonel Rush call Maggie by
-that name, and from that time used it for her.
-“We’ll go and bring her too.”</p>
-
-<p>But Maggie,&mdash;who had by this time come upstairs,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>
-having chosen to go down with Uncle
-Ruthven to buy some papers and “see what
-she could see” below, while Bessie preferred
-to wait above,&mdash;Maggie was by no means to be
-persuaded to join a party consisting of so many
-strangers. So Kate, who was really rejoiced
-to see her little schoolmates, and wanted to
-talk to both, must needs accept Bessie’s invitation,
-and stay with them for a while.</p>
-
-<p>“For you know you’re not a bit troubled
-with bashfulness,” said Bessie, innocently;
-“and poor Maggie is;” a speech which made
-Kate’s friends smile, and Kate herself laugh
-outright.</p>
-
-<p>But Bessie was mistaken; for Kate, in spite
-of her laugh, was for once “a bit troubled with
-bashfulness” before Mrs. Bradford. For she
-had a little feeling of consciousness in the
-presence of Bessie’s mother, which rose from
-the recollection of the affair of the clock at
-school, and the knowledge that Mrs. Bradford
-had heard of it. Mrs. Ashton had told Kate
-that she had thought it only right to tell Mrs.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span>
-Bradford of Bessie’s trial, and her steadfast resistance
-to temptation; and Kate, who had not
-seen Mrs. Bradford since the day of the giving
-of the prizes, felt a little doubtful how she would
-be received. But the lady’s kind and friendly
-greeting soon put the young girl at her ease,
-and she felt there was no need for any feeling
-of embarrassment now that her own conscience
-was at rest. She had a pleasant talk with the
-little girls, hearing of their travels and adventures,
-and telling them in return of all that
-had taken place at school after they left.</p>
-
-<p>The acquaintance between the young folks
-brought about one between their elders, which
-gave much pleasure all around; and, during
-the next two or three weeks, the two parties
-saw a good deal of one another.</p>
-
-<p>The children took a great fancy to the
-younger Mr. Maynard, Kate’s brother, as he
-did to them; and even Maggie was quite
-friendly with him from the time that he came
-and took his place near his sister, as she sat
-a little apart with Bessie on her lap, and Maggie<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span>
-close beside her, talking of all that had
-happened since they parted. He was very
-much amused with Bessie’s quaint ways and
-sayings, and with Maggie’s glowing descriptions
-of all they had seen and done during
-their travels; but he did not let his amusement
-appear, and they talked away without restraint
-before him. Now and then he would join in
-the conversation, putting a question, or making
-a remark, as though he were interested in
-what they were saying, but not so as to embarrass
-them at all; and he was so kind and
-pleasant in his manner to them, that they both
-speedily honored him with their “approval,”
-and a place in the ranks of their friends.</p>
-
-<p>Not so with Mr. Temple, Charlie Maynard’s
-companion. When, after a time, he sauntered
-up and joined the group, he soon put a check
-upon the merry chatter of the little girls.
-Not intentionally, for he had more to say to
-them, and asked more questions than Mr.
-Maynard himself: but it was done with a tone
-and manner which they did not like; in a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span>
-half-mocking way, which irritated Bessie, and
-brought on a fit of shyness with Maggie. Indeed,
-the latter would not stand it long, but
-moved away to her mamma.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, dear?” asked her mother,
-seeing that something had disturbed her.</p>
-
-<p>“That hateful man, mamma,” said Maggie,
-lowering her voice that she might not be
-heard by the object of her displeasure.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not call names, dear,” said her mother.
-“What has he done to you?”</p>
-
-<p>“He talks disagreeable nonsense, mamma.”</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you liked nonsense once in a
-while,” said Mr. Stanton.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! it’s not nice, amusing nonsense like
-yours, Uncle Ruthven. He talks compliments,
-and compliments he don’t mean either. He
-is horrid, and very silly, too.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps he thinks you like it,” said Mr.
-Stanton.</p>
-
-<p>“He has no business to think so,” said
-Maggie, waxing more indignant.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span> “We were
-having a very nice time with Miss Kate, and
-he made himself a great interruption. He
-teased us about our dolls; and then he asked
-us a great many ridiculous questions, and
-talked a great many foolish things about Bessie’s
-eyes and my hair. If it was grown ladies
-he talked to that way they would say he was
-impertinent, and I don’t see what children
-have to stand it for. It is horrid nonsense.”</p>
-
-<p>Mamma thought it horrid nonsense too. She
-did not like to have such things said to her
-little girls, and was glad that they were too
-wise to be pleased with such foolish flattery,
-which might otherwise have made them vain.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Mr. Temple was continuing his
-“horrid nonsense” to Bessie, in spite of more
-than one reproof from Kate and her brother;
-but the little “princess” received it in the
-most disdainful silence, which greatly amused
-not only the two last, but also the offender
-himself. But at last it became more than
-Bessie could bear, and she too slipped from
-Kate’s hold and went back to her mother.
-From this time, the children avoided Mr.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span>
-Temple as much as possible; and, if they could
-help it, would not join the Maynards when he
-was with them.</p>
-
-<p>“What is the reason you don’t like George
-Temple?” asked Kate of Bessie one day.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said Bessie, coloring: for
-she did not know she had made her dislike so
-plain; and she really found it difficult to put
-in words the cause of her annoyance. “I
-don’t know, Miss Kate; but I <em>don’t</em> like him.
-I believe I don’t approve of young men,” she
-added doubtfully, as if she were not quite sure
-of the latter fact.</p>
-
-<p>“But you like Charlie, don’t you?” said
-Kate, smiling, “and he is a young man,
-younger than Mr. Temple.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Bessie, with an air of
-deep reflection,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span> “but&mdash;then&mdash;I b’lieve the
-reason is, that Mr. Temple is not so very
-gentleman as Mr. Maynard. Your brother
-plays with us, and makes fun for us, but he
-is just as polite as if we were big ladies; but
-I think Mr. Temple is one of those people who
-seem to think children don’t have feelings.
-You know there is such a kind of people, Miss
-Kate.”</p>
-
-<p>“She knows the ring of the pure metal,”
-said Kate afterwards to her mother, “and
-distinguishes the true gentleman in heart and
-feeling, as well, or better than her elders.
-She did not mean her words for me, I am
-sure; but I could not but remember that it is
-not so long since I was myself one of that
-“kind of people who seem to think children
-don’t have feelings”;” and Kate laughed at the
-recollection of Bessie’s solemn air, when she
-had pronounced her opinion of Mr. Temple.
-“Poor Maggie! how I used to tease her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed, Kate,” said Mrs. Maynard,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span>
-“grown people, I fear, too often forget how
-easily a child’s feelings are wounded; how
-the word, the look, or laugh, which to us is a
-matter of indifference, or some passing moment’s
-amusement, may mortify and grieve
-some sensitive little heart, and leave there a
-sore spot long after we have forgotten it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Kate, regretfully, “my conscience
-is not at ease on that point. And you
-may thank darling Bessie, mother, for giving
-me more than one innocent lesson in consideration
-and thoughtfulness for others, both
-old and young. The honey-bee, too, with all
-her heedlessness,&mdash;and she is naturally a careless
-little thing,&mdash;leaves no sting behind her,
-for she never forgets the rule which she calls,
-‘doing unto others.’”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch2-and-9.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch10.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="X">X.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>MAGGIE’S POEM.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-i.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">“Isn’t it a nice day, Maggie?” said
-Bessie, coming to her sister, who
-was leaning with both arms on the
-railing which guarded the upper-deck, watching
-the flashing water, the magnificent mountains,
-the blue sky, and all the other beauties
-around and above her.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Maggie; “and we’re
-having such a nice sail, except for that man.
-Bessie, my head is quite full of poetry about
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Write some then,” said Bessie; “and we’ll
-send it to my soldier. He’ll be so pleased.
-I’ll ask papa for a pencil and some paper;”
-and she made her request to her father, who
-let her take his memorandum-book for the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span>
-purpose; and, furnished with this and excited
-by all the beauty around, Maggie broke forth
-into the following verses, the first of which
-was thought remarkably fine by Bessie and
-herself, as being not only extremely poetical,
-but also as containing a great deal of religious
-sentiment very touchingly expressed:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<p class="center">“POEM ON A STEAMBOAT SAIL.</p>
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“I have so very many mercies,</div>
-<div class="verse">I have to write them down in verses;</div>
-<div class="verse">Because my heart in praise goes up</div>
-<div class="verse">For such a full and heaped-up cup.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“But, ah! ’tis my unhappy fate</div>
-<div class="verse">To see on board a man I hate:</div>
-<div class="verse">I know I should not be so mad;</div>
-<div class="verse">But he behaves so very bad.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“‘Hate’ there only means ‘can’t bear,’”
-said Maggie, when she had finished this last
-verse and read it aloud to her sister:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span> “but you
-see ‘can’t bear’ don’t rhyme very well with
-‘fate;’ and I want to put that, it is such a very
-poetical word, and sounds so very grown-up-y.
-I had to put that verse about Mr. Temple
-for a relief to my feelings; and ‘hate’ must
-be excused.”</p>
-
-<p>“That first verse is lovely,” said Bessie.
-“It sounds so very nice; and, besides, it is
-so pious.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie. “I thought I’d better
-begin with a little religion and gratitude.
-Besides, it was that made the poetry come
-into my ideas, Bessie. I was thinking how
-very good and grateful we ought to be, when
-God gives us such a very beautiful world to
-look at, and travel about in.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie, putting her head on
-one side and giving her sister a look which
-expressed as much admiration and affection
-as a look could do, “yes: what a very smart,
-nice girl you are, Maggie!”</p>
-
-<p>“You think so,” said Maggie; “but everybody
-don’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s they don’t know any better,”
-said Bessie, whose praise might have spoiled
-Maggie, if the latter had been at all vain and
-conceited.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“The second verse isn’t very pious,” said
-Maggie, looking at it doubtfully; “but I guess
-I’ll leave it in.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you can explain it to Uncle Horace
-when you write to him,” said Bessie. “But
-make some more, Maggie: your poetry is
-splendid.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus encouraged, Maggie went on,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“I look upon the blue, blue sky,</div>
-<div class="verse">That spreads above us there on high:</div>
-<div class="verse">Below, the water sparkles bright,</div>
-<div class="verse">And all around the land is light.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“The sun is shining, too, above,</div>
-<div class="verse">And whispers to us, ‘God is love!’</div>
-<div class="verse">The moon, also, will shine to-night,</div>
-<div class="verse">And pretty stars will twinkle bright.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Oh, what lovely description you do make!”
-exclaimed Bessie, when Maggie read these
-two verses.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“This world is all so beautiful,</div>
-<div class="verse">We should be very grateful;</div>
-<div class="verse">But then, you know, sometimes we’re not,</div>
-<div class="verse">And do forget our happy lot.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“We’ll have to read gra-te-ful to make it
-come right with beautiful,” said Maggie,
-“but it sounds good enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! it’s perfectly lovely,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Our father and our mother dear,</div>
-<div class="verse">Each sitting in a steamboat chair;</div>
-<div class="verse">Aunt Bessie too, the darling dear,</div>
-<div class="verse">And Uncle Ruthven sitting near.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">“Oh! it doth make my heart rejoice</div>
-<div class="verse">To hear each loved and pleasant voice;</div>
-<div class="verse">And then I have my sisters sweet,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who with kind smiles me always greet.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“What does ‘greet’ mean?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“It means something like welcome,” answered
-Maggie. “I can’t explain exactly;
-but I know it is a word poetry-writers use a
-great deal, and I thought I had better put it
-in.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie wrote on,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“And then I’ve lots of friends at home,</div>
-<div class="verse">From whom just now away I roam;</div>
-<div class="verse">I trust they’ll all be safe and sound</div>
-<div class="verse">When I again at home am found.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“That is enough for to-day,” said Maggie<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
-“but I am going to make a long poem out of
-it, and I’ll do some more another time. I
-s’pose Niagara will be a good thing to put in
-it. You know they say it is splendid.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is ‘roam’?” asked Bessie, who must
-always inquire the meaning of every word she
-did not understand.</p>
-
-<p>“To travel about. Just what we’re doing,”
-answered Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Then why don’t you say travel? I think
-it’s the nicest word.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it is not so uncommon,” said Maggie;
-“and you know when people write poetry
-they always put in all the uncommon words
-they can find.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do they?” said Bessie, as if she did not
-quite approve of this rule.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, to be sure,” answered Maggie. “You
-know prose is just common talking; but
-poetry is uncommon talking, and you have to
-make it sound as fine as you can, and put
-words you don’t use every day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span> “Well, if you have
-done, I guess we’d better give papa back his
-book.”</p>
-
-<p>Accordingly, the book was carried to papa,
-who had not had any idea that Maggie’s poetical
-fancy would carry her so far, and who was
-rather surprised to see several pages scribbled
-over with verses that were lined and interlined,
-scratched out and written over, in a
-manner which did not add to the beauty or
-neatness of the book.</p>
-
-<p>However, he only laughed, and taking out
-his penknife carefully cut out the scribbled
-leaves and gave them to the little poetess,
-who rolled them up, and tying them round
-with a bit of twine, stowed them away in her
-satchel, till such time as she should be ready
-to copy and add to them.</p>
-
-<p>But she did not find leisure for this till
-they had been at Niagara for two or three
-days; and then, when she looked in her travelling-bag
-for the precious poem, lo! it was
-gone! In vain did she and Bessie take out
-all the other contents from the satchel, shake<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span>
-it, and feel in each corner and pocket: no
-poem came to light, and great was the sorrowing
-over its loss.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I s’pose I’ll never hear of it again,”
-said Bessie, regretfully, when mamma said
-she thought Maggie must have pulled it out
-with some of the other things her bag contained,
-and so dropped it, unseen.</p>
-
-<p>But poor Maggie <em>was</em> to hear of her poem
-again; to hear a little too much of it.</p>
-
-<p>The two parties spent a week or more at
-Niagara Falls, visiting many a point of interest
-and beauty,&mdash;sometimes together, sometimes
-apart; now standing below the level of
-the Rapids, and looking backward at their
-white foaming crests drawn sharply against
-the blue sky, as the mad waters went whirling
-and rushing over the slope; now, in the early
-morning, looking up to the top of the Great
-Fall, which shone and flashed like jewels in
-the rays of the sun, the gray mist curling
-below, and a glorious rainbow stretching from
-shore to shore; now taking the little steamer<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span>
-which plies to the foot of the cataract, into
-the very midst of the thick, blinding spray.
-Mamma did not think it best for Bessie to go
-on this expedition; but strong, hardy, little
-Maggie was allowed to go, well wrapped in
-water-proof, and held fast in papa’s or Uncle
-Ruthven’s arms. On the whole, however,
-Maggie did not enjoy this as much as she did
-the other excursions. In the first place, Bessie
-was not with her, and then she wanted to
-laugh at the droll, miserable-looking figures
-about her, but would not do so, lest she
-should “hurt their feelings, when they looked
-so very unhappy, and as if they wished they
-had not come.”</p>
-
-<p>Then again they would pass over to some
-of the lovely little islands, which here and
-there break the rapids above the American
-Fall. Two of them, Ship and Brig Islands,
-had a special interest for the children, from
-their resemblance to ships under full sail.
-Even Bessie, who could never be persuaded to
-imagine any thing which she did not distinctly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span>
-see, noticed this, and said she felt almost
-sorry for them, for it seemed as if they were
-“real live ships trying to sail out of the
-waters that were hurrying them away so
-fast.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Bradford and Mr. Stanton had gone
-over to Goat Island one afternoon, taking the
-little girls with them. Here they were lying
-and sitting under the overarching trees, looking
-at the Hermit’s Cascade, and listening
-to the deep, never-ceasing voice of the great
-cataract, when they were joined by the younger
-portion of the Maynard party,&mdash;Kate and
-her brother, and Mr. and Miss Temple.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie and Bessie had by this time taken
-Mr. Charlie Maynard into special favor, looking
-upon him with eyes nearly as friendly as
-those with which they regarded his sister;
-and they were glad to see both him and Kate.
-Miss Temple, too, a quiet, lady-like girl, they
-liked very well, and did not object to her; but
-they could very well have dispensed with her
-brother’s society. However, he did not on<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span>
-this occasion seem at first disposed to prove
-teasing or troublesome, but stretched himself
-upon the grass, with his head supported on
-his arm and his hat half over his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>But, by and by, Mr. Bradford and Mr. Stanton,
-seeing an old friend at a little distance,
-went to speak to him; the former telling his
-little girls to remain where they were till he
-returned. They were scarcely out of hearing,
-when George Temple, turning lazily over so
-as to face Maggie, though he still kept his
-eyes shaded by his hat, said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“This is delightful! One could dream half
-one’s life away in this enchanting place and
-in such pleasant company. Have we not a
-poet or poetess among us to put it all into
-verse? What! no answer to the call? Then
-I shall have to try my hand at it.”</p>
-
-<p>“You making verses!” said his sister,
-laughing, and playfully pulling the brown
-locks which escaped from beneath his hat.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
-“You making verses! a lame style of poetry
-that would be, to be sure.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” said George. “Certainly
-I never appeared to have much talent that
-way; but no one can tell what he may be
-able to do when a fitting time arrives. I
-feel on the present occasion like the gifted
-authoress who says so touchingly,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">‘I have so very many mercies</div>
-<div class="verse">I have to write them down in verses.’”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Maggie started, and looked up from the little
-bunch of wild flowers she was arranging to
-carry home to her mother.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Maynard and the young ladies laughed;
-and Charlie said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“What a gem! Who is your authoress?”</p>
-
-<p>“She is Anon., I believe,” said George,
-sleepily. “She closes the couplet with,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">‘Because my heart in praise goes up</div>
-<div class="verse">For such a full and heaped-up cup.’</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="noindent">Now I am in just such a frame of mind, and
-quite agree with her when she goes on to say,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">‘This world is all so beautiful,</div>
-<div class="verse">We should be very gra-te-ful;</div>
-<div class="verse">But then, you know, sometimes we’re not,</div>
-<div class="verse">And do forget our happy lot.’”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“George,” said Miss Temple, “how can you
-be so foolish?” but she laughed again, and
-the others, too, went on laughing and joking
-him about his “nonsense;” while poor Maggie
-sat,&mdash;with downcast-eyes, changing color, and
-beating heart,&mdash;listening intently to every
-word her tormentor uttered, and wondering
-how much more pain he would put her through.
-As for Bessie, she had at first heard in wondering
-surprise those strangely familiar lines;
-but surprise soon changed to sympathy for her
-Maggie, and indignation against Mr. Temple.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Kate turned her eyes towards the
-two little faces, and the expression of both left
-no room for doubt as to who was the author of
-the unfortunate verses. Maggie was in an
-agony of embarrassment: too well did Kate
-know the signs, and remember with shame
-how, not long since, she herself had found as
-much amusement in them as George Temple
-was probably now doing, since he was taking
-so much pains to excite them. But Kate had
-learned better, and had grown more thoughtful<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span>
-and considerate, more careful not to give
-pain to another for the sake of a little passing
-enjoyment to herself. How cruel Mr. Temple’s
-teasing seemed to her now, and how she
-felt for Maggie!</p>
-
-<p>For Bessie, too, who she saw was trying to
-keep down her rising temper, she was very
-sorry. She must come to the rescue in some
-way.</p>
-
-<p>“I might have known from the first,” she
-said to herself, “that those were Maggie’s
-verses. They sound just like her,&mdash;just like
-her happy, grateful, little heart, always so
-ready and eager to give praise and gratitude
-where they are due. They are not bad for
-such a child, either; but I must help her out
-of this. Poor little Maggie!”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s another sentiment of the talented
-writer, to which I shall also say amen,” began
-Mr. Temple again,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“‘And then I’ve lots of friends at home</div>
-<div class="verse">From whom just now away I roam;</div>
-<div class="verse">I hope they’ll all be safe and sound</div>
-<div class="verse">When I again at home am found.’”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I thought you meant to try your own
-powers of rhyming,” said Kate. “I am glad
-you have not, for I know you could not do
-nearly as well as the writer you quote; and I
-am sure you have not half as feeling a heart.
-But we have had enough.”</p>
-
-<p>This was an unlucky speech of Kate’s; for
-it gave Mr. Temple an opportunity of doing
-still worse.</p>
-
-<p>“A feeling heart!” he repeated: “well, I
-don’t know about that; her feelings seem to
-have been mixed, for she says,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">‘Alas! ’tis my unhappy fate</div>
-<div class="verse">To see on board a man I hate:</div>
-<div class="verse">I know I should not be so mad;</div>
-<div class="verse">But he behaves so very bad.’</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Now, I am in a much more amiable frame of
-mind; for I do not see in this present company
-a single person whom it is ‘my unhappy fate’
-to hate. How is it with you, Maggie?”</p>
-
-<p>But Maggie was overwhelmed, and could
-not possibly have answered if she had wished
-to do so ever so much.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Maggie,” said Kate, seeing no way to
-spare the child further confusion but by taking
-her away, “you have not enough green with
-those flowers. Come over there, I see some
-pretty leaves, and we will gather them.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie sprang to her feet, letting the flowers
-fall to the ground, and seized eagerly upon
-the kind hand held out for her relief. The
-tears, which she had been struggling to hold
-back, flowed freely the moment she was beyond
-the sound of her tormentor’s voice; but
-she felt better for them and for Kate’s sympathy.</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind, dear,” said Kate, soothingly.
-“I know the poetry is yours, Maggie,
-and it is very nice indeed; but I would not
-say so before Charlie and Mary. I thought
-you would not like it. George Temple could
-not have written it himself, and he ought to
-be ashamed to tease you so.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s <em>too, too</em> mean,” sobbed Maggie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span> “and
-that man is too horrid. I didn’t really mean
-I hated him; but now I most feel as if I did.”</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile Bessie, who had lingered a moment
-to pick up Maggie’s flowers, was receiving
-in dignified silence Mr. Temple’s questions
-as he asked “what ailed her sister?”</p>
-
-<p>“What is the matter, George?” said Miss
-Temple, seeing something was wrong. “Are
-you teasing Maggie? Are those verses hers?”</p>
-
-<p>“I told you they were Anon.,” replied her
-brother.</p>
-
-<p>This was a little too much. It was quite
-bad enough for Mr. Temple to torment Maggie
-so; but that he should give the credit of those
-beautiful verses to another, was more than
-could be borne, and Bessie turned upon him,
-saying, with the utmost severity, but without
-passion,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“They’re not. Miss Anon. didn’t write
-them. My Maggie did; and you know it, and
-you took them out of her bag.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Temple laughed with the others at the
-first part of the speech, but looked grave again
-at its ending.</p>
-
-<p>“Hallo!” he said, rousing himself from the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span>
-lazy attitude he had kept until now, “do you
-know what you are saying, little lady? That
-would be stealing.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie stood looking at him for a moment
-in silence.</p>
-
-<p>“I picked them up off the deck of the steamboat,”
-said the young gentleman, a shade of
-vexation crossing his face as he noted the
-expression of the child’s.</p>
-
-<p>With grave reproach in her great, serious
-eyes, she made answer,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see why it’s not just the same.”</p>
-
-<p>“The same as what, as stealing?”</p>
-
-<p>“You knew they were not yours, sir,” answered
-the child. “I don’t suppose it was
-just stealing, but I think it was”&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Mr. Temple, seeing she hesitated.</p>
-
-<p>“I had better go away,” said Bessie: “I
-feel pretty saucy and I might say something
-you deserved;” with which she turned away,
-and ran after Kate and Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Temple looked, as he felt, uncomfortable.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span>
-The joke had proved more serious than he had
-intended; and the remarks made by his two
-companions, and their amusement at Bessie’s
-words, did not tend to make him better pleased
-with the consequences of his own conduct.</p>
-
-<p>Kate added her reproaches when she returned,
-after leaving Maggie and Bessie in
-their father’s care, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I had rather, for your own sake, that you
-had done this thing to any other children than
-those two, George. They are both so truly
-just, and have such a high sense of honor,
-which you have rudely shocked.”</p>
-
-<p>“A child’s sense of honor,” repeated George,
-rather scornfully. “I am sorry I teased them,
-and had no idea Maggie would take it so
-hardly; but I am not troubled in regard to my
-self. A child’s opinion does not signify much.”</p>
-
-<p>“It does with me,” said Kate,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span> “and I can
-tell you a story to the point, and which may
-show you what a child’s sense of honor is
-worth. I think they sometimes see the right
-and wrong more clearly than we do.”</p>
-
-<p>“You seem to have great faith in these
-little friends of yours,” said Mr. Temple.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” replied Kate, “I have reason. They
-have been tried and not found wanting, as
-you shall hear;” and Kate told the story of
-the prize composition,&mdash;the hopes and fears
-regarding it, its loss and recovery, and the
-noble way in which our little girls had acted.</p>
-
-<p>“Capital!” said Charlie, as she ended.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
-“They judge others only by the rules by which
-their own conduct is guided; and there is a
-wise saying in an old book we all know of,
-which we would do well to remember: namely,
-‘Take heed that ye offend not one of these
-little ones.’ I take that to mean, not only
-that we are to set a good example to them,
-and that we must so act and speak as not to
-confuse and disturb their ideas of right and
-wrong; but also, that whoever purposely hurts
-or grieves one of them, commits a sin in the
-eyes of Him who gave them His special care
-and blessing. Which of us could have calmly
-borne ridicule thrown upon some cherished
-work of our own, such as you cast, George,
-on the simple verses of that shy, sensitive,
-little Maggie? Poor little poetess! And I
-honor Bessie, baby though she is, for the way
-in which she struggled with her temper, and
-removed herself from the temptation to give
-way to it, and ‘say something you deserved.’
-Could there have been a more severe reproof
-than that?” and Mr. Maynard laughed again
-at Bessie’s speech and manner, though he felt
-that this had become no laughing matter.</p>
-
-<p>“They have both forgiven him now,” said
-Kate, dryly;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span> “and Bessie made the excuse for
-him which she usually makes for others who
-do what she considers wrong, that ‘maybe
-Mr. Temple had never been taught better, and
-so didn’t know what was very true and honest,
-or he wouldn’t have kept Maggie’s verses,
-when he knew they were hers, for such a very
-unkind purpose as to tease her.’ ‘And maybe
-he didn’t know how very bad I felt, and
-never thought much about doing unto others,’
-added Maggie. I cannot believe you meant
-to be as cruel as you were, George; for you
-did not know how much Maggie dreads notice
-drawn upon herself. You see,” she added,
-playfully, “I have myself so lately learned the
-lesson how much suffering such thoughtlessness
-may cause another, that I feel entitled to
-preach on the subject to others.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Temple took the preaching in good part.
-He had a lazy kind of good-nature which would
-not allow him to take offence readily; and,
-besides, he was really sorry and vexed with
-himself for what he had done. Perhaps he
-would have regretted it still more, had he
-seen part of a letter written that afternoon by
-Maggie to Colonel Rush:&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<p>“<span class="smcap">Dear Uncle Horace</span>,&mdash;I think there are
-a kind of people in the world who seem to be
-created only for a very bad business, namely,
-to tease poor children and make their shyness
-come back to them when they have been trying
-very hard to cure themselves of it. Of
-this nature is a man whose name I will not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span>
-mention, for some day you might know him
-and say ‘there is the trecherous man who
-was so cruel to Maggie and I will not be acquainted
-with him’ which would be a punishment
-I would not wish even him to bear
-because I am trying to forgive him but it is
-very hard. He picked up a poem I wrote on
-the boat to send to you, and he kept it and
-said it before me just to plage me and there
-was a verse in it about him which was not at
-all a compliment and oh! dear Uncle Horace
-he said that too, and it was dreadful I was so
-frightened. I am quite sure he knew it was
-mine and Bessie is too and I don’t think it
-was very honest not to give it right back do
-you? but to read it which was not like what
-a gentleman should do. He made believe he
-thought it was nice but he did not and was
-only making fun of it which was a hard distress
-to bear and I think I shall never recover
-it and feel as pleasant with that man as I
-would wish to feel with all my fellow cretures.
-Miss Kate was very nice and took me away<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span>
-and she is much improved and never teases
-any more and now I love her dearly; but she
-never teased me so badly as that man who I
-will not name and I pity Miss Temple for having
-such a brother for she is a very nice young
-lady and deserves better. When Harry and
-Fred are young men which I wish they did
-not have to be I hope they will remember this
-and take pattern by Mr. Maynard and not by
-M&mdash;&mdash; that other man I mean. But no more
-on this melancorly subject so sad to think on
-but I will tell you about Niagara Falls.</p>
-
-<p>“N. B. Mr. Temple is a very good looking
-young man in his appearance but I find all is
-not gold that glitters.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch6-and-10.jpg" width="200" height="135" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch3-and-11.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="XI">XI.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>GOOD SEED.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div class="blockquote">
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-m.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap"><span class="smcap">“My own dear Solger</span>,&mdash;I do want to
-see you so much I don’t kno wat
-to do and Ant May too and May
-Bessie. I did not see you ever so long and
-it is such a grate wile I miss you so. But
-Mamma says some day we will go to your
-house in that place where you live and I will
-be so glad and my Maggie too. They are
-indians in Nigra Falls and they have pretty
-things and we bort some for all our peple and
-a baskit for Ant May and a rattel for May
-Bessie and something for you that is a secret.
-Plese dont tell them so they will be surprised
-and Nigra Falls is so fast you cant think. I
-never saw such fast water and it makes such
-a noise but not so nice as the sea and I like it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span>
-best when we go on the ilans or up the river
-where it is not so much noise or such hie
-water to fall over. Some ilans are named the
-three sisters and we call one Maggie and one
-Bessie and one Annie don’t you think that is
-nice. I want to see Belle so much. Belle
-loves me and I love Belle and Maggie does too
-and I love her more that her mama went
-away to Jesus and she wants her but I know
-she loves her yet and is glad when she is good.
-And Belle is sweet. Don’t you love Belle?
-I send you forty nine kisses and I love you
-dear Uncle Horace from your pet</p>
-
-<p class="right">“<span class="smcap">Bessie</span>.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>It would be hard to tell who took the most
-pleasure in these letters from our little travellers,&mdash;those
-who wrote them, or those who received
-them. One thing is certain,&mdash;that they
-were all carefully kept and laid away, and
-some time, when they are older, Maggie and
-Bessie may find some amusement in looking
-over these records of their childish days. Many<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span>
-a pleasant scene and circumstance will they
-bring back to them, and some not so bright
-perhaps; for the little ones have their trials, as
-we know, and do not, I fear, forget as readily
-as we grown people would believe. It is
-strange we do not see that too; looking back,
-as we often do, with a sort of tender pity for our
-own former grieved and mortified <em>little</em> selves,
-and remembering with such distinctness the
-sharp or quick word of reproof, the thoughtless
-teasing, or the loud, sudden laugh at some
-innocent speech or action.</p>
-
-<p>Little did Bessie think when she wrote that
-last letter, how soon her wishes to see her
-dear friends were to be gratified.</p>
-
-<p>It had been intended to take the steamer
-down Lake Ontario and the St. Lawrence to
-Montreal: but on the day before that on which
-our friends were to leave Niagara, there was a
-severe storm which tossed and roughened the
-waters of the great lake; and fearing that
-Maggie might have an attack of the old enemy
-she so dreaded, and knowing that fresh water<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
-seasickness is even worse than that which
-comes from the salt water, the elders of the
-party decided not to take the boat down the
-lake.</p>
-
-<p>They therefore went by the cars to Kingston,
-in Canada, and, after passing a day there,
-took the boat down the river St. Lawrence;
-for here Maggie had nothing to fear from her
-foe. There was no part of their long journey
-which the children enjoyed more than their
-passage down this beautiful river, so different
-from any thing they had yet seen. The Lake
-of the Thousand Isles, as the entrance to the
-St. Lawrence is called, full of little islets up
-to the number that is named, a thousand:
-some larger, and covered with graceful, feathery
-trees; some so small as scarce to afford
-room for some solitary tree or bush; clustering
-together so as scarce to leave room for the
-steamer to pass, then again separating, with a
-broad, clear sheet of water between them.</p>
-
-<p>Here something occurred which greatly interested
-not only the children, but also the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span>
-grown people on board. As the steamer was
-slowly making her way between two small
-islands, the passengers saw a very exciting
-chase before them. A fine stag was swimming
-across the river, pursued by dogs and
-two boats with men in them. The poor beast
-was trying with all his strength to escape
-from his cruel enemies, and the sympathies
-of all the passengers were with him. The men
-in the boats had no guns, but a net, which they
-were trying to throw over his head; but each
-time they neared him, he shot forward beyond
-their reach. Maggie and Bessie were in a
-state of the wildest excitement, as they watched
-the innocent and beautiful creature panting
-with terror and fatigue; and their elders were
-hardly less so. Bessie held fast her father’s
-hand, gazing with eager eyes and parted lips,
-her color coming and going, her little frame
-trembling with distress and indignation; and
-Maggie seized upon Uncle Ruthven and danced
-up and down in frantic suspense and alarm
-at the danger of the poor beast. His courage<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span>
-seemed giving out, and his pursuers cheered in
-triumph; when, summoning up all his strength,
-he suddenly turned, and, passing almost under
-the bow of the steamer, made for the opposite
-and nearer shore, thus gaining upon his enemies
-as they took time to turn their boats; and
-cleaving the water, almost like lightning, he
-reached the thickly wooded bank, bounded up,
-and was lost to sight among the forest trees,
-and beyond the reach of his would-be destroyers.
-A cheer burst from those on board, as
-the noble creature disappeared in safety,&mdash;a
-cheer in which Maggie joined with all her
-heart, “for I couldn’t help it, and most forgot
-it was rather tomboyish,” she afterwards said.
-But no one found fault with her: indeed no
-one could. As for Bessie, she fairly cried,
-but it was only with pleasure and the feeling
-of relief.</p>
-
-<p>Later in the day, they were greatly interested
-in seeing the shooting of the Rapids,
-as the passage of the steamer over the foaming
-waters is called. It was a curious sight.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span>
-The water foamed and bubbled around the
-steamer, seeming as though it were eager to
-draw it down; but the vessel glided on, rose
-a little to the billows, plunged, rose again, and
-was once more in smooth waters. There were
-several of these rapids to be passed; and, although
-our little girls had been rather frightened
-at the first, they soon became accustomed
-to it, and enjoyed the swift descent. The
-crew of the steamer were all Canadians; and,
-as they came to each rapid, they struck up
-some cheery boat-song, which rose sweet and
-clear above the roar of the waves, and put
-heart and courage into the more timid ones
-among the passengers.</p>
-
-<p>They soon reached Montreal, where they
-spent a week; and here again the opportunity
-to do a kind act, and leave a blessing behind
-them, came in the way of our little sisters.</p>
-
-<p>They were one day passing through the long
-upper hall of the hotel at which they stayed,
-when they met the chamber-maid who waited
-on their rooms, crying bitterly. The girl, who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span>
-was quite young, had her apron thrown over
-her head, and seemed in great distress.</p>
-
-<p>“What is the matter, Matilda?” asked
-nurse, who was with the children.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve lost my place,” sobbed Matilda; “and
-I’ve my mother and my two little brothers to
-take care of. Oh! whatever will I do?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why are you turned away?” asked nurse,
-who thought the girl attended to her duties
-very well, and was civil and obliging.</p>
-
-<p>Then Matilda took down her apron, showing
-her face all streaked with tears, and told her
-story.</p>
-
-<p>She had, it appeared, been unfortunate,&mdash;perhaps
-rather careless,&mdash;and had broken one
-or two articles, the loss of which had greatly
-vexed the house-keeper, who had told her she
-should leave her place the next time she broke
-any thing. This had made her more careful;
-but that morning an accident had occurred
-which might have happened to any one.
-Turning the corner of a corridor, with a pitcher
-full of water in her hand, some one had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
-run against her, the pitcher was knocked from
-her hold, and broken into a hundred pieces.
-The house-keeper would hear of no excuse,
-and bade her leave the house at once, or pay
-for the pitcher.</p>
-
-<p>“And I haven’t a penny,” said the girl;
-“for I sent all my wages to my mother yesterday
-to pay her rent, and there’s nothing for
-it but I must go. And what is to become of
-us all, if I don’t get another place right
-away?”</p>
-
-<p>Nurse tried to comfort her, by saying she
-would soon find another situation; but Matilda
-replied that was not so easy, and she feared
-they would all suffer before she found it; and
-went away, still crying bitterly. Maggie and
-Bessie were very sorry for her.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder if we haven’t money enough to
-pay for the pitcher, Bessie,” said Maggie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>
-“If we had, then maybe the house-keeper
-would let her stay; and if she won’t we could
-give Matilda the money to keep her mother
-and brothers from starving.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that’s a good thought of you, Maggie,”
-said Bessie; “and there’s the house-keeper
-now. Let’s run and ask her quick:
-may we, nursey?”</p>
-
-<p>Nurse gave permission, though she did not
-think the children would be successful in their
-errand of kindness; and said low, either to
-herself or baby, whom she carried in her
-arms,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Eh! the little dears will do naught with
-her. She’s a cross-grained creature, that
-house-keeper, and as short in her way as a
-snapping-turtle.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie’s courage began to fail her when
-she and Bessie ran up to the house-keeper, and
-heard the severe tone in which she was speaking
-to another servant. It was true that her
-manner and speech were apt to be rather
-harsh and short in dealing with those about
-her, especially to the girls who were under
-her orders; but it must be said in her excuse
-that she led rather a trying life, and had a
-good deal to vex and trouble her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Maggie and Bessie stood waiting behind the
-house-keeper’s stout figure, till she had, as
-Maggie afterwards said, “finished up her
-scoldings,” when Bessie said rather timidly:&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Housekeeper?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what’s wanted now?” asked the
-woman, turning sharply round; but, when she
-saw who was speaking to her, her face softened
-and her manner changed.</p>
-
-<p>Now the worst of all this poor woman’s
-troubles was the long tedious sickness of her
-only child, a little girl about Bessie’s age, but
-not bright and happy, and able to run about
-and play like our little “princess.” This
-poor child had been ailing for more than six
-months, sometimes suffering a great deal, and
-always very weak; and her mother had not
-much time to give to her, since she was
-obliged to attend to her duties about the hotel
-of which she had charge.</p>
-
-<p>When the child was well enough, she was
-put into a perambulator and taken out for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
-fresh air; and she had just returned from one
-of these rides on the day before this, as Maggie
-and Bessie came in from a drive with the
-elders of their party. They had been to visit
-an Indian encampment just outside the city,
-and returned laden with all manner of pretty
-trifles purchased for the dear ones at home,
-and some for themselves.</p>
-
-<p>They had each of them also a handful of
-flowers given to them by some friend; and, as
-they passed the sick child lying in her wagon,
-and turned towards her with a look of sympathy,
-Bessie saw her eyes fixed longingly on
-the sweet blossoms she held.</p>
-
-<p>She stopped and turning to Maggie said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I think I’ll give my flowers to that sick
-child, she looks as if she’d like them,” and
-then going to the child she put the flowers in
-her hand, and said, “Here are some flowers
-for you, and I am sorry you are sick.”</p>
-
-<p>“And here’s a basket for you,” said Maggie,
-coming forward with her offering too; and she
-gave a pretty little basket, the work of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span>
-Indians, which she had bought for her own
-use: “you can put Bessie’s flowers in it, and
-it will look lovely. See, let me fix them for
-you,” and in two minutes her skilful little
-fingers had arranged the flowers most tastefully,
-greatly to the child’s delight.</p>
-
-<p>“And am I to keep the basket?” asked the
-sick child.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes! for ever and ever if you like,”
-said Maggie; “and when the flowers are faded
-you can take them out and put some more
-in.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t often have flowers,” said the child;
-“but I love them so: only I don’t like to
-take all yours,” she added, looking at Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! she is going to have half mine,” said
-Maggie; “you needn’t be troubled about that.
-Good-by now,” and she and Bessie ran after
-their parents, leaving the sick child brightened
-and happy.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 450px;">
-
-<img src="images/illus4.jpg" width="450" height="650" alt="Maggie giving flowers to the sick child" />
-
-<p class="caption">Bessie’s Travels. <a href="#Page_268">p. 268.</a></p>
-
-</div>
-
-<p>Her mother had been standing near enough
-to hear and see all that had passed; and so
-you will not wonder that now, when she turned<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span>
-and saw Maggie and Bessie, her harsh look
-and tone became gentle and pleasant.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! it’s you, you little dears,” she said.
-“Now, is there ever a thing I can do for
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie. “We are so sorry for
-Matilda, and we wanted to know if you would
-let us pay for the pitcher she broke if we
-have money enough, and try her just once
-more?”</p>
-
-<p>“I like to please you,” said the woman;
-“but Matilda is so careless I cannot put up
-with her.”</p>
-
-<p>“But it really wasn’t her fault this time,”
-pleaded Bessie; “she says a man ran against
-her, and knocked it out of her hand when she
-was carrying it so carefully.”</p>
-
-<p>“And we’ll pay for it if we have enough,”
-said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“And her mother is sick,” said Bessie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span> “and
-you know we ought to be sorry and kind to
-sick people; and you know, too, we ought to
-forgive as we want to be forgiven. Couldn’t
-you do it for the sick mother’s sake? And
-maybe this will be a good lesson to Matilda.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll keep her for your sake, and strive to
-be more patient with her too,” said the house-keeper;
-“and I think you’ll never lack for
-comfort and kindness when you’re sick yourselves:
-at least, not if the Lord repays what’s
-done for Him, as the good book says He does.”</p>
-
-<p>“And how much must we pay for the
-pitcher?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Not a penny. I don’t know as Matilda
-was to blame this time, and I didn’t listen to
-her story as I should, I own; but I’ve been so
-put about this morning. You go your ways,
-you little dears; and Matilda shall stay for
-your good word.”</p>
-
-<p>Now the children did not know it, but probably
-the good word of the two little strangers
-would have gone but little way with the angry
-house-keeper, had it not been for the kindness
-done to her sick child the day before; but so
-it was, and so the one good thing sprang from
-the other.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>They left Montreal the next morning, and
-then came two long days of railway travelling,
-ending in Boston. Here they stayed only a
-few hours, and then started afresh about six
-o’clock in the evening, bound “for Narragansett
-Bay,” papa said, when he was asked where
-they were now going. Bessie was so thoroughly
-tired that she was soon glad to nestle her
-head against her father and go to sleep: a very
-comfortable sleep it was too, from which she
-did not wake even when she was carried from
-the cars to a carriage, and from the carriage
-into a certain house. Maggie, too, after refusing
-similar accommodation from Uncle
-Ruthven, and holding herself very upright,
-and stretching her eyes very wide open, at last
-gave in, and accepted the repeated offer of his
-arm as a pillow.</p>
-
-<p>But they both roused up at last when they
-were brought into that house. Where were
-they now? and whose voices were those, so
-familiar and so dear, but not heard for many
-weeks?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Maggie opened her eyes with a start, wide-awake
-on the instant, and, immediately understanding
-all, gave a shriek of delight, sprang
-off the sofa where Uncle Ruthven had placed
-her, and was fast about Mrs. Rush’s neck, exclaiming,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“It’s Newport! it is Newport! and this is
-Aunt May’s house, and papa has surprised us.
-Oh! lovely, lovely! Bessie! Bessie! wake up,
-and hear the good news.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie slowly opened her eyes at the call,
-not yet understanding; but as she saw the
-face that was bending over her, and knew that
-here was her “own dear solger,” whom she
-had so longed to see, she gave a long sigh of
-intense satisfaction, and, after her usual manner
-when her heart was full of love and tenderness,
-let two words speak for her,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Uncle Horace.”</p>
-
-<p>There was no surprise in the tone, only
-unspeakable pleasure and affection; and she
-laid her head against his shoulder with an expression
-of utter content.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“This is the very best thing in all our
-travels,” said Maggie. “Where is May Bessie,
-Aunt May?”</p>
-
-<p>“Fast asleep in her cradle, and I can’t let
-you peep at her to-night,” said Mrs. Rush.
-“We’ll keep that for the morning.”</p>
-
-<p>Mamma said all other pleasures must be
-kept for the morning, save that of following
-May Bessie’s example; and Bessie, who could
-scarcely keep her eyes open, even for the purpose
-of looking at her beloved Colonel Rush,
-was quite ready to obey; but Maggie thought
-she had had sleep enough for one night, and
-would like at once to make acquaintance with
-all her new surroundings.</p>
-
-<p>“But we are all going to rest, for it is
-nearly midnight,” said the colonel; which
-caused Maggie to change her mind, as she
-had no fancy for staying up alone; and she
-was now eager to go to sleep at once, so that
-“morning might come before she knew it,”
-and she went off saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I never saw children who had such heaps
-and heaps of happiness as we do. I don’t
-know how I’m ever going to make up enough
-gratitude for it.”</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps her gratitude to the kind hand
-which showered so much happiness upon her
-was best shown in the sunny spirit with which
-she took both trials and blessings, and in her
-readiness to share the latter with all whom
-she met.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch3-and-11.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch4-and-12.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="XII">XII.<br />
-<span class="smaller">“<i>HAPPY DELIGHTS.</i>”</span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-w.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">“Woof! woof! woof! woof!”</p>
-
-<p>Was it possible Flossie knew who
-was in that pretty room where
-Maggie and Bessie had been snugly tucked
-away last night? Certain it is that these
-sounds, accompanied by a violent scratching
-at the door, as if he were in a great hurry
-to have it opened, awakened our little sisters
-in the morning.</p>
-
-<p>“Why!” said Maggie, in great surprise,
-“if that don’t sound like&mdash;why, Janie!” as
-her eyes fell upon the smiling face of Jane,
-looking at her over the foot-board of her bed.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Janie!” repeated Bessie in her
-turn. “Who is barking?” she added, as a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span>
-fresh burst of scratching, and “woof, woof”-ing,
-came from the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I open it and see?” asked Jane;
-and she opened the door, when in rushed
-Flossie, who, jumping on the bed, went into an
-ecstasy of delight and welcome that fell little
-short of speaking. He wriggled and twisted
-and barked, and nearly wagged his tail off,
-and behaved altogether as if he were half frantic.
-His little mistresses almost smothered
-him; but he did not object, and put his cold
-nose in their faces, and wagged and wriggled
-harder than ever. Never was such a delighted
-little dog.</p>
-
-<p>Before the children had time to ask any
-questions, Frankie came running in, exclaiming,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Hi! Maddie and Bessie. Flossie and me
-and Janie found you. All the peoples is downstairs
-to brekwis.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie was dismayed. All the people down
-to breakfast! and she had meant to be awake
-with the first streak of daylight. Frankie had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>
-to be squeezed and kissed of course; and then
-Jane and nurse were begged to wash and dress
-them as fast as possible.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, what’s that noise?” asked Bessie
-while nurse was busy with her. “It sounds
-just like the sea.”</p>
-
-<p>“The wind is high this morning,” said
-nurse, who had had her orders.</p>
-
-<p>“How much it sounds like my dear sea,”
-said Bessie, unsuspectingly, as she glanced up
-at the window and saw the branches of the
-trees waving about in what was, as Mammy
-said, rather a high wind. “Can’t we have
-the window open, so we could hear it plainer?
-I could most think it was the sea.”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s cool this morning. Wait for open
-windows till you’re dressed and downstairs,”
-said nurse.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie said no more; but she kept turning
-her head and listening to the sound, which
-seemed to her to be distinct from that of the
-wind, and which sounded so very much like
-her beloved sea.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Maggie was quite taken up with
-asking questions; hearing how grandmamma,
-Aunt Annie, the boys, Jane, and Flossie, had
-come to Newport by last night’s boat, reaching
-there early in the morning, before she had
-been roused from that ridiculously long sleep.
-Nothing less than having the whole family
-beneath their hospitable roof, would satisfy
-Colonel and Mrs. Rush; and they had contrived
-to carry their point.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie’s “heaps of happiness” were rising
-higher and higher. When they were ready,
-Jane took them downstairs; but she led them
-by a back corridor, and seemed to take pains to
-keep them away from windows and doors which
-opened upon the outside of the house. Certainly
-she and nurse acted in a rather strange
-and “mysterious” manner that morning. But
-at last she had them safely at the door of the
-breakfast room, where she left them.</p>
-
-<p>The whole party were still seated round the
-table, though the meal was about over when
-they entered; and they were going from one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span>
-to another, offering kisses, smiles, and welcomes,
-when Bessie’s eyes fell through the
-open sash of a large bow-window, drawn there
-by that same sound she had heard upstairs.</p>
-
-<p>For an instant she stood speechless with
-astonishment and delight; then, stretching
-out her hands towards the window, with her
-whole face lighting up, she cried,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“It is, it is, it is the very, very sea! my
-own true sea!”</p>
-
-<p>Yes: there it was, the “true sea,” as she
-called it, or more properly the seashore she
-loved so much. Her friends watched her
-for a moment with smiling interest. They
-had expected to see her so pleased; and, wishing
-to be present when she first beheld it, Mrs.
-Rush had so arranged that she and Maggie
-should be on the other side of the house on
-the first morning, and nurse and Jane had
-been told to keep them as much as possible
-from the sight and sound of the sea.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel rose, and, taking her hand, led
-her out upon the broad piazza, where she<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
-might see the whole extent of land and water
-which the magnificent view afforded.</p>
-
-<p>The house stood on very high ground, overlooking
-a cliff in front, which fell sheer down
-to the water. To the left, was a broad, sweeping
-curve of beach, on which the waves were
-breaking; the long white rollers, with their
-curling tops, following one another in grand
-procession, and making beautiful and solemn
-music as their march was ended. Away to
-the right lay a wilder, but hardly a grander,
-scene. Here were great, rugged rocks, among
-and over which dashed and foamed the waves,
-whose course they barred. Some were hidden
-beneath the surface of the water, and the
-feathery foam which boiled and bubbled over
-their jagged faces, alone told where they lay.
-Beyond, and far away, stretched the boundless
-ocean, the sea Bessie so loved; the white crests
-of its waves flashing and sparkling in the
-glorious sunshine of that bright morning;
-the blue and cloudless sky, overhead. And the
-hymn which the grand old king was sounding<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span>
-in Bessie’s ear, was still that she had so loved
-two summers ago, the chant of praise which
-bids all who can hear, “remember our Father
-who made it.”</p>
-
-<p>She stood holding the Colonel’s hand, gazing
-and listening, as though eye and ear could
-not take their fill; breakfast was unheeded,
-and it was not till grandmamma reproachfully
-asked if she was to be forgotten for the sea,
-that Bessie could be persuaded to turn away.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie, too, was delighted to be once more
-at the seashore; but she had not the longing
-for it that Bessie had, and all places were
-about equally pleasant to her, provided she
-had those she loved with her.</p>
-
-<p>But now May Bessie was brought, and even
-the sea was for the time forgotten in the pleasure
-of seeing her and noticing how much she
-had grown and improved. When a little life is
-counted by months, two of these make a great
-difference, and it was as long as that since
-Maggie and Bessie had seen Mrs. Rush’s baby.
-She was a sweet, bright, little thing; and it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
-might have been thought that she had seen the
-children every day, so speedily did she make
-friends with them. Indeed, Bessie was sure
-the baby recognized them, and intended to
-show she was glad to see them; and no one
-cared to disturb this belief, in which she took
-great satisfaction. It was funny to see the
-patronizing airs which little Annie put on
-towards the younger baby, and the care which
-she showed for her. She called her “Dolly,”
-and seemed to think it hard and strange that
-she was not allowed to pull and carry her
-about as she would have done a real doll.
-Aunt Patty, who had taken a great fancy to
-Mrs. Rush, had made several toys and pretty
-things for her baby’s use, and among them
-was a worsted doll, in all respects like the lost
-Peter Bartholomew.</p>
-
-<p>May Bessie had not the same objections to
-this gentleman that little Annie had to hers,
-but opened great eyes, and cooed and crowed
-at him; and altogether showed more pleasure
-in him than in any other plaything she possessed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span>
-Not so Annie, when he was introduced
-to her.</p>
-
-<p>“See here, baby. Who is this?” said Mrs.
-Bradford, wishing to see if she would recognize
-it, and she held up the doll before the
-eyes of her by no means gratified baby daughter.</p>
-
-<p>The pet drew up her rose-bud of a mouth
-into the most comical expression of astonishment
-and disgust at the sight of the old object
-of her dislike; for, as was quite natural,
-she took it to be the very same Peter Bartholomew.
-Then, taking him from her mother’s
-hand, she gravely marched with him to the
-hearth-rug, and, tucking him beneath it, sat
-down upon it, saying, “Tit on Peter,” in a
-tone of triumph, as though she thought she
-had now altogether extinguished the unlucky
-offender. Great was her indignation when,
-later in the day, she was brought in from her
-drive, and found Peter Bartholomew No. 2
-had reappeared. Finding the hearth-rug was
-not a safe hiding-place, she was from this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span>
-time constantly contriving ways and means
-for putting him out of sight; but only to find
-that he as constantly turned up again. In
-vain did she throw him out of windows, and
-behind doors; poke him through the banisters,
-and let him fall in the hall below: tuck
-him behind sofa-cushions, and squeeze him
-into the smallest possible corners, with all
-manner of things piled on top of him: he
-still proved a source of trouble to her. The
-other children found great amusement in this,
-and in pretending to hunt for Peter, while
-they knew very well where he was.</p>
-
-<p>But on the third day they really hunted in
-vain. Peter Bartholomew the second seemed
-to be as thoroughly “all don,” as his namesake
-who had been left on the far-away Southern
-railroad; and the nurses joined in the
-search with no better success. Annie seemed
-to have accomplished her object this time;
-and the little one herself could not be persuaded
-to say where she had put him. Her
-mother tried to make her tell; but the child<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span>
-seemed really to have forgotten, and the matter
-was allowed to rest.</p>
-
-<p>However, Peter came to light at last, to
-light very nearly in earnest. In Mrs. Rush’s
-nursery was a large, open fireplace, where
-wood was always laid ready for lighting when
-a fire should be needed for the baby. One
-cool morning, about a week after Peter’s disappearance,
-May Bessie’s nurse lit the fire,
-when Annie, who sat upon Mammy’s knee,
-suddenly exclaimed, as the smoke began to
-curl up the chimney,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, dear, dear! Peter ’moke.”</p>
-
-<p>“You monkey,” said nurse, “I believe
-you’ve put him behind the wood;” and the
-two nurses hastened to scatter the fire, when,
-sure enough, Peter Bartholomew was drawn
-forth, slightly scorched and smelling somewhat
-of “’moke,” but otherwise unhurt. Annie
-took it hard, however, and was so grieved
-at his reappearance that Mrs. Rush, who was
-in the nursery, said he had better be put away
-while she stayed. Probably the lighting of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span>
-the fire recalled to baby’s mind where she had
-put the lost Peter.</p>
-
-<p>But we must go back to the first morning
-of their stay at Newport. The ladies were all
-rather tired with their journey and were disposed
-to rest; but the children, refreshed by
-a good night’s sleep, were quite ready to start
-out with the gentlemen for a ramble on the
-beach.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you like this as well as Quam Beach?”
-asked the Colonel of Bessie, as she sat beside
-him on a rock, with his arm drawn close
-about her, as in the old days of two summers
-since: those days when she had come, a little
-Heaven-sent messenger, across his path, to
-guide his wandering feet into the road which
-leads to Eternal Life. Was it any wonder
-that, thinking of this, he looked down with a
-very tender love on the dear little one, over
-whose work the angels of Heaven had rejoiced?</p>
-
-<p>They had both sat silent for some time, the
-rest of the party having wandered to a short<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span>
-distance, when the Colonel asked this question,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Do you like this as well as Quam Beach,
-Bessie?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, sir! better,” said Bessie. “I
-never <em>did</em> see such a lovely, lovely place as
-this, or feel such nice air. It’s the best place
-we went to in all our travels; and then we
-have you and most all the people we love here.
-I am so very contented.”</p>
-
-<p>She looked so indeed, as she sat smiling and
-happy, looking out over the sapphire blue
-waters, and watching the white-capped waves
-which broke almost at her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said the Colonel, smiling. “I
-thought it would add to your contentment to
-have all your people here to meet you, if I
-could bring it about.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie, who came dancing up
-in time to hear these last words.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span> “It was so
-very considerate of you and Aunt May. Oh!
-this is the very happiest world I ever lived in.
-I wish, I <em>wish</em>, I could live a thousand years in
-it.”</p>
-
-<p>“But Maggie,” said Bessie, “then you’d be
-so very long away from heaven.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, yes,” said Maggie; “but then I’d
-hope to go to heaven after the thousand years,
-and I’d try to be very good all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>“But long before the thousand years were
-past, all whom you love would have gone away
-to that still happier home our Lord has prepared
-for us,” said the Colonel, “and then you
-would be lonely and wish to follow, would you
-not, Maggie?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered Maggie, a shade of
-thoughtfulness coming over her sunny face.
-“I’m sure I would if all my dear friends
-went to heaven, and maybe some of them
-wouldn’t want to live a thousand years.”</p>
-
-<p>“And it’s so hard always to be good,” said
-Bessie, “and sometimes even <em>we</em> have troubles,
-and are sick, even though we are so happy
-’most all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span> “so we do. I’m not
-sick much ’cept when I have the earache: but
-maybe I’d be lame and deaf and blind and
-hump-backed, and all kind of things, before I
-was a thousand years old; and that would be
-horrid. I wouldn’t like to have a great many
-troubles either; so I guess it’s better it is fixed
-for me just as God chooses.”</p>
-
-<p>“We may be sure of that, dear,” said the
-Colonel. “God knows what is best for us,
-and rules our lives for our good and His
-glory.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m not sure I mind so very much about
-the being naughty now and then,” said Maggie.
-“I know I ought to, but I’m afraid I
-don’t. I s’pose when I have so much to make
-me happy I ought to be full of remorse all the
-time for ever being naughty, but somehow I
-can’t be. And I do have afflictions sometimes.
-Oh!” she added, as the thought of
-her last severe trouble came over her,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span> “we
-forgot to give Uncle Horace the things we
-prepared for him. You see, Uncle Horace,
-one day I found such a very nice proverb,
-‘though lost to sight to memory dear;’ and
-Bessie and I thought we would like to practise
-it on you; so I finished up that poem I
-began, and Bessie drew a picture for you, and
-here is the poem,” and Maggie drew from her
-pocket the poem, nicely finished and copied
-out.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you very much, dear,” said the
-Colonel. “I am very much pleased; but I
-thought that the poem was lost, or that you
-had been robbed of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Papa got it back for me,” said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie; “and I was with papa
-when he asked Mr. Temple for it; and I was
-sorry for Mr. Temple, even though he did
-tease you so, Maggie.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, papa didn’t scold him, did he?”
-asked Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” answered Bessie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span> “he only said,
-‘Mr. Temple, may I trouble you for that
-paper belonging to my little girl;’ but he
-<em>mannered</em> him, and I wouldn’t like papa to
-have such a manner to me, and Mr. Temple
-looked ashamed. He is a very unpleasant
-gentleman; but I was sorry for him.”</p>
-
-<p>“But where is the picture?” asked Colonel
-Rush.</p>
-
-<p>“Here,” said Bessie, and in her turn she
-produced a paper from her pocket and unfolded
-it before the Colonel’s eyes. “It is
-Adam and Eve in the garden of Eden,” she
-went on to say: “here they are, and there is
-the tree with the serpent on it, and there is
-another with birds and squir’ls on it. The
-squir’ls are eating nuts, and the birds are
-pecking peaches, and they are having a nice
-time.”</p>
-
-<p>“This is very interesting,” said the Colonel,
-not thinking it necessary to tell her that
-peaches and nuts did not usually grow on the
-same tree; “and what is this in the corner,
-Bessie?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is the bower they made for a home
-to live in,” said Bessie; “and there is Adam’s
-wheelbarrow and Eve’s watering-pot. I s’pose
-she helped Adam take care of the garden:
-don’t you, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“And this?” asked the Colonel, pointing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
-to another object which he had vainly been
-endeavoring to make out. “It is a pigeon
-house, I think.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, sir!” said Bessie, rather mortified.
-“It is a flag, the flag of England. I was
-going to put the ’merican flag: but I thought
-it would be more a compliment to you to put
-your own country’s; and so I did. There’s the
-lion;” and she pointed out something which
-looked rather more like a spider than a lion;
-feeling the while, poor little soul, rather hurt
-that her compliment had not been appreciated
-without explanation.</p>
-
-<p>Now Maggie had had her doubts as to
-whether a flag was altogether a suitable ornament
-for the garden of Eden, but she had not
-chosen to say so to Bessie, who had taken
-great pains with her picture; and she watched
-the Colonel’s face closely to see if she could
-find any sign of amusement or surprise.</p>
-
-<p>Not the slightest. He sat gravely smoothing
-down his moustache, as Bessie explained
-the picture to him, not a smile disturbing the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span>
-lines of his face, not a twinkle breaking into
-those black eyes, looking only interested and
-pleased; and Maggie dismissed her fears and
-satisfied herself that the flag was not at all
-out of place.</p>
-
-<p>“This is a compliment, indeed,” said the
-Colonel with the utmost gravity. “You were
-very, very kind to think of it, Bessie; and
-Adam and Eve were, as Maggie says, extremely
-considerate to allow the flag of my country
-to be planted in the garden of Eden. I must
-show this to Aunt May, and shall certainly
-keep it for May Bessie when she is old enough
-to understand it. But see, who is coming
-here?”</p>
-
-<p>The children followed the direction of his
-eye. Two figures were coming down the
-beach,&mdash;a tall one, and a little one. Was it
-possible? Yes; it really was Mr. Powers and
-Belle, dear little Belle, whom Bessie had been
-longing to see.</p>
-
-<p>A shriek from Maggie, who went tumbling
-over a rock in her haste to reach them, but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span>
-picked herself up and rushed on, regardless
-of grazed knees and elbows; an exclamation,
-less noisy, but quite as full of pleasure, from
-Bessie,&mdash;and the three little friends had met
-again. There was Frankie too, who had been
-carting sea-weed, but had dropped spade and
-wagon-tongue at sight of Belle, of whom he
-was very fond; and then there was such a
-hugging and kissing, such an interlacing of
-heads and arms and feet, that it would have
-been difficult to tell to which little person each
-set belonged. Belle did not object to the
-smothering she received; on the contrary, she
-seemed to enjoy it, and Frankie soon relieved
-her from his share, saying in a tone of great
-importance,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I have bis-er-ness to ’tend to,” and
-marched off to his sea-weed.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall call Newport the ‘Country of Happy
-Delights’ when I write about it in the
-‘Complete Family,’” said Maggie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span> “I never
-<em>did</em> see such a place. Did you happen here,
-Belle, or did you know you were coming?”</p>
-
-<p>“We happened,” said Belle, “least Daphne
-and I did; but I think papa knew we
-were coming when he brought us.”</p>
-
-<p>“That was just the way with us,” said Bessie:
-“all the big people knew we were coming;
-but Maggie and I were so glad and surprised.
-How long have you been here, Belle?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! about half a year,” said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, no,” said Maggie; “for it’s only a
-month since we left you in New York.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it?” said Belle. “Well, we came last
-Friday; and then papa brought me here to
-see Aunt May. We live in the hotel; but
-Aunt May says I must come over every day
-and play with you. It was so lonesome wifout
-you,” and Belle put an arm about the neck of
-each of her little playmates, looking from one
-to the other with loving, satisfied eyes. “You
-see, Bessie, I grew to love you and Maggie so
-much, I can’t very well stay away from you;
-and so I wasn’t very patient till you came.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you know we were coming?” asked
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Aunt May told me I was so
-homesick for you; and papa said he brought
-me here so I could see you sooner. Wasn’t
-it good of him?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie. “Now let’s go and
-have a good play. Aunt May gave us pails
-and spades to play in the sand with, Belle, and
-I will lend you mine.”</p>
-
-<p>But there proved to be no need of this; for
-Belle had been furnished with a spade and
-pail of her own, and Daphne now appeared
-with them; so the little girls joined Frankie.</p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing, Frankie?” asked
-Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“Helpin’ Dod,” said Frankie.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Frankie!” said Bessie, rather
-shocked: “it’s not respectful for you to say
-you’re helping God. He can do every thing
-Himself, without any one to help Him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Frankie, taking up another
-spadeful of sea-weed and tossing it into his
-wagon,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span> “maybe so; but I dess He has too
-much trouble to make so much waves, and
-keep pushing dis sea-weed up all de time; so I
-jest putting it a little way farder for Him,”
-and away he went with another wagon-load of
-sea-weed, which he was carting higher up the
-beach.</p>
-
-<p>The three little girls did not know whether
-to laugh or not; but, presently, Maggie said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I guess we need not be shocked at him.
-He thinks he’s doing something right, and
-we won’t disturb his mind about it. He’s such
-a funny child.”</p>
-
-<p>He was a droll fellow, to be sure, that
-Frankie; always making odd speeches; and
-like Maggie in one thing, that one never knew
-which way his ideas would turn. Like Maggie,
-also, he would never allow that he could
-not reply to any question which might be put to
-him; but, if he had not the right answer,
-would contrive one which would fit the occasion
-more or less well.</p>
-
-<p>He now came running up to his father, who,
-with the other gentlemen, had joined Colonel
-Rush, and exclaimed eagerly,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Papa, papa, tome quit. I taught a nassy
-lobster; let’s tate him to the house and eat
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>This was not a very inviting proposal, certainly;
-but the little boy was so anxious that
-some one should see his “nassy lobster,” that
-Mr. Bradford and Mr. Stanton went with him;
-the little girls also running to see.</p>
-
-<p>The “nassy lobster” proved to be one of
-those ugly shell-fish called horseshoes, which
-had been left there by the tide, and which
-Frankie had contrived to turn over on its
-back. He was rather disgusted with his prize,
-however, now that he had captured it; and, in
-spite of his request that it should be taken
-home and cooked, looked very scornfully at it,
-and pronounced it “degusting as any sing.”</p>
-
-<p>Talking of cooking his fish had put him in
-mind that he was hungry, after his play in the
-fresh sea-air; and now, coming back and
-standing at his father’s knee, he said rather
-plaintively,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I wish Jesus was here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Frankie?” asked Mr. Bradford.</p>
-
-<p>“’Tause He would dive me some fish and
-bread lite He did all those many people,” replied
-Frankie, who had lately heard the story
-of Christ feeding the multitude with the five
-loaves and two fishes. He was very fond of
-Bible stories, this little boy, and liked to apply
-them to himself and those about him.</p>
-
-<p>“Tell me about that, Frankie, while Daphne
-goes to the house for some biscuits for you,”
-said the Colonel; and Frankie repeated in a
-droll, but still sweet and simple way, the story
-of the grand miracle.</p>
-
-<p>“But how was it that there was enough for
-so many people when there was so little food,
-Frankie?” asked Mr. Powers, wishing to hear
-what the child would say.</p>
-
-<p>The little fellow looked thoughtful for a moment,
-and stood rubbing up his hair with his
-hand; but he was not to be conquered even
-by a question hard as this, and presently,
-seeing a way out of his difficulty, his face
-lighted up as he exclaimed,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Betause our Lord did not dive ’em dood
-appetites. You ought to know dat yousef,
-sir;” and, with this, he ran away to meet
-Daphne, whom he saw coming with his wished-for
-biscuits.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch4-and-12.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch7-and-13.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="XIII">XIII.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>LITTLE ACTS OF KINDNESS; LITTLE DEEDS
-OF LOVE.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-a.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">Aunt May’s invitation to come every
-day and play with Maggie and Bessie
-was never once lost sight of by Belle,
-who was only too glad to accept it, and be
-with her beloved little playmates as much as
-possible.</p>
-
-<p>It was surprising to see how much Belle
-had improved during these months she had
-been so much with Maggie and Bessie: no,
-not surprising either to any one who knew
-how much a good example can do; at least
-when it shines before eyes which are willing
-and ready to profit by its light.</p>
-
-<p>And this was so with dear little Belle. She<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span>
-was not naturally an obstinate or selfish child;
-and her faults had come chiefly from the over-indulgence
-of her father and Daphne, who seldom
-or never contradicted her, but allowed her
-to think that she must always have her own
-way. She had never been taught the duty and
-pleasure of yielding to others, until she was
-thrown so constantly with our little girls; and
-then the lesson came to her almost without
-words. She could not have better teaching
-than she found in the grave surprise in Bessie’s
-sweet eyes when she worried her father,
-and fretted herself for some forbidden pleasure,
-or when she was wilful and imperious with
-her devoted old nurse; or in her gentle, “You
-wouldn’t tease your father when you’re his
-little comfort: would you, Belle?” She could
-not but learn ready obedience, generosity, and
-thoughtfulness for others, when she saw them
-put in daily practice even by Maggie, who had
-so much natural heedlessness to struggle with;
-and, almost without knowing it, she strove to
-copy her little friends, and to put away the old
-self-will and impatience.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Why! how obedient and good my little
-daughter is growing,” said her father, one
-day, surprised at her ready submission when
-he was obliged to refuse her some pleasure she
-had begged for.</p>
-
-<p>“’Cause Bessie says mamma and Jesus will
-be glad when I’m good,” Belle answered, laying
-her cheek against her father’s; “and she
-said that was the best way to make you happy
-too, papa. She says when we love um we try
-to please um. Isn’t that true, papa?”</p>
-
-<p>“Very true, my darling. Bessie is a dear
-little girl, and I am glad that you remember
-when she tells you what is right.”</p>
-
-<p>“She <em>does</em> it more than she <em>tells</em> it, papa:
-that’s why I ’member so much. It makes me
-feel ’shamed when Maggie and Bessie see I am
-naughty.”</p>
-
-<p>“I won’t go to Aunt May’s this morning,
-papa,” she said another day when her father
-told her to go and be made ready.</p>
-
-<p>“What! stay away from your dear Maggie
-and Bessie?” said Mr. Powers.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span> “How is
-that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Daphne is sick, papa: she has such a hegget”&mdash;Belle
-meant headache&mdash;“she could
-hardly dress me this morning, and had to lie
-right down. If she has to get up again, I’m
-afraid she will be more worse, so I will stay
-home to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>But Belle’s voice shook as she proposed this,
-for it was a great sacrifice for her. Six months
-since she would not have thought of denying
-herself any thing for the sake of her old nurse,
-and her father was both pleased and touched.</p>
-
-<p>“Then papa’s unaccustomed fingers will see
-what they can do,” he said, unwilling that his
-little girl should lose her day’s pleasure; and,
-if Belle were not quite as neatly dressed as
-usual, no fault was found, and “Aunt Margaret”
-soon remedied all that was wrong.</p>
-
-<p>But another bit of self-denial came in Belle’s
-way that day, and that she carried out.</p>
-
-<p>Coming in with two or three bunches of fine
-hot-house grapes,&mdash;the first of the season,&mdash;in
-his hand, Colonel Rush found the children on
-the piazza, playing “party” with their dolls<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span>’
-teacups and saucers. Two other little girls,
-the children of a neighbor, were playing with
-them. He stopped and gave Maggie a bunch
-to divide amongst them. They were greatly
-pleased with this little treat; but Maggie and
-Bessie were rather surprised to see Belle put
-hers aside on one of the doll’s plates, as if
-she did not intend to eat, or even play with
-them.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you not going to play with yours?”
-asked Maggie, rather reproachfully.</p>
-
-<p>Belle colored a little, and said with some
-hesitation,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“I wanted to save them.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle was not like some children who would
-rather enjoy a nice thing by themselves, and
-the others were surprised.</p>
-
-<p>Now Belle would have been ready enough to
-tell Maggie and Bessie why she wanted to keep
-the grapes, but she did not care to do so before
-the young visitors; lest as she afterwards said,
-they should think she was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span> “proud of herself
-for doing it.”</p>
-
-<p>“She thinks we’ll give her some of ours,
-and then she’ll eat up her own afterwards,”
-said Minnie Barlow, one of the little guests.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t either,” said Belle, flushing angrily:
-“I wouldn’t eat one of your old grapes,
-not if you begged and begged me to.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Bessie, putting her arm about
-Belle’s neck: “Belle never does greedy things.
-I know she has a very excellent reason if she
-don’t eat them. Are you sick, Belle?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Belle; and then she whispered
-in Bessie’s ear, “but poor Daphne is sick, and
-I am going to keep my grapes for her. She
-likes them very much.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I’ll give you mine for her too,” said
-Bessie, “yours make only a few for
-her when she is sick.” Then she said aloud:
-“I’m going to keep my grapes too; and Maggie,
-I think you’d keep yours, if you knew the
-circumstance.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then I will,” said Maggie; and turning
-to the little strangers she added,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span> “Bessie
-knows what’s inside of my mind most as well
-as I do myself; so if she tells me I would do a
-thing, I just know I would.”</p>
-
-<p>So Maggie, too, put by her share of the grapes,
-till the company had gone, and Belle felt free
-to tell what she wanted to do with them; when
-she agreed that Bessie was right, and she was
-quite ready to save her grapes for such a “circumstance.”
-It was but a small act of self-denial
-for these little girls to make out of their
-abundance; but who can tell the pleasure the
-gift gave to old Daphne. And verily Belle had
-her reward.</p>
-
-<p>“Now Heaven bress my child,” said the old
-woman, when Belle offered the grapes, and
-told that she and her young friends had kept
-them from their play: “if she ain’t growin’
-jes like her dear mamma, who was allus
-thinkin’ for oders.”</p>
-
-<p>Nothing could have pleased Belle more than
-to be told she was like her dear mother; but
-she said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I didn’t used to think for ofers much,
-Daphne; not till I saw Bessie do it, and Maggie
-too. They taught me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never min’ who taught ye, so long as
-you’re willin’ to learn,” said Daphne. “But
-I say Heaven bress them dear little girls too,
-as I knows it will.”</p>
-
-<p>Pleased as Daphne was, she would have
-been better satisfied if her little mistress had
-taken back her gift for her own use; but Belle
-insisted that she should eat the grapes herself,
-and indeed climbed on her lap and stuffed them
-one after the other into her mouth, refusing to
-taste one herself.</p>
-
-<p>“What is that, Uncle Horace?” asked
-Maggie, one afternoon when she and Bessie
-were out driving on the Avenue with Colonel
-Rush, Aunt Bessie, and the boys.</p>
-
-<p>The object of her interest was certainly of
-a nature to excite curiosity. It was a round
-building of stone, supported by eight pillars,
-with open arches between. In the wall, above
-the pillars, were three narrow loop-holes or
-openings. It could scarcely have been told,
-however, that it was built of stone; for pillars
-and round walls were alike covered with beautiful<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span>
-green vines, just now in all their summer
-glory. It stood in the centre of a small park
-or common, where children and nurses were
-playing and wandering about.</p>
-
-<p>“That,” said Colonel Rush, “is the old
-stone mill.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t think it looks much like a mill,”
-said Bessie: “it don’t have any things to go
-round.”</p>
-
-<p>“Probably it had things to go round, as
-you call them, once upon a time,” said the
-Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it was a tower built by the early
-settlers to defend themselves from the Indians,”
-said Harry. “Willie Thorn told me
-so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Many people think so,” said the Colonel,
-“and some still believe that it was built by
-the Danes, hundreds of years ago.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Fred, “this is the tower Longfellow
-wrote about in his ‘Skeleton in Armor,’
-isn’t it, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“The very same,” said the Colonel;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span> “but,
-I believe, Fred, that it has been pretty well
-proved, from old papers, that it had no such
-romantic beginning, but was really and truly
-a windmill.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell me about the skeleton, Fred,” said
-Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>So Fred told how a skeleton in armor, having
-been found in a place called Fall River,
-some miles from Newport, the poet, Longfellow,
-had written a ballad about it; telling
-how a viking, or Norwegian sailor of the
-olden time, had fallen in love with the daughter
-of a prince, who refused to give his child
-to the roving sailor; but they had run away
-together, and crossing the sea had come to
-this spot, where the viking had built this
-tower for his wife to live in.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“Here for my lady’s bower</div>
-<div class="verse">Built I the lofty tower,</div>
-<div class="verse">Which to this very hour</div>
-<div class="verse">Stands looking seaward,”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="noindent">chanted Fred, stretching out his hand with a
-magnificent air towards the old tower.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“That’s nice,” said Maggie, with a satisfied
-nod of her curly head. “I shall just believe
-that. It’s a great deal nicer than to think it
-was just a common old windmill for grinding
-up corn.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t,” said matter-of-fact Bessie, “not
-when Uncle Horace says it’s not true.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see that any one can be very <em>sure</em>
-what it was,” said Maggie, determined to have
-faith in the most romantic story, “and I shall
-make up my mind it was the lady’s bower.
-But what about the skeleton, Fred?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Mr. Longfellow goes on to say how
-the lady died, and her husband could not
-bear to live without her; so he went out into
-the woods and killed himself, and the skeleton
-in armor which was really found is supposed
-to be his.”</p>
-
-<p>“He oughtn’t to kill hisse’f. He ought to
-wait till Dod killed him,” said Frankie, who
-had been listening with great interest to the
-story.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span> “He could play with all these nice
-chillen, if he’d ’haved hisself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie, who had received the
-story with as much displeasure as she had
-done that of the “Chief’s Head,” last summer,
-at Chalecoo, “if God chooses people to stay
-here, they ought to do it, even if they are having
-very hard times.”</p>
-
-<p>“So they ought, Bess,” said Fred; “but I
-guess those old vikings did not care much
-about playing with children. They were very
-brave, daring fellows.”</p>
-
-<p>“People can be brave and like children,”
-said Bessie, slipping her little hand into that
-of her own hero. “Uncle Horace likes children
-and plays with them, and no one could
-be braver than he is. And besides, Fred,
-if people have very good courage, I should
-think they would be brave to bear the trouble
-God sends them, and not go kill themselves
-out of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well reasoned, little one,” said the Colonel,
-bending his tall head to kiss her;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span> “that
-man is certainly a coward who cannot bear
-what God sends to him, but takes the life his
-Maker has given.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I shall think it is a windmill,” said
-Bessie, quite as resolved to stick to facts as
-Maggie was to believe the poet’s story.</p>
-
-<p>“And I shall think it the viking’s tower,
-and write a story-book about it when I’m
-grown up,” said Maggie. “I’ll put it down
-for a subject.”</p>
-
-<p>If Maggie lives to write a book on each
-“subject” she has put down for that purpose,
-she will be very old indeed.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie said no more; for if she and Maggie
-differed on something which was not important,
-she never argued about it, and this
-was probably one reason why they never quarrelled;
-for each was content to let the other
-be of her own way of thinking, so long as it
-did no harm. If we could all learn that lesson
-it would save many hard words and
-thoughts, and the trouble which arises from
-such.</p>
-
-<p>They all now went back to the carriage,
-which they had left for a closer view of the
-old mill, and drove on to what is called the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span>
-Point, and around the north-western side of
-the island, from which road they gained a
-beautiful view of the harbor and bay.</p>
-
-<p>“What is that over there, Uncle Horace?”
-asked Fred, “it looks like an old fort.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just what it is, my boy,” replied Colonel
-Rush. “That point is called the ‘Dumpling
-Rocks,’ and that ruin is old Fort Lewis,
-or Fort Dumpling.”</p>
-
-<p>“What a funny name,” said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>They now crossed the long stone causeway
-which leads to Coaster’s Harbor Island; and,
-as they went over this, the children were all
-greatly delighted with the number of pretty
-little birds which went whirling round them
-on every side, darting almost under the horses’
-feet, and in their very faces; passing round
-and round, above and beneath the carriage.
-They were sand-martins, the Colonel said, and
-being disturbed by the rolling of the wheels,
-were probably trying to draw attention from
-their nests, which were built in the crevices
-of the stones that formed the causeway.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>On this island stood the poor-house which
-they had come to visit; and here another
-carriage, containing several of the elders of
-the party, had arrived before them. Papa
-was there and took the little girls out of the
-carriage when it stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“What a nice place for the poor people to
-be in, when they don’t have any house of their
-own!” said Bessie: “I s’pose they’re very
-grateful for it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I don’t know about that,” said Maggie.
-“I find poor people in this world are
-not always grateful when they ought to be.
-Don’t you remember Mrs. Bent, Bessie?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I do,” said Bessie, in a tone which
-told that Mrs. Bent’s ingratitude, as she and
-Maggie thought it, was not to be easily forgotten.
-Indeed, the way in which Mrs. Bent
-had received the gift of the hospital-bed for
-her lame boy, had left a very disagreeable
-impression on the minds of our two little
-girls.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“But I s’pose rich people are not always so
-grateful as they ought to be, either,” added
-Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Maggie, thoughtfully: “maybe
-some are not, but I think <em>we</em> are, generally.
-I think I feel my blessings, Bessie,&mdash;I think I
-do, ’specially being in Newport.”</p>
-
-<p>“There can be no doubt about that,” said
-Uncle Ruthven, who had overheard this short
-conversation, to his wife: “if ever there was
-a grateful, contented, little heart it is that of
-our sunny Maggie.”</p>
-
-<p>Certainly a more comfortable home, or one
-more beautifully situated, could scarcely have
-been found for those who could furnish none
-for themselves. The grown people, as well as
-the children, were greatly pleased with the
-order, neatness, and quiet of the whole place.
-This visit having been planned, the ladies had
-come provided with little parcels of tea, fruit,
-and other small delicacies, as a treat for some
-of the sick and old people. There were a few
-toys and books also for such of the children
-as had behaved well, and these things Maggie
-and Bessie were allowed to present.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I b’lieve I’ll change my mind about poor
-people being grateful,” said Maggie, when
-she had witnessed the pleasure these trifles
-gave; “and I’m glad I can, for an ungrateful
-person is ‘sharper than a serpent’s tooth,’
-’specially if it’s an old woman.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie looked at her sister in great admiration,
-as she always did when Maggie made
-any of these fine speeches; but Harry turned
-away lest she should see him laughing. For
-as Maggie was so careful of other people’s
-feelings, Harry felt bound not to trouble her
-in that way when he could avoid it.</p>
-
-<p>“The band plays at Fort Adams to-morrow
-afternoon,” said the Colonel, as they drove
-homeward: “who will be for a drive over
-there?”</p>
-
-<p>There was no want of assenting voices;
-and, the next afternoon, the whole family went
-over to the fort,&mdash;some driving, some on horseback,
-Mr. Powers and Belle being of the party
-this time.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie and Bessie had never in their lives<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span>
-been inside of a fort, so that this was quite an
-event to them. Harry and Fred had visited
-several; but they were all much smaller than
-Fort Adams, which indeed is the second in
-size in the country, only Fortress Monroe
-being larger. Passing around the road, which
-runs between the water and the immense
-earthworks which rise above it, they entered
-the fort beneath a stone arch, and over a
-stone pavement on which the horses’ feet rang
-with a loud clatter. Just without this gateway,
-was the guard-house, a low stone building,
-with grated door and loop-holes, where drunken
-soldiers, and those who have broken the rules,
-are confined. Two or three sullen-looking
-men were peeping through the iron bars of
-the door, for whom Bessie’s tender little heart
-was much moved; but Maggie was afraid of
-them, and turned her face away, though they
-could not possibly have hurt her, and probably
-had no will to do so.</p>
-
-<p>Within the fort, the children were much
-astonished at the number of enormous cannon,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span>
-and at the great black balls and shells
-piled together in pyramids upon the green in
-the centre, and beneath the casemates. The
-side of the fort next the water was entirely
-taken up with these warlike-looking arrangements;
-while on the inner side were the
-officers’ quarters, or little houses where they
-lived, and the soldiers’ barracks and mess-rooms.
-All was neat, clean, and orderly;
-and, in spite of the purpose for which it was
-intended, the whole place had a bright, cheerful
-look. The band were playing delightful
-music on the green, and the drive was filled
-with gay equipages. The handsome carriages,
-fine horses, and beautifully dressed ladies and
-children, made it a pretty and lively scene,
-and it was all so new to the children, that
-each moment some exclamation of pleasure or
-wonder escaped them. Some of the officers
-were sauntering about, talking to their acquaintances;
-and the general who commanded
-the fort, being a friend of Colonel Rush, came
-and asked the ladies and children to alight<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span>
-from the carriages, and he would show them
-over the works. They were glad to accept
-his invitation, and the general took them over
-the fort, and explained all that was interesting.</p>
-
-<p>But in spite of the many new and curious
-things she saw, in spite of the lovely music,
-and the merry crowd, Bessie’s mind was full
-of the “poor, naughty soldiers in the prison;”
-and when her older friends were resting in the
-general’s quarters, while she with the other
-children stayed without and watched the gay
-scene, she went quietly to Belle and said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Belle, dear, don’t you feel rather bad
-about those soldiers shut up in that prison
-place?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not when I don’t see ’em,” answered
-Belle. “I guess they were pretty naughty to
-be put in there.”</p>
-
-<p>“May be so,” said Bessie; “but wouldn’t
-you like to be kind to them?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Belle.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[321]</a></span> “I b’lieve not. One of
-them looked so cross.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maybe it makes him cross to be shut up
-there when the music is playing, and every
-thing is so nice out here,” said Bessie. “Let’s
-go and ask them if they will promise to be
-good if they are let out.”</p>
-
-<p>“We can’t let them out,” said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“No; but we’ll tell some one they have repented
-and ask for them to be let out. You
-know that soldier with a gun, that was walking
-up and down there? well, I guess he’s a
-kind of soldier-policeman and we’ll ask him.
-The prison is just outside of that gate-hole,”
-said Bessie, pointing to the archway by which
-the fort was entered; “and we will be back
-in a moment.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we ask Maggie to go?” said Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“No, Maggie was so frightened at
-them. She is over there with Harry, looking
-at those ugly black balls; so we won’t ’sturb
-her, but just go by ourselves.”</p>
-
-<p>So, hand in hand, the two little things ran
-out under the archway, and over to the guard-house
-beyond. Not unnoticed, however; for<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[322]</a></span>
-though they were not seen by their own
-friends, they were by some acquaintances,
-who were driving past at the moment, and
-who, fearing that they might be run over by
-the constantly passing carriages, or fall into
-some other mischief, told Colonel Rush’s
-servants to see after the children. One of
-the men called his master, and the Colonel
-speedily followed the little runaways.</p>
-
-<p>They made for the grated door, with what
-purpose Bessie hardly knew herself, save that
-there was kindness in her heart for the poor
-prisoners; but, as they reached it, the guard
-or “soldier-policeman,” as Bessie called him,
-stopped them by crossing his musket in their
-way.</p>
-
-<p>Belle was frightened,&mdash;partly by this, partly
-by the two or three astonished faces that
-peeped at them through the bars,&mdash;and would
-have drawn back, but Bessie stood her ground,
-and, looking up at the guard with her innocent,
-serious eyes, said,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[323]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“We only want to speak to the poor shut-up
-soldiers.”</p>
-
-<p>The man shook his head.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s against the rules, miss,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“But I’m not in rules,” said Bessie. “I
-don’t live here you know, and I think I might
-do it. If you were in prison you would like
-some one to coax you to be good: wouldn’t
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>The soldier looked at her in astonished
-silence; but his gun still barred the way.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll let them out, won’t you?” she went
-on with pleading voice and eyes: “you’ll let
-them out so they can come in there where
-there is such sweet music, and it is all nice
-and bright? I think they are sorry now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Belle: “see that poor fellow
-sitting on the floor with his head down. I’m
-sure he is sorry, and will be good, and the
-ofers will too.”</p>
-
-<p>While the little girls were speaking, two
-more soldiers had come round from the other
-side of the guard-house. One of them was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[324]</a></span>
-the corporal; and, hearing what the children
-said, he answered for the sentry.</p>
-
-<p>“He can’t let them out, little ladies,” he
-said: “if he did he’d be put there himself.”</p>
-
-<p>As he finished speaking, Colonel Rush stood
-behind the children. The corporal and the
-soldiers, even the men behind the grating,
-saluted the brave English officer, whom they
-knew by sight, and whom they greatly admired;
-for the story of his daring and courage
-were known to the garrison. But the
-third man, who was hardly more than a lad,
-still sat with his arms folded, and his head
-sunk upon his breast.</p>
-
-<p>“My dear children,” said the Colonel, “this
-is no place for you. What brought you
-here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! Uncle Horace,” said Bessie, seizing
-upon his hand; “won’t you ask these policemen-soldiers
-to let out those poor prisoners?
-We feel so badly about them.”</p>
-
-<p>“My darling,” answered the Colonel,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[325]</a></span> “they
-cannot let out these men. They are under
-arrest, and shut up here because they have
-done wrong, and the guard are here to keep
-them from getting out.”</p>
-
-<p>“But see that poor soldier sitting down
-there,” said Bessie: “he looks so sorry. Maybe,
-he’s thinking of somebody of his, far
-away, who will hear he has been in prison,
-and feel badly about it.”</p>
-
-<p>In her earnestness, she was using every
-argument she could think of; but she had
-innocently touched almost the only soft spot
-in the man’s heart. If he was not at the
-moment thinking of “somebody of his” who
-was far away, her words brought the thought
-of that one to his mind,&mdash;that “somebody,”
-his poor young sister, who would be grieved
-at his disgrace, hurt at his obstinate wrong-doing,
-if it ever came to her ears.</p>
-
-<p>He raised his head, and gave a quick glance
-at the innocent little pleader; and a softened
-look came over the hard, sullen face.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s not sorry, but just sullen, little
-lady,” said the corporal:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[326]</a></span> “that fellow has
-been in the guard-house four times in the last
-week, for insubordination, and they’ll have to
-try some harder measures to take it out of
-him, I’m thinking. Your pity is only wasted.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no!” said Bessie; “for you know
-Jesus said we must be sorry with people when
-they are in trouble, and happy with them
-when they are glad. I’m <em>very</em> sorry for him
-and the other men too. Who can let them
-out, Uncle Horace?”</p>
-
-<p>“Only their officers, Bessie; and I fear they
-must stay here now till their time is up: but
-we will hope they will do better in future, and
-not deserve punishment again. Come away
-now: your mother will be anxious.”</p>
-
-<p>Bessie obeyed; but both she and Belle cast
-backward pitying looks at the poor prisoners.
-The man they had noticed most, still sat
-silent; but the other two, as well as the
-soldiers without, talked with pleasure and
-amusement of their pretty ways and innocent
-simplicity.</p>
-
-<p>But the man who had seemed to pay little<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[327]</a></span>
-or no regard to their words was the one who
-remembered them the longest, and to whom
-they brought the most good. He had been
-hard, obstinate, and disobedient, and, as the
-corporal said, had been punished four times
-during the last week. Punishment and persuasion
-had alike proved useless in bringing
-him to do better; but he was softened now.
-He could not resist that sweet little face, the
-pitying eyes and gentle tones that asked for
-his release. He thought of them, and of that
-“somebody of his,” all that night as he lay
-upon the hard floor of the guard-house; and,
-when he was set free in the morning, went to
-his commanding officer whom he had disobeyed
-and insulted; asked forgiveness, and
-promised that he would try not to offend again.
-And he kept his word, striving hard with himself
-for he always felt, from this time, as if
-there were two “somebodies” who would be
-grieved to hear of his bad behavior and disgrace.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[328]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Who could let them out, Uncle Horace?”
-repeated Bessie as the Colonel led her and
-Belle away.</p>
-
-<p>“Only the officer who ordered them to be
-shut up, dear,” said the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“And couldn’t we ask him?” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Not very well, dear: the rules in the
-army must be strictly kept; and if these men
-were let out without good reason, it would be a
-bad example for the other soldiers, who might
-think they would not be punished if they were
-disobedient.”</p>
-
-<p>“But what had that man on the floor been
-doing?” asked Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not know, dear. Misbehaving in
-some way which deserved punishment.”</p>
-
-<p>“The soldier-policeman said he had been
-shut up four times for&mdash;for&mdash;in&mdash;su&mdash;such
-a long word I can’t remember it, Uncle Horace,
-and I didn’t know what it meant,” said
-Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Insubordination?” said the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[329]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir: what does it mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“Disobeying orders, or being impertinent,
-and so forth,” said the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“And we’d better not ask the General to
-let them come out of that dark house?” said
-Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“No, I think not,” said the Colonel. “They
-would not have been shut up if it had not been
-necessary, and we had better let the matter
-rest. We can do no good by interfering.”</p>
-
-<p>So thought the Colonel, believing and knowing
-that discipline must be sternly kept up;
-knowing nothing the while of the good which
-had already been done,&mdash;of the tiny seed unconsciously
-dropped upon the hard and stony
-ground of an obstinate heart, but which had
-brought “forth fruit meet for repentance.”</p>
-
-<p>This was by no means Bessie’s last visit to
-Fort Adams; but she never saw the prisoner
-soldiers again, at least she did not recognize
-them; but they saw and knew her, the innocent
-little fairy, so she seemed to these rough
-men, who had stood outside the prison bars,
-pleading so pityingly for their release.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[330]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch14.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="XIV">XIV.<br />
-<span class="smaller"><i>WATER-LILIES.</i></span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-o.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">One great object of delight and interest
-to the children was the immense
-number of robins around Newport.
-These pretty, saucy, little birds were constantly
-to be seen hopping about the soft, velvety
-lawns for which this place is famous; picking
-up whatever crumbs fell in their way, or such
-unwary worms and caterpillars as had ventured
-forth for air and exercise; swinging on the
-branches of the trees, or perched with an independent,
-look-at-me sort of an air, upon the
-fences and railings; shaking down showers of
-diamond dew-drops from slender sprays, in
-the early morning; charming all ears with
-their sweet notes; welcome guests whenever
-and wherever they came.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[331]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The first thing done by the children after
-breakfast, was each morning to beg for crumbs
-and bits of bread to feed the robins, who would
-come hopping close to the piazza to receive
-the welcome gift. Even Baby Annie must
-throw out her share, and would hold up her
-tiny little finger to keep off any one who, she
-feared, would disturb the birds, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Ss, ss, badie fy,” which meant, “Hush,
-hush, birdie fly.”</p>
-
-<p>Then there was the bathing in the sea, now
-as formerly, such a source of pleasure to Bessie.
-Maggie, too, enjoyed it, for she had lost
-all fear of the waves while she was at Quam
-Beach. It afforded endless amusement, too,
-to Maggie, to see the droll figures presented
-by the bathers when they were dressed for
-their dip in the sea. Her merry, ringing laugh
-provoked smiles not only from lookers-on, but
-from the very wearers themselves; for there
-was no rudeness or unkindness in that laugh,
-and she was quite as much diverted at her
-own appearance as she was at that of others.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[332]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>From nine to twelve, the beach was generally
-crowded with bathers; some coming from
-the water, others going from the line of bathing-houses
-towards it; others still, in every
-color and style of dress, bobbing up and down
-in the waves. There were carriages driving
-back and forth over the yielding sand; many
-walkers, too,&mdash;people who came only to look
-at the bathers, or who were moving about after
-their own bath. The beach was a merry,
-lively place, where there was never a lack of
-“something to do;” for the children always
-brought their little pails and shovels with
-them, and when their frolic in the water was
-over, they would dig in the sand, or pick up
-small shells. Sometimes they would watch
-the clam-fishers turning over the sea-weed with
-their long-pronged instruments, or sail bits of
-wood and light scallop-shells down the pretty,
-shallow stream of fresh water; which, running
-from the pond beyond, and crossing the beach
-near its upper end, mingles its pure waters
-with the salt waves of the sea.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[333]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There was a story connected with this beach,
-told by Mr. Bradford to his children,&mdash;a story
-strange and romantic enough to satisfy even
-Maggie’s love of the marvellous, yet perfectly
-true.</p>
-
-<p>One fine, bright morning, more than a hundred
-years ago, a vessel was seen coming down
-directly towards the beach, where no vessel
-had ever been known to venture before. Her
-sails were all set, her colors flying; and the
-alarmed spectators watched her with the most
-painful interest, expecting each instant to see
-her dashed to pieces upon the rocks. But no:
-on she came safely; past craggy points and
-over hidden reefs, and struck her keel into
-the soft sand of the beach. No person was
-seen on board; and, when the anxious townspeople
-reached her decks, the only living creature
-there was a dog. A cat was found in the
-cabin, where coffee was boiling, and other
-preparations made for breakfast; but not a
-sailor was to be seen. What became of her
-crew was never known: but it was supposed,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[334]</a></span>
-that, finding themselves too near the rocks,
-they took to the life-boat, which was missing,
-and were lost; while the vessel came safely to
-land, without hand or eye to guide her.</p>
-
-<p>Beyond this beach, a most lovely drive, with
-the ocean in view all the way, leads to Purgatory
-and Paradise. The former is a great
-gulf or chasm in the solid rock of the point or
-bluff which separates the first from the second
-beach; a dark, gloomy-looking place, from
-which Maggie, Bessie, and Belle drew back in
-alarm, without the least desire to look down.
-Neither did they like to hear the stones which
-the boys threw into the cleft, and which went
-bounding with a dull sound, from side to side,
-till they plunged sullenly into the dark waters
-below.</p>
-
-<p>Reckless Fred ventured too near the edge,
-where a slip upon the short grass, or a stray
-pebble would have sent him down into the
-dark abyss. The Colonel drew him back with
-no gentle hand, and a sharp reprimand, all of
-which made the little girls still more ready to
-seek a pleasanter spot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[335]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“For,” said Maggie, in a tone of great wisdom,
-“I don’t think it is at all prudent to come
-into places where one can be killed with such
-felicity.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie meant facility.</p>
-
-<p>Paradise, as might be supposed, proved much
-more attractive. This is a succession of lovely
-groves and mossy glades lying below and
-on the sides of a rocky hill, and as great a
-contrast as can be imagined to its neighbor,
-Purgatory.</p>
-
-<p>But the place which the children loved the
-best, and where they spent the most of their
-time, was the lovely little beach lying just below
-the bluff on which stood Colonel Rush’s
-house. Here, too, they often bathed, instead
-of driving over to the larger and more frequented
-beach; and here they might be found
-at almost every hour of the day. Here Bessie
-would sit, forgetting her play, as she watched
-the blue billows with their crests of white foam,
-rolling up one after the other on the smooth
-sands, and listening to the chiming sound of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[336]</a></span>
-the waves, the grand music of old ocean sounding
-ceaselessly, and speaking to all hearts, that
-will hear, of the power and goodness of the
-Almighty hand which holds it in its place.</p>
-
-<p>Even in bad weather, when she could not go
-out, the sea afforded endless pleasure to Bessie;
-for she could sit at the window watching
-it, as the waves, lashed into fury by the wind,
-rushed foaming and dashing over the rocks
-and reefs, and sometimes even flung their
-spray above the edge of the cliff on which the
-house stood.</p>
-
-<p>And sitting here one day, looking out from
-her perch over the stormy waters, the leaping
-waves, and foam-covered rocks, she was the
-first to observe, and call all the family to see
-a spectacle which they had long desired to
-witness.</p>
-
-<p>This was the famous Spouting Rock in full
-play.</p>
-
-<p>At a little distance from Colonel Rush’s
-house was a ledge of rocks, the under side of
-which has been worn into deep caverns by the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[337]</a></span>
-constant fretting of the waves. One of them
-has an open shaft, or sort of natural chimney,
-which ends on the surface of the rock. In
-stormy weather, when the wind has blown for
-some time in a particular direction, the sea
-rushes with great power into these caverns,
-and forces itself up through the spout or chimney,
-often to a great height. But this does
-not happen very often, and one may spend
-months, perhaps years, at Newport, without
-ever seeing it.</p>
-
-<p>All of Mr. Bradford’s children, and indeed
-the grown people of the party as well, had
-been very anxious to see this singular sight;
-and when Bessie, sitting by the window, and
-looking over towards these rocks, saw a jet of
-water forcing itself above them, she knew at
-once what it was, and called out eagerly,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, the horn is horning! it is really horning;
-come and see, everybody.”</p>
-
-<p>The horn spouted all that day, and the children
-never tired of looking at it; and Frankie,
-when he was asked if he knew what it was,
-answered,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[338]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I dess it is Dod’s fountain,” than which
-no answer could have been truer.</p>
-
-<p>Not very far from Colonel Rush’s house, lay
-a calm, lovely lake, called Lily Pond, separated
-from the ocean only by a narrow belt of land,
-and making a striking contrast to the rolling
-billows of the ocean so near.</p>
-
-<p>As may be supposed, the lake is named from
-the number of water-lilies with which it is covered
-during the season when these exquisite
-flowers are in bloom. They fill the air with
-their delicious fragrance; and the delicate,
-pearly, white blossoms are seen by all the passers-by,
-resting among their green leaves on
-the surface of the water.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie’s mother, and Bessie herself, were
-both extremely fond of these lovely flowers;
-and when Harry came in one day with two
-which he had fished up from their watery bed
-with some trouble to himself, great was the
-rejoicing over them.</p>
-
-<p>The next afternoon, Maggie and Bessie were
-out driving with Mrs. Rush and Aunt Bessie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[339]</a></span>
-when they came upon a boy and girl, perched
-upon a fence at the side of the road, and having
-a basket half-filled with water-lilies.</p>
-
-<p>“Water-lilies! oh, water-lilies!” cried Bessie;
-“where did they gather so many I wonder.
-Could we find some for dear mamma, do you
-think, Aunt May?”</p>
-
-<p>“I think those children have them for sale:
-we can buy some from them,” said Mrs. Rush;
-and she ordered the coachman to stop.</p>
-
-<p>“But we have left all our money at home,”
-said Maggie, in a tone of regret.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I will buy them, and you may give
-them to mamma,” said Mrs. Rush.</p>
-
-<p>“But that is not at all the same, Aunt May,”
-said Bessie: “it would only be pretend our
-present.”</p>
-
-<p>“Suppose I lend you the money. You may
-give it back to me if you like, as soon as you
-go home.”</p>
-
-<p>So Maggie and Bessie each bought a bunch
-of water-lilies from the boy and girl, who had
-come down from the fence and now stood beside<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span>
-the carriage, and Aunt May purchased the
-rest, leaving the basket empty.</p>
-
-<p>The girl tossed her basket above her head,
-and, after thanking the ladies, bounded across
-the road and over the fence on the other side,
-making for Lily Pond as if she were after a
-fresh supply. The boy followed more slowly.</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder why they sell lilies,” said Maggie:
-“they do not look so very poor. At least
-they’re not ragged and dirty, though the girl
-has a pretty ugly frock.”</p>
-
-<p>“If I was poor and had to make some
-money, I would choose to be a water-lily girl,”
-said Bessie; “and I would try to be so polite,
-and ask so nicely, that people would like to
-buy of me.”</p>
-
-<p>“I do not think people would be very apt to
-refuse you, my lily girl,” said Aunt Bessie,
-with a loving look at the sweet little face before
-her, which was bent over the lovely white
-blossoms, not purer than itself.</p>
-
-<p>“I would like to paddle in and pick the
-lilies,” said Maggie;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[341]</a></span> “but I would not like
-to sit on top of a fence, waiting for people to
-come and buy my flowers: it must be so
-stupid.”</p>
-
-<p>“The boy looks as if he were better able
-to do that than to pick the lilies,” said Mrs.
-Rush. “He has an interesting, thoughtful
-face, but looks delicate.”</p>
-
-<p>“My anxiety is all upsidedown about him,”
-said Maggie. “Maybe he wants money to pay
-a doctor. Bessie, when we go out to walk to-morrow
-morning, let’s ask nurse to come this
-way, and see if we can find these children.
-Maybe we could help them a little. We must
-have a whole lot of charity money, for you
-know we have not had much use for it on our
-travels.”</p>
-
-<p>Accordingly, the next morning the children
-waited for Belle; and, as soon as she came,
-the whole flock started with Mammy and Jane
-on the road towards Lily Pond, the little girls
-having taken care to be provided with money.
-They found the boy and girl, not sitting on top
-of the fence this time, but near the lake; the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[342]</a></span>
-boy lying flat upon a rock with a book in his
-hand, the girl sitting beside him, busy shelling
-pease.</p>
-
-<p>They looked up as our party drew near, and
-the girl said with a pleased look,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! it’s the little girls who bought all the
-lilies yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is us,” said Maggie. “Have you
-more to sell us to-day? We meant to buy a
-whole lot, and have brought a basket in baby’s
-wagon.”</p>
-
-<p>“We haven’t picked any to-day,” said the
-boy: “we don’t generally gather them till
-later, when it’s time for the gentle-folks to come
-riding this way; but we can get some for you
-right away. In a few days, when they’re more
-plenty, there’ll be lots of fellows up here after
-them; but they mostly take them down to the
-beach and around the town to sell.”</p>
-
-<p>“We have a little pond of our own, where
-there are a few,” said the girl; “but we get
-most off of this one.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where do you live?” asked Belle.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[343]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Over yonder,” said the girl, pointing to
-a small farm-house standing among its out-buildings
-on the other side of the road.
-“Now, Johnny, I’m ready.”</p>
-
-<p>Johnny went a few steps off, where the bushes
-grew thickly, and drew from among them two
-long, hooked sticks. One of these he gave to
-the girl, and kept the other in his own hand.
-While they had been talking, the girl had
-pulled off her shoes and stockings; and now,
-to the surprise of all the children, she waded
-into the water, while her brother stayed upon
-the rock, without offering to follow.</p>
-
-<p>Sallie, so he called her, stepped out till the
-water touched her knees; and having gathered
-such lilies as she could reach with her hand,
-drew others towards her with the hooked stick.
-The long, slender stems yielded easily; and,
-as she plucked one after another, she tossed
-them towards her brother, who drew them in
-with his own stick.</p>
-
-<p>How lovely and delicious they were, just
-fresh from their watery bed, with the drops<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[344]</a></span>
-still glittering like diamonds on the rich,
-creamy-white petals! how they filled the whole
-air with their fragrance!</p>
-
-<p>“I think if I could carry flowers to heaven,
-I would like to take these,” whispered Bessie
-to Maggie and Belle, as all three hung delighted
-over their prize. “They look as if
-they were very large stars fallen down out of
-God’s sky, to tell us how sweet every thing is
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>“O Bessie, you darling!” said Maggie.
-“What a lovely idea! That’s good enough to
-put in a book. Bessie, do you know that is
-talking prose?”</p>
-
-<p>“What is prose?” asked Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“You know what rhyme is,” said Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Belle: “it means cat and
-hat, and mouse and house, and mean and
-queen.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right,” said Maggie. “Well, if
-you say a nice thing in rhyme, that’s poetry;
-but if you say it in unrhyme, then it’s prose.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Belle, quite satisfied with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[345]</a></span>
-Maggie’s explanation. “I wish I were as
-smart as you two. You write poetry, Maggie;
-and Bessie can talk prose: and I can’t do
-either.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind,” said Maggie, consolingly.
-“Maybe you’ll be able to some day.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you’re just good enough for us, any
-way,” said Bessie, with an affectionate kiss to
-her little friend; an example which was followed
-by Maggie.</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t you go in the water, and let
-your sister stay out?” said Belle to Johnny,
-rather reprovingly.</p>
-
-<p>Johnny, who was a gentle-looking boy,
-colored a little, but answered quietly,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“They say I ought not to wet my feet, and
-I want to keep well very much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Sallie, who had just stepped
-out of the water, and was wringing out her
-dripping skirts: “it don’t hurt me to go in
-the water; but it’s not good for him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you sick?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Johnny, looking as if he thought<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[346]</a></span>
-the little girls were blaming him in their own
-minds for not taking the wetting himself, as
-indeed they were.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s not just sick,” said Sallie; “but he’s
-not just strong, and we’re bound he shall go
-to school this winter, at least for one quarter.
-He’s an awful fellow for his books and learning.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will one quarter make him too sick to go
-any more?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh! I didn’t mean that,” said Sallie, sitting
-down on the rock, and spreading out her
-wet feet and dress to dry in the sun; “but,
-you see, we’re not sure we’ll put by enough
-money even to pay for one quarter. Shall I
-tell you about it?” she added, seeing her little
-customers looked interested.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[347]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, as I said, Johnny’s such a fellow for
-book learning, and he’s smart too; and these
-two winters he’s tried hard for going to the
-Common School down in the town; but it’s a
-terrible long walk, and so cold; and both
-years he’s been taken down sick, and had to
-give it up; and the doctor told father he was
-not to try it again. But there’s a young man
-lives just round the turn of the road who is
-learning to be a minister, and he’s ready to
-teach a few boys if they pay him for it; and
-father said he couldn’t afford to pay a dollar
-this winter, for it’s been a bad year with him;
-but he said we might keep all we could make
-ourselves to pay for Johnny’s schooling; but
-I don’t know as we’re likely to put by even
-enough for one quarter. So that’s the reason,
-you see, why I go in the water. I’m hearty,
-but Johnny takes cold easy, and then he
-coughs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, ‘one man’s meat is another man’s
-poison,’” said Maggie. “Well, you’re a good
-girl and a dutiful sister.”</p>
-
-<p>“We’ll buy water-lilies of you every day,”
-said Bessie, “so we can help along. But
-we don’t come this way every day,” she added,
-thoughtfully.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[348]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“We could bring them to you, if you liked,”
-said Johnny. “We do take them every day
-to a lady down yonder,” and he pointed in the
-direction of the bluff on which Colonel Rush’s
-house stood, with several others.</p>
-
-<p>This was agreed upon; and the nurse, saying
-they must be moving homeward, as it was
-time to go to the beach and bathe, they said
-good-by to Johnny and Sallie.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ve a plan in my head,” said Maggie;
-“but then, I’ve learned experience by a very
-bad lesson, so I thought I’d better not mention
-it till I’ve advised with mamma.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie’s bad lesson was this,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>One day, just before they left home for the
-Southern trip, Maggie was standing on the
-front stoop, waiting for her mother and Bessie,
-with whom she was going out, when a poor-looking
-man spoke to her. He told a most
-pitiful story; and Maggie, full of sympathy,
-emptied her little purse into his hand. But
-this did not satisfy the beggar; and he asked<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[349]</a></span>
-“if the little lady had not an old coat to give
-a poor soldier.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll ask mamma,” said Maggie, and off
-she rushed upstairs, leaving the beggar-man
-standing on the stoop by the open hall-door.</p>
-
-<p>Mamma said she could not give old clothes
-away, unless she was sure the man was deserving:
-for she knew of many such who needed
-them; and told Maggie to go back at once
-and tell Patrick to shut the door, and she
-would see the man when she came down.</p>
-
-<p>But when Maggie reached the foot of the
-stairs, the beggar was gone. So far from waiting
-for the old coat, it was soon found that he
-had walked off with a new one of papa’s, which
-lay on the hall table.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Maggie was excessively mortified, and
-much distressed, not only at the loss of the
-coat, but at that of her little stock of spending
-money. Mamma made the last good to her;
-but told her she should not do so again if
-she acted without thought; and begged her
-to take counsel of some older person when
-she felt inclined to help those she did not
-know.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[350]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>So Maggie had “learned experience,” and
-since that time had been careful to ask advice
-before she allowed her sympathies to run too
-far with her.</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 200px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch14.jpg" width="200" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[351]</a></span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 500px;">
-
-<img src="images/header-ch8-and-15.jpg" width="500" height="100" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<h2 id="XV">XV.<br />
-<span class="smaller">“<i>OF SUCH IS THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN.</i>”</span></h2>
-
-<div>
-<img class="dropcap" src="images/dropcap-t.jpg" width="100" height="100" alt="" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="dropcap">They all bathed on the little beach near
-home that morning; and, as soon as
-they had gone back to the house,
-Maggie called Bessie and Belle, and they went
-together to mamma’s room to unfold Maggie’s
-plan and ask her consent to it.</p>
-
-<p>What a pretty room that was! Mrs. Rush
-had taken a fancy to call it the “Lily Room,”
-and to furnish it accordingly. The carpet was
-green, and the furniture painted the same
-color, and ornamented with water-lilies wherever
-they could be put,&mdash;on the head and foot
-boards of the bed, on each drawer of the dressing
-bureaus, on the panels of the wardrobe
-and the backs of the chairs, in short, wherever
-there was room for them. Over the mantelpiece<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[352]</a></span>
-hung an oil-painting of the same lovely
-flowers; and now the room was filled with the
-natural blossoms brought in by the little girls
-that morning.</p>
-
-<p>Mamma lay upon the couch,&mdash;this was
-covered with chintz printed with water-lilies,
-too,&mdash;resting after her salt-water bath. Her
-long hair was spread over the cushions to dry;
-and Maggie and Bessie were busy at it in a
-moment: it was their great delight to comb it
-and thread their fingers through it; and dearly
-mamma loved to feel their little hands twisting
-it into all manner of fantastic braids and
-loops.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie told her story about the water-lily
-boy and girl, and then, saying that she thought
-there must be a good deal of “glove money”
-due the little box at home, asked her mother
-if she did not think it would be a “reasonable
-charity” to pay for Johnny’s schooling next
-winter.</p>
-
-<p>Bessie looked surprised at this; but Belle
-clapped her hands, saying,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">[353]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“You’ll let me help too, won’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said Mrs. Bradford, “I thought you
-were saving that money for another purpose.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, so we <em>were</em>,” said Maggie, biting her
-underlip; “if I didn’t forget it. What a child
-I am! always forgetting one thing in another.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it?” asked Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“To buy a warm cloak and a pair of better
-<em>spetacles</em> for good Mrs. Granby, who is always
-being kind to other people, and never
-thinks about herself,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“And I suppose it wouldn’t be fair to put
-by a person we’ve known for so long for people
-we’re hardly acquainted with, only through
-water-lilies,” said Maggie. “Oh! I wish, I
-wish, I wish I had the greatest lots of money
-that ever were seen, so I could give every one
-every thing they wanted.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie was always wishing for lots of money;
-but it is only justice to her to say that it was
-generally for the benefit of others, and not for
-herself.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Did you promise Mrs. Granby?” asked
-Belle.</p>
-
-<p>“No, we did not promise, not with words,”
-said Bessie; “but then, we made up our minds
-to do it, and we wouldn’t like not to. I think
-it would seem a little like not being very true
-in our hearts to Mrs. Granby.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, dear!” said Maggie, “there are such
-lots of things one wants to do; but somehow,
-one can’t seem to do every thing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma,” said Bessie, “don’t you think
-papa would like to help this boy? He has
-enough of money.”</p>
-
-<p>“My dear child,” said mamma, laughing:
-“you must not think there is no end to papa’s
-money. He has a good many people to help
-now, and he cannot do for every one, you
-know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, then,” said Maggie,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span> “we’ll tell
-Uncle Ruthven and the Colonel, and see what
-they will do. I don’t mean we’ll ask them to
-help the lily boy; but we’ll just let them know
-about him, and then leave it to their own conscience.”</p>
-
-<p>“Uncle Ruthven has a good deal of conscience
-about poor people; and so has Uncle
-Horace too,” said Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>But somehow the children could not find an
-opportunity to tell their uncle and Colonel
-Rush about the “lily boy.” For the next few
-days there was a good deal of company coming
-and going, and they did not care to talk about
-it before strangers; then papa, Uncle Ruthven,
-and the Colonel went off yachting, and
-stayed a week.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile, Johnny and Sallie came to the
-house every morning, bringing their basket of
-lilies; and when the little girls had bought as
-many as they wanted for their daily gift to
-their mother, Mrs. Rush and the other ladies
-would purchase the remainder. So Maggie
-and Bessie knew that they were helping Johnny
-towards his heart’s desire in this way, even
-if they had devoted their “charity money” to
-another object.</p>
-
-<p>Early on the morning after the gentlemen
-had returned, the children had gone down to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span>
-the sands, and were playing happily together,
-when Belle came on her daily visit. Belle
-considered herself almost as much at home in
-Mrs. Rush’s house as Maggie and Bessie did.</p>
-
-<p>“You live at the Ocean House, don’t you?”
-asked a little girl one day.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no!” said Belle; “I don’t live there.
-I only sleep there, and eat my breakfast
-there. I live at Aunt May’s, even when it
-rains, Maggie and Bessie and I can’t do
-wifout oneanofer.”</p>
-
-<p>She now came running swiftly over the
-beach towards Maggie and Bessie; and, as
-soon as she had kissed them for good-morning,
-said eagerly,&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>“O Maggie and Bessie! what do you fink?
-It is my birfday next week, and papa told me
-to choose what he should give me, and I can’t
-think of any thing I want. Do you know any
-thing I want?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no,” said Maggie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span> “I think you
-have about every thing a sensible child could
-want. I can’t remember a single thing; and
-that is rather a bad business not to have some
-thing you <em>want</em> for your birthday present. I
-think, after all, maybe it is a better economy
-not to have all you want; but to save up your
-wishes, so you can think of something when
-any person tells you to choose a present.”</p>
-
-<p>Maggie said this with her wiseacre air, and
-Belle and Bessie listened with solemn admiration,
-believing it to be a speech containing a
-great deal of wisdom; nor, indeed, do I know
-that they were far wrong.</p>
-
-<p>“How much is your father going to cost for
-your present?” asked Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“I asked him that,” said Belle;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">[358]</a></span> “and he
-said that ’pended on what I wanted. He said
-if it was a locket or necklace, or any thing that
-would keep till I was a big girl, he would not
-mind giving a good deal of money for it,
-he had to give me a present from mamma and
-himself too; but if it was only a toy I could
-break or be tired of in a little while, it would
-not be right to frow away much money on it.
-That is just what he said. I ’member it very
-well. But I don’t want a locket or those
-kind of things, there’s a whole lot
-of my own mamma’s pretty things I can have
-when I’m a big girl. Papa is keeping them
-for me, and I like those best. And I can’t
-think of a toy, not one;” and Belle looked
-quite melancholy over her want of wants.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie again, “I b’lieve you
-have every thing in the world a child could
-want.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not my mamma,” said Belle, with the
-touch of sadness which always came over her
-when she thought or spoke of her dead mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Dear Belle,” said Maggie, tenderly. “But
-then God gives us our mammas; and I only
-meant things that earth people could give
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>“And, Belle, darling,” said Bessie, “your
-mamma is yours yet, even if she has gone to
-Jesus! It is only that she is more of Jesus’s,
-and He is more of hers now she is in His home
-with Him.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle wiped away the tears which had gathered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span>
-in her eyes; and then, with Bessie’s arm
-about her neck, and Maggie holding her
-hand, sat gazing up into the cloudless, blue
-sky, almost as if she expected to see the face
-of her “angel-mother” looking down with
-tender love upon her.</p>
-
-<p>They all three sat silent for a few moments.
-The waves&mdash;they were hardly more than wavelets,
-on this still, calm day&mdash;came up with their
-gentle murmur upon the beach; and there was
-a sort of golden haze upon the sea, and far off
-on the horizon, telling, perhaps, of a coming
-fog later in the day: but the sky was clear
-above them now, and all was bright and fair
-around.</p>
-
-<p>The quiet and the peace stole into all three
-little hearts,&mdash;God’s peace, which He gives to
-those who love and trust in Him, and who
-strive to do His work, and bear His will, with
-simple faith that He knows best, and will order
-all things right.</p>
-
-<p>Old Daphne and Jane, each with her work,
-sat at a little distance, but did not interfere<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span>
-with the children more than to see they did
-not run into any danger; and were occupied
-with their own conversation, the burden
-of which, on Daphne’s side, was the extreme
-loveliness and sweetness of her young mistress;
-while each story that she told of Belle’s
-goodness and smartness was immediately
-matched with one from Jane of the wisdom
-and droll sayings of her particular young
-charge. Each bird sang loud in praise of her
-own nestling; but the little birds themselves
-neither heard nor heeded.</p>
-
-<p>“Belle,” said Bessie, after a little, “a
-thought came into my mind just now; no, not
-into my <em>mind</em> either. I guess it was into my
-<em>heart</em>, it was such a thought of love.”</p>
-
-<p>“What was it?” asked Belle, looking as if
-all thoughts of love were in <em>her</em> heart towards
-the dear Bessie.</p>
-
-<p>“About your mamma,” said Bessie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">[361]</a></span> “You
-know your papa said he had to give you a
-present from her. I just thought if maybe
-you wouldn’t like to have her present something
-that by and by would be fit to go back to
-heaven like a jewel for our Father.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I would,” answered Belle, to whom
-the oft-repeated, oft-referred-to story was nearly
-as familiar and as dear as it was to Maggie
-and Bessie. “Yes, I would; but what thing
-could I ask for that would be like that? If
-you want any thing or Maggie, I’ll ask papa
-for it, and give it to you, liever than to have it
-myself, you’re so dear and good to me.
-I would, Bessie.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, Belle!” said Bessie. “I never
-would <em>hint</em> you to give me a thing. Mamma
-says that is not a nice thing to do; and I was
-thinking of something better than that, something
-that would be a great, great help to
-some one, and last a great, great while, maybe
-for ever.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Belle,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">[362]</a></span> “why don’t you tell
-me what it is? You know I don’t have a great
-deal of <em>think</em> in me to find out how to do good
-for ofers; but I b’lieve I have some <em>do</em> in me
-when I know how.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, you have,” said Maggie, “and some
-day you’ll learn how to think for yourself.
-You see you have not been quite so much
-brought up to it as we have. That’s the mercy
-of having such a papa and mamma as ours.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said Belle rather hurt, “my papa is
-very such too, and I’d rafer have him than any
-papa.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes!” said Maggie quickly, seeing
-that she had made a mistake, and hastening
-to heal the wound she had unintentionally
-given; “to be sure you would, and I didn’t
-mean the least discompliment to your papa,
-Belle; but you know he has had a great deal
-of trouble, and so has not had time to teach
-you so much as our papa and mamma have
-taught us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I know it,” said Belle, quite satisfied
-with this apology; “but tell me now, Bessie, I
-can’t think what you mean.”</p>
-
-<p>“Water-lily boy,” said Bessie, willing to
-give Belle the credit of thinking out the matter
-for herself.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_363" id="Page_363">[363]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Belle looked puzzled.</p>
-
-<p>“Lily boy, Johnny, school,” said Bessie,
-helping her along.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” said Belle, as Bessie’s meaning
-came to her, “do you mean I could ask papa
-to give the money for Johnny to go to school
-next winter?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, dear,” said Bessie; “and it’s
-partly your mamma’s present it would seem
-as if you and she were doing good together,
-and as if the help for Johnny came from
-heaven.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bessie! oh, you precious love!” burst
-forth Maggie. “You need never say another
-word about my having good ideas. If I have
-ideas about compositions and things, you have
-a great deal better ones about living. I never
-did see such a child as you are,&mdash;no, never;
-and I hope I never will: one of such a kind
-as you are is quite enough for <em>me</em>;” and Maggie,
-after gazing at her sister with an air of
-the most intense pride and satisfaction, threw
-her arms about her neck and kissed her.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_364" id="Page_364">[364]</a></span>
-“Don’t you think that is lovely, Belle?” she
-said; “and don’t you want to do it?”</p>
-
-<p>But little Belle sat silent for a moment, her
-eyes raised again towards her dear mother’s
-home, her hands clasped, and a gentle, happy
-smile on her lips.</p>
-
-<p>Then she spoke, with that same, soft smile,
-and with a peaceful light in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“I was just saying a little prayer inside of
-my mouf,” she said, “to ask Jesus to make
-papa feel like doing it, so dear mamma and I
-can do some work for Him togefer. And
-papa will be helping too, all fee of us togefer,”
-added the dear little thing, to whom
-no thought could bring more happiness than
-the one that mamma in heaven, waiting for
-papa and Belle, would know and be glad when
-she tried to please Jesus and to do His work.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall tell your papa Johnny is an honest
-boy,” said Maggie.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">[365]</a></span> “You know we know he
-is, that day when the lilies were six
-cents a bunch, and he had no pennies change
-for the ten cents I gave him, he would not
-keep it, but pulled four lilies out of another
-bunch to make it even with me. I told him
-he could keep it all, too.”</p>
-
-<p>“I guess he is a pretty good boy,” said
-Bessie. “Sallie says he is.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell papa all about him,” said Belle,
-which she did as her father drove home
-with her that evening in the starlight. The
-fog which the morning haze had foretold had
-lasted but a few hours, and all was now again
-fair and clear.</p>
-
-<p>“Has my pet thought of what she wants
-me to give her on her birthday?” said Mr.
-Powers.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, papa.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah! Maggie and Bessie helped you to it,
-I suppose. I thought they would,” said Mr.
-Powers.</p>
-
-<p>“Papa,” said Belle, leaning her head upon
-her father’s breast, and gazing upward at the
-stars,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span> “if a present comes from mamma, it
-must come from heaven, and so it ought to be
-somefing very, very good: don’t you think
-so?”</p>
-
-<p>“It shall be what my darling pleases, if papa
-can bring it about,” said Mr. Powers, drawing
-her closer to him as she sat upon his knee.</p>
-
-<p>“The fought of it came from heaven, I
-know papa,” Belle went on. “Bessie gave it to
-me; and I am sure Jesus gave it to her.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, dearest?” asked her father.</p>
-
-<p>So Belle told her father of the “lily boy”
-and his desire to go to school, and of what
-she wanted for her birthday gift from him and
-dear mamma.</p>
-
-<p>“And you would really rather I should do
-this than to have any thing for yourself, my
-little girl?” said he.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, papa, really, really I would; and
-then you know, papa, if the present comes
-from mamma and you, it will be as if she and
-me and you did a little work for Jesus, all fee
-togefer,” and she put up her little soft hand
-caressingly against his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>He took it in his and kissed it, but no more
-was said for a little while, as they drove slowly
-home in the still summer night.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_367" id="Page_367">[367]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Will you promise, papa?” said Belle at last.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, darling, I will promise; that is, you
-shall send the boy to school if I find he is
-steady and good, and his parents are deserving
-people.”</p>
-
-<p>“And if not, papa?” questioned his little
-daughter, fearful lest this plan, which seemed
-to bring her nearer to her mother, should fail
-her at the last.</p>
-
-<p>“If not, or if I find any reason why this
-thing is not wise, I will set aside the sum of
-money it would have taken, and we will soon
-find some way in which mamma’s gift may
-do work for Jesus.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle was satisfied.</p>
-
-<p>“I am so glad my darling is learning to be
-unselfish, and to take thought for others,”
-continued Mr. Powers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_368" id="Page_368">[368]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It’s all Maggie’s and Bessie’s fault, papa,
-all their fault. It never came to me, myself;
-but they taught me how. And it makes me
-want to be good when I see them good, even
-when they don’t tell me a word.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said her father: “I think it has
-been a great blessing to you to know Maggie
-and Bessie.”</p>
-
-<p>“They’re the best of all my blessings, ’cept
-only you, papa. I’m a great, great deal happier
-since I knew them, and I guess gooder
-too. I don’t slap Daphne now; and I don’t
-fret so much when you tell me a thing can’t
-not: do I papa?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, my darling,” said her father: “my
-little Belle is becoming very good and obedient,
-and I see she takes pains with her quick
-temper too.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Powers felt as if he could not bear to
-part from his darling that night, and when
-Daphne had undressed her and laid her in her
-bed, he went and sat beside her, and held her
-little hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Put out the light, and leave the window
-open, papa,” she pleaded;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_369" id="Page_369">[369]</a></span> “so we can look
-up at dear mamma’s home. See how bright
-the stars are. Bessie says the water-lilies are
-like the stars come down here, so we can
-think the stars are heaven’s lilies; but they
-do not fade like the lilies; do they, papa?”
-She rambled on half sleepily, without waiting
-for an answer. “And Jesus never fades, nor
-the angels He takes up to His heaven. Papa,
-I’ll try to be like a little water-lily, and then
-when Jesus has done wif me on earf, He
-will gafer me up to His home where mamma
-is.”</p>
-
-<p>So she talked on about mamma and Jesus
-and heaven till sleep came, and she forgot
-alike the joys and sorrows of her young life.</p>
-
-<p>But her father sat there, long after she fell
-asleep, and thought with more pleasure than
-any thing had given him since his wife’s
-death, of the work which “all fee togefer”
-might do for Jesus. And as he remembered
-the many mercies which God had still left to
-him, especially the blessing of this loving
-little child, he took shame to himself that he
-had allowed his own great grief to make him
-forget the wants and troubles of others; and
-he resolved that on each Christmas and birthday,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">[370]</a></span>
-from this time forth, Belle’s gift from her
-“mamma in heaven,” should be the means of
-doing good to some one who needed it.</p>
-
-<p>He was as good as his word respecting the
-water-lily boy; and the very next day went to
-work to find if Johnny Howe and his parents
-were worthy of the help his little daughter
-wished to offer them.</p>
-
-<p>All was satisfactory. Johnny’s parents
-proved to be industrious, deserving people,
-with whom the world had gone rather hardly
-for the last year or two. Johnny himself, a
-bright boy, eager to learn, and who made the
-most of all his opportunities. His father and
-mother thankfully accepted the offer Mr.
-Powers made to provide for his education as
-long as they should need such help; and dear
-little Belle was made happy in this “birfday
-present.”</p>
-
-<p>Belle’s were not the only young eyes which
-gazed upward at the starry sky that night with
-sweet thoughts of the heaven beyond.</p>
-
-<p>Maggie and Bessie had gone out with Colonel<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_371" id="Page_371">[371]</a></span>
-Rush to see Mr. Powers and Belle drive
-away; and the evening was so soft, and warm
-and lovely, that after they had gone the Colonel
-sat down upon the steps of the piazza to
-enjoy it, with one of his pets on either side of
-him.</p>
-
-<p>It was very quiet: only two sounds broke
-the stillness; the ceaseless song of the sea,&mdash;very
-low and gentle it was to-night,&mdash;and
-mingling with it came the sweet tones of Mrs.
-Rush’s voice, as she sang her baby to sleep in
-one of the upper rooms. They all sat listening
-to the two hymns; so different, yet with
-no discord between them; the music of the
-one blending so perfectly with the music of
-the other.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment the sweet singer above
-paused; then, unconscious of the listening
-ears below, began,&mdash;</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“I was a wandering sheep.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>It carried the Colonel back, back to that
-time, now nearly two years since, when on
-just such a night as this, with those same<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">[372]</a></span>
-mingling voices sounding in his ears, peace
-and rest had flowed in on his troubled soul;
-when striving to reach the light pointed out
-by the beloved little messenger beside him,
-he had laid hold upon the cross, and felt
-its brightness all about him. Its rays had
-beamed clearly for him ever since; for he
-knew from whence they shone, and that they
-should never fail him.</p>
-
-<p>The baby slept, and the young mother’s
-voice ceased as she laid it in its cradle: but
-its father sat on, with the music still sounding
-in his heart; and, as if the holy spell were
-on them too, his little companions sat as
-motionless and silent,&mdash;Maggie leaning on his
-knee, Bessie with her hand nestled in his, her
-head laid lovingly against his arm.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly, some one threw back a blind from
-the library-window, and a stream of light was
-thrown from within upon the sunny, brown
-curls which lay against the Colonel’s shoulder.
-He looked down at her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_373" id="Page_373">[373]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Bessie, what were you thinking of, darling?”
-he asked, as he saw the wistful face
-and earnest eyes, which seemed as if they saw
-beyond the stars.</p>
-
-<p>“A good many things, Uncle Horace,”
-answered the little one. “I thought about
-Belle, and how glad her mamma must be to
-see how hard she tries to be good, and I know
-it is hard for Belle to be good sometimes; and
-about heaven and Jesus. And then I thought
-about our travels, and how good our Father in
-heaven has been to us, and how I wished I
-could do something very much for Him; and
-then&mdash;and then&mdash;Uncle Horace, I don’t
-know what made me, I think it was the sound
-of the waves&mdash;I thought about one night at
-Quam Beach, when I lay awake a great while,
-and looked out at the stars and heard the
-waves making just such a soft sound&mdash;and&mdash;and&mdash;I
-was saying a good many little prayers
-about you, Uncle Horace: it was the night
-before the next morning when you told me
-you had found Jesus, and was going to be His
-soldier.”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>There was no answer in words; but his arm
-found its way around her, and clasped her
-closer, and when the brave soldier could
-steady his voice, it was to Maggie he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>“And what was my honey-bee thinking of,
-to keep her so quiet?”</p>
-
-<p>“I was thinking of our travels too, Uncle
-Horace,” answered Maggie; “but not in such
-a very superior manner as Bessie. I was thinking
-what a lovely time we have had all these
-months; and now how glad I am that papa
-and mamma have come to decision to stay in
-Newport till it is time to go home in the
-autumn. I like Chalecoo; but I’d rather
-stay in this lovely place than to go anywhere
-else. And now our travels are done.”</p>
-
-<p>“For the present, yes,” said the Colonel;
-“but we have all still one road to keep,
-one journey to go, dear Maggie: that journey
-that shall end at last in our Father’s
-house.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Maggie, with grave sweetness:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span>
-“the narrow road, where the golden letters
-and the silver thread shall guide us, and
-where our Brother will help us where it is too
-hard for us to go alone.”</p>
-
-<p>“And where our Father has let us find a
-few jewels for Him, I b’lieve,” chimed in Bessie’s
-soft voice. “I hope we may find some
-more, but He knows best.”</p>
-
-<p>“‘They that seek shall find,’ if they search
-by the light of God’s Holy Word,” said the
-Colonel, laying a loving hand on each little
-head; “but we may not know what treasures
-are ours, till the day when he shall make up
-His jewels.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>And now go forth on your travels, my Maggie
-and Bessie, followed by the earnest prayer
-that you may be the means of drawing other
-little pilgrims to journey beside the green
-pastures and still waters of the way of salvation,
-led by the hand of the gentle Shepherd,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_376" id="Page_376">[376]</a></span>
-who has said, “Suffer little children to come
-unto me;” and who will guide them at last
-to that perfect home, prepared for such as are
-of “the kingdom of heaven.”</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 150px;">
-
-<img src="images/footer-ch15.jpg" width="150" height="200" alt="(decorative)" />
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-
-<h2>ROBERT CARTER &amp; BROTHERS’<br />
-NEW BOOKS.</h2>
-
-<p class="right">530 Broadway, New-York.</p>
-
-<div class="booklist">
-
-<p class="title"><b>NOBODY.</b> A story by the author of the “Wide, Wide
-World.” 12mo. <span class="price">$1.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="review">“Her style is felicitous, her humor delicate, her pathos sincere. If we must
-have novels, commend us to such a story as “Nobody,” which leaves in the lips
-of the reader a taste of sweetness, and upon his breath an odor of fragrance.”&mdash;<i>Morning
-Star.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">UNIFORM WITH AND BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame">1. <b>MY DESIRE.</b> A Story. 12mo. <span class="price">$1.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">2. <b>THE END OF A COIL.</b> A Story. 12mo. <span class="price">1.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">3. <b>THE LETTER OF CREDIT.</b> A Story. 12mo. <span class="price">1.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Say and Do Series. 6 vols. <span class="price">$7.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Story of Small Beginnings. 4 vols. <span class="price">5.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">King’s People. 5 vols. <span class="price">7.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Stories of Vinegar Hill. 3 vols. <span class="price">3.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Ellen Montgomery’s Bookshelf. 5 vols. <span class="price">5.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>THE OLD HELMET.</b> <span class="price">2.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>MELBOURNE HOUSE.</b> <span class="price">2.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Pine Needles. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Fifteen; or, Lydia’s Happenings.</b> By Mrs. Jennie M.
-Drinkwater Conklin. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Tessa Wadsworth’s Discipline. 12mo. <span class="price">$1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Rue’s Helps. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Electa. A Story. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Under the Shield.</b> A Tale. By M. E. Winchester. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Red and White.</b> An Historical Tale. By Emily Sarah
-Holt. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>At Ye Grene Griffin.</b> By Emily Sarah Holt. 16mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Isoult Barry. 12mo. <span class="price">$1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Robin Tremayne. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Well in the Desert. 16mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Ashcliffe Hall. 16mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Verena. A Tale. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The White Rose of Langley. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Imogen. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Clare Avery. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Lettice Eden. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">For the Master’s Sake. 16mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Margery’s Son. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Lady Sybil’s Choice. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Maiden’s Lodge. 12mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Earl Hubert’s Daughter. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Joyce Morrell’s Harvest. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Decima’s Promise.</b> By Agnes Giberne. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Twilight Talks</b>; or, Early Lessons on Things about us.
-By Agnes Giberne. 16mo. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Jacob Witherby</b>; or, The Need of Patience. By Agnes
-Giberne. 16mo. <span class="price">.60</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>The World’s Foundations</b>; or, Geology for Beginners. Illus. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>Sweetbriar</b>; or, Doings in Priorsthorpe Manor. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>Through the Linn.</b> 16mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Aimee. A Tale of James II. 16mo. <span class="price">$1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Day Star; or, Gospel Stories. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Curate’s Home. 16mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Floss Silverthorne. 16mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Coulyng Castle. 16mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Muriel Bertram. 16mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Sun, Moon, and Stars. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Duties and Duties. 16mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Nearer to Jesus.</b> Memorials of Robert Walter Fergus.
-By his mother. With an introduction by Rev. J. Oswald
-Dykes, D. D. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Little Bullets</b> and Seven Perils Passed by A. L. O. E.
-16mo. Illustrated. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Wondrous Sickle.</b> By A. L. O. E. 16mo. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Cared For.</b> By C. E. Bowen. 18mo. <span class="price">.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Orphan Wanderers.</b> Containing “Cared For” and
-“How a Farthing made a Fortune.” Illus. 16mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Heroic Adventure.</b> Chapters in recent Exploration and
-Discovery. Illustrated. 12mo.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Only a Cousin.</b> By Catharine Shaw. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Lonely Jack and his Friend.</b> By Emily Brodie. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Seeketh Not Her Own.</b> By M. Sitwell. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Cripple Jess, the Hop-Picker’s Daughter.</b> <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Jill and Jack.</b> A Story of To-Day. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>A Little Wild Flower.</b> <span class="price">.60</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Bennie, the King’s Little Servant.</b> <span class="price">.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Story of a Shell.</b> By the Rev. J.R. Macduff, D.D.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Rex and Regina.</b> By Mrs. Marshall. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Dew Drops and Diamonds. <span class="price">$1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Stories of Cathedral Cities. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Ruby and Pearl. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Framilode Hall. <span class="price">.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Stellafont Abbey. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Between the Cliffs. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Primrose Series. 6 vols. <span class="price">3.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">The Violet and Lily Series. 6 vols. <span class="price">3.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Chip of the Old Block. <span class="price">.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Little Brothers and Sisters. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Matthew Frost. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>BITS FROM BLINKBONNY</b>; or, Bell o’ the Manse.
-12mo. 6 illustrations. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>THE CHURCH IN THE HOUSE</b>; or, Lessons on Acts.
-New Edition. 12mo. (In Dec.). <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>THE HUMAN MIND.</b> A Treatise on Mental Philosophy.
-By Edward John Hamilton, D. D. 8vo. <span class="price">3.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>MOSES AND THE PROPHETS.</b> A Review of Robertson
-Smith and Kuenen. By Professor Green, of Princeton.
-12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>GOD’S LIGHT ON DARK CLOUDS.</b> By Theodore
-L. Cuyler, D. D. Very neat. Limp. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">From the Nile to Norway.</span> <span class="price">$1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">Thought Hives.</span> With Portrait. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">Pointed Papers.</span> 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">The Empty Crib.</span> 24mo. Gilt. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">Stray Arrows.</span> 18mo. <span class="price">.60</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">Cedar Christian.</span> 18mo. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center larger"><span class="smcap">Hugh Miller’s Works.</span></p>
-
-<p class="title">The 12 volumes in 6. Neat cloth. <span class="price">9.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="review">“Was there ever a more delightful style than that in which his works are
-written? His essays wed the elegance of Addison with the strength of Carlyle.”&mdash;<i>Rev.
-Dr. W. M. Taylor.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="title"><b>GLEAMS FROM THE SICK CHAMBER.</b> Macduff. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>MANIFESTO OF THE KING.</b> An Exposition of the
-Sermon on the Mount. By Rev. J. Oswald Dykes, D. D. <span class="price">2.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>SERMONS.</b> By J. Oswald Dykes, D. D. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>COVENANT NAMES AND PRIVILEGES.</b> A series
-of Discourses. By the Rev. Richard Newton, D. D. Portrait. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="center">BY THE SAME AUTHOR.</p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>The Jewel Case.</b> 6 vols. <span class="price">7.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>The Wonder Case.</b> 6 vols. <span class="price">7.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>Rays from the Sun of Righteousness.</b> <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>The King in His Beauty.</b> <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><b>Pebbles from the Brook.</b> <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="center larger"><span class="smcap">New and Cheap Editions.</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>MORNING BY MORNING.</b> Daily Readings. By Rev.
-C. H. Spurgeon. 12mo. <span class="price">$1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="review">“We have carefully read this book, and we say, advisedly, that we know not
-where to look for another such store of rich experimental religion within the same
-compass.”&mdash;<i>Freeman.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>EVENING BY EVENING</b>; or, Readings at Eventide.
-By Rev. C. H. Spurgeon. 12mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>TYPES AND EMBLEMS.</b> By the Rev. C. H. Spurgeon.
-12mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>JOHN PLOUGHMAN’S TALK.</b> By the Rev. C. H.
-Spurgeon. 16mo. <span class="price">.75</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>GLEANINGS AMONG THE SHEAVES.</b> By the
-Rev. C. H. Spurgeon. 18mo.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>THE PROGRESS OF DOCTRINE IN THE NEW
-TESTAMENT.</b> By Bernard. 12mo. <span class="price">1.25</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*D’AUBIGNE’S REFORMATION IN THE SIXTEENTH
-CENTURY.</b> 5 vols. in one. 8vo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>KRUMMACHER’S SUFFERING SAVIOUR.</b> 12mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>MACDUFF’S SUNSETS ON THE HEBREW
-MOUNTAINS.</b> 12mo. <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>MACDUFF’S FAMILY PRAYERS.</b> 16mo. Reduced to <span class="price">1.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>PRIME’S FORTY YEARS IN THE TURKISH
-EMPIRE.</b> Life of Goodell. 12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>Dorothy Cope.</b> Containing the “Old Looking-Glass” and
-the “Broken Looking-Glass.” By Miss Charlesworth.
-12mo. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Claremont Series.</b> By A. L. O. E. 10 vols. 16mo.
-In a box. <span class="price">8.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Eddie Ellerslie. <span class="price">$0.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Claremont Tales. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Christian’s Mirror. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Crown of Success. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Christian Conquests. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Christian’s Panoply. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Cortley Hall. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Idols in the Heart. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Needle and Rat. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame">Stories on Parables. <span class="price">.90</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Golden Library, A.</b> 10 vols. 16mo. <span class="price">8.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>The Golden Library, B.</b> 10 vols. 16mo. <span class="price">8.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*THE OLIVE LIBRARY.</b> 40 vols. 16mo. Wooden
-Case. Net. <span class="price">25.00</span></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center"><i>A MARVEL OF CHEAPNESS.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center larger">DR. HANNA’S LIFE OF CHRIST.</p>
-
-<p class="title">Pica type, fine paper, 3 vols. 12mo, 2182 pp., neat cloth. <span class="price">2.50</span></p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p class="center larger"><span class="smcap">New and Very Neat Editions of</span></p>
-
-<p class="center"><b>MIND AND WORDS OF JESUS.</b></p>
-
-<p class="title">By Macduff. Limp, red edges, 50 cents. Gilt edges, 60 cents.
-Superfine paper, <i>red line</i> edition, round corners, gilt edges, $1.00.
-In full calf, gilt edges, $2.50.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><b>MORNING AND NIGHT WATCHES.</b></p>
-
-<p class="title">By Macduff. Limp, red edges, 50 cents. Gilt edges, 60 cents.
-Superfine paper, <i>red line</i> edition, round corners, gilt edges, $1.00.
-In full calf, gilt edges, $2.50.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><b>MIND AND WORDS AND MORNING AND NIGHT
-WATCHES. In One Volume.</b></p>
-
-<p class="title">Red line edition, gilt edges, $1.50. Full calf, gilt edges, $3.50.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><b>HANNAH MORE’S PRIVATE DEVOTION.</b></p>
-
-<p class="title">32mo. Limp, red edges, 50 cents. Gilt edges, 60 cents.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><b>DICKSON (REV. ALEXANDER, D.D.)</b></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">All about Jesus.</span> <span class="price">2.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="bysame"><span class="smcap">Beauty for Ashes.</span> <span class="price">2.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="review">“His book is a ‘bundle of myrrh,’ and will be specially enjoyed by those who
-are in trouble.”&mdash;<i>Rev. Dr. W. M. Taylor.</i></p>
-
-<p class="review">“Luscious as a honeycomb with sweetness drawn from God’s word.”&mdash;<i>Rev. Dr.
-Cuyler.</i></p>
-
-<p class="center">THE BEST COMMENTARY.</p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*MATTHEW HENRY’S COMMENTARY ON THE
-BIBLE.</b> 5 vols., quarto, sheep, $20.00. In cloth. <span class="price">15.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title">Another edition, 9 volumes, 8vo, cloth. <span class="price">20.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="review"><b>Rev. C. H. Spurgeon</b> says: “First among the mighty for general usefulness
-we are bound to mention the man whose name is a household word&mdash;<span class="smcap">Matthew
-Henry</span>.”</p>
-
-<p class="review"><b>Rev. Dr. Wm. M. Taylor</b> says: “Among the valuable homiletical commentaries
-is Matthew Henry’s, which sparkles with jewels of wisdom and incisive
-humor.”</p>
-
-<p class="review"><b>Rev. T. L. Cuyler, D. D.</b>, says: “Next to wife and children has lain near the
-minister’s heart the pored-over and prayed-over copy of his Matthew Henry, king
-of all Bible explorers yet.”</p>
-
-<p class="review"><b>Rev. Dr. Archibald Alexander</b> says: “Taking it as a whole, and as adapted
-to every class of readers, this Commentary may be said to combine more excellence
-than any other work of the kind that was ever written in any language.”</p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>GUIDE TO FAMILY DEVOTION.</b> By the Rev. Alexander
-Fletcher, D. D. Royal quarto, with 10 steel plates (half morocco,
-$7.50; Turkey morocco, $12), cloth, gilt, and gilt edges, $5.00.</p>
-
-<p class="review">“The more we look over the volume the more we admire it, and the more
-heartily feel to commend it to families and devout Christians. It is emphatically a
-book of devotion, from the standpoint of an intelligent, broad-minded Christian
-minister, who has here expressed many of the deepest emotions and wants of the
-soul. The selections of Scripture and the hymns are all admirably adapted to
-increase devotion; and the prayers are such as can but aid the suppliant, even
-when not uttered from his precise standpoint, and are especially valuable to many
-heads of families who find it difficult to frame words for themselves in conducting
-family worship.”&mdash;<i>Journal and Messenger.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>RYLE ON THE GOSPELS.</b> 7 vols., 12mo. <span class="price">10.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="center smaller"><i>Matthew</i>, $1.50. <i>Mark</i>, $1.50. <i>Luke</i>, 2 vols., $3.00. <i>John</i>, 3 vols., $4.50.</p>
-
-<p class="review">“Those who are engaged in teaching others will find in them a treasury, full of
-edifying and instructive suggestions.”&mdash;<i>Episcopal Register.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>KITTO’S BIBLE ILLUSTRATIONS.</b> 8 vols., 12mo,
-in a box, with complete index. <span class="price">7.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="review">“I cannot lose this opportunity of recommending, in the strongest language
-and most emphatic manner I can command, this invaluable series of books. I
-believe for the elucidation of the historic parts of Scripture, there is nothing comparable
-with them in the English or any other language.”&mdash;<i>J. A. James.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>DR. HODGE’S COMMENTARIES.</b> 4 vols. <span class="price">7.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="center smaller"><i>Corinthians</i>, 2 vols., $3.50. <i>Romans</i>, $1.75. <i>Ephesians</i>, $1.75.</p>
-
-<p class="review">“Dr. <span class="smcap">Hodge’s</span> Commentaries ought to be in the hands of all readers of the
-Bible, in families, in Sabbath-schools and Seminaries.”&mdash;<i>Observer.</i></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>HODGE’S (DR. A. A.) OUTLINES OF THEOLOGY.</b>
-8vo. <span class="price">3.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*DR. McCOSH’S WORKS.</b> 5 vols., 8vo, uniform. Brown
-cloth. <span class="price">10.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*MURDOCK’S MOSHEIM’S ECCLESIASTICAL
-HISTORY.</b> 3 vols, in one. <span class="price">3.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*POOL’S ANNOTATIONS UPON THE HOLY
-BIBLE.</b> 3 vols., 8vo. <span class="price">7.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>*THE WORKS OF PRESIDENT EDWARDS.</b> 4 vols., 8vo. <span class="price">6.00</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>THE BOOK OF JOB.</b> Illustrated. With fifty engravings
-after drawings by <span class="smcap">John Gilbert</span>. In morocco, $7.50;
-half calf, $6.00; cloth, gilt. <span class="price">4.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>COWPER’S TASK.</b> Illustrated. With sixty superb designs
-by <span class="smcap">Birket Foster</span>. Printed on fine tinted paper;
-elegantly bound in cloth, gilt. <span class="price">3.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>GRAY’S ELEGY.</b> Illustrated pocket edition. Gilt edges. <span class="price">.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>VOICES OF HOPE AND GLADNESS.</b> By <span class="smcap">Ray
-Palmer</span>, D. D. Illustrated. 12mo, gilt. <span class="price">1.50</span></p>
-
-<p class="title"><b>SONGS OF THE SOUL.</b> By Dr. <span class="smcap">Prime</span>. Quarto, gilt. 5.00
-Cheaper edition, 12mo. <span class="price">$2.00</span></p>
-
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's Bessie on Her Travels, by Joanna H. Mathews
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BESSIE ON HER TRAVELS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 52214-h.htm or 52214-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/2/2/1/52214/
-
-Produced by Juliet Sutherland and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d428c46..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-a.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-a.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cd195c3..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-a.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-i.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-i.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5485265..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-i.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-m.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-m.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a53a1ff..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-m.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-o.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-o.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 06166db..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-o.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-r.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-r.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6b6dc9a..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-r.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-t.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-t.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 65da6f1..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-t.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-w.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-w.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3e88d91..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-w.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-y.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-y.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 488d1cd..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/dropcap-y.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch1.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6a4cc2e..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch14.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch14.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c01e48c..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch14.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch15.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch15.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2698bf7..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch15.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch2-and-9.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch2-and-9.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index b5c6298..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch2-and-9.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch3-and-11.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch3-and-11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 85515d8..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch3-and-11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch4-and-12.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch4-and-12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fbd3dac..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch4-and-12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch6-and-10.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch6-and-10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 895c48d..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch6-and-10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch8.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch8.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 7ea6c9c..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/footer-ch8.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch1-and-9.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch1-and-9.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9e91227..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch1-and-9.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch10.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch10.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 064131e..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch10.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch14.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch14.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index eea48e6..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch14.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch2.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 62746d9..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch3-and-11.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch3-and-11.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index cc4d080..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch3-and-11.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch4-and-12.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch4-and-12.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2ed44b8..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch4-and-12.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch5.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch5.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2b1b69f..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch5.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch6.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch6.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index bb89b09..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch6.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch7-and-13.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch7-and-13.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1de6d38..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch7-and-13.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch8-and-15.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/header-ch8-and-15.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d81603d..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/header-ch8-and-15.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/illus1.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/illus1.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 5dce4a1..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/illus1.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/illus2.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/illus2.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index f8106f4..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/illus2.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/illus3.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/illus3.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d603086..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/illus3.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/52214-h/images/illus4.jpg b/old/52214-h/images/illus4.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 736464e..0000000
--- a/old/52214-h/images/illus4.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ